Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic_ From Ancient Egypt to the Italian Renaissance ( PDFDrive )

Формат документа: pdf
Размер документа: 0.89 Мб

Прямая ссылка будет доступна
примерно через: 45 сек.

  • Сообщить о нарушении / Abuse
    Все документы на сайте взяты из открытых источников, которые размещаются пользователями. Приносим свои глубочайшие извинения, если Ваш документ был опубликован без Вашего на то согласия.

Palgrave Historical Studies in Witchcraft and Magic
Series Editors: Jonathan Barry, Willem de Blécourt and Owen Davies
Series Foreword
The history of European witchcraft and magic continues to fascinate and chal-
lenge students and scholars. There is certainly no shortage of books on
subject. Several general surveys of the witch trials and numerous regional and
micro studies have been published for an English-speaking readership. Wh
the quality of publications on witchcraft has been high, some regions an
d top-
ics have received less attention over the years. The aim of this series
is to help
illuminate these lesser known or little studied aspects of the history of witchcraft
and magic. It will also encourage the development of a broader corpus of
work in
other related areas of magic and the supernatural, such as angels, devil
s, spirits,
ghosts, folk healing and divination. To help further our understanding and inter-
est in this wider history of beliefs and practices, the series will include research
that looks beyond the usual focus on Western Europe and that also explores their
relevance and influence from the medieval to the modern period.
Titles include:
Jonathan Barry
Jonathan Barry
How a Conjuror’s Tale was Transmitted Across the Enlightenment
Edward Bever
Culture, Cognition and Everyday Life
Ruth B. Bottigheimer
From Ancient Egypt to the Italian Renaissance
Alison Butler
Invoking Tradition
Johannes Dillinger
A History
Julian Goodare (editor)
Julian Goodare, Lauren Martin and Joyce Miller (editor)
Jonathan Roper (editor)

Alison Rowlands (editor)
Rolf Schulte
Male Witches in Central Europe
Laura Stokes
Early European Witch Trials and Criminal Justice, 1430–1530
María Tausiet
Abracadabra Omnipotens
Robert Ziegler
Soili-Maria Olli
Palgrave Historical Studies in Witchcraft and Magic
Series Standing Order ISBN 978–1–403–99566–7 Hardback
978–1–403–99567–4 Paperback
(outside North America only)
You can receive future titles in this series as they are published by pla
cing a
standing order. Please contact your bookseller or, in case of difficulty, write to us
at the address below with your name and address, the title of the series
and the
ISBN quoted above.
Customer Services Department, Macmillan Distribution Ltd, Houndmills,
Basingstoke, Hampshire RG21 6XS, England

Magic Tales and
Fairy Tale Magic
From Ancient Egypt to the Italian
Ruth B. BottigheimerResearch Professor, Stony Brook University, USA

© Ruth B. Bottigheimer 2014
All rights reserved. No reproduction, copy or transmission of this
publication may be made without written permission.
No portion of this publication may be reproduced, copied or transmitted
save with written permission or in accordance with the provisions of the

Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988, or under the terms of any licen
permitting limited copying issued by the Copyright Licensing Agency,
Saffron House, 6–10 Kirby Street, London EC1N 8TS.
Any person who does any unauthorized act in relation to this publication

may be liable to criminal prosecution and civil claims for damages.
The author has asserted her right to be identified as the author of this
in accordance with the Copyright, Designs and Patents Act 1988.
First published 2014 by
Palgrave Macmillan in the UK is an imprint of Macmillan Publishers Limit
registered in England, company number 785998, of Houndmills, Basingstoke
Hampshire RG21 6XS.
Palgrave Macmillan in the US is a division of St Martin’s Press LLC,
175 Fifth Avenue, New York, NY 10010.
Palgrave Macmillan is the global academic imprint of the above companies

and has companies and representatives throughout the world.
Palgrave® and Macmillan® are registered trademarks in the United S
the United Kingdom, Europe and other countries.
This book is printed on paper suitable for recycling and made from fully

managed and sustained forest sources. Logging, pulping and manufacturing

processes are expected to conform to the environmental regulations of th
country of origin.
A catalogue record for this book is available from the British Library.
A catalog record for this book is available from the Library of Congress
Typeset by MPS Limited, Chennai, India.
ISBN 978-1-349-47946-7 ISBN 978-1-137-38088-3 (eBook)
DOI 10.1057/9781137380883Softcover reprint of the hardcover 1st edition 2014 978-1-137-38087-6

This book is dedicated
to the memory of good friends who accompanied and often guided me
Elfriede Moser-Rath, Rudolf Schenda, Ellen Graham, and Bob Scribner, and with gratitude for the abiding support of Karl Bottigheimer

This page intentionally left blank

Acknowledgments viii
1 Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales 1
2 Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 11
3 Jewish Magic Tales 32
4 Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 64
5 Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 84
6 Magic at Court and on the Piazza 121
7 The Problematics of Magic on the Threshold of Fairy Tale Magic: Straparola’s Early Modern Pleasant Nights 148
8 The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic from Straparola to Basile and Perrault 168
9 Afterword 183
Works Cited and Referenced 185
Index 199

I owe many colleagues a deep debt of gratitude. Some have guided me to
relevant studies or helped with translations, while others have responde
generously to queries or have read individual chapters. I express heartf
gratitude to Dan Ben-Amos, Willem de Blécourt, Aaron Godfrey, Bob
Goldenberg, Heinz Grotzfeld, Robert Irwin, Sara Lipton, Patricia Eichel-
Lojkine, Rita Lucarelli, Ivan Marcus, Ulrich Marzolph, Claudia Ott,
Donato Pirovano, Christine Shojai-Kawan, and Eli Yassif. Parts of this study have appeared in published articles: the Aspasia
section in Chapter 2 and the discussion of “Solomon’s Daughter in
the Tower” in Chapter 3 were published in “ Fairy Godfather, Fairy-Tale
History, and Fairy-Tale Scholarship: A Response to Dan Ben-Amos, Jan
Ziolkowski, and Francisco Vaz da Silva” in Fairy-Tale Traditions between
Orality and Literacy, ed. Dan Ben-Amos [= Journal of American Folklore
123: 490 (Fall 2010):] 447–496. Parts of Chapter 4 appeared as “Les con-
tes médievaux et les contes de fées moderns” in Féeries 7 (2010): 21–43. My work depends on specialized secondary literature that is often
available only in distant libraries, for whose provision Stony Brook’
Inter Library Loan service is crucial. For their consistently generous
assistance I want to thank Donna Sammis and the entire staff. Karl Bottigheimer is always my first reader. Nearly 60 years of conver-
sation with him have enriched my work and my life.

Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales
This book focuses on the narrative aspects of magic in magic tales
from ancient Egypt to the Renaissance and the early modern period in
Europe. In these tales magic often operates from a parallel world and
affirms existing earthly and supernatural hierarchies. In the process,
both magic and supernatural beings frequently pose dangers to ordi-
nary mortals in the tales. An important component of this study is
its interest in what characters in magic tales perceive to be magic and
what they accept as normal manifestations, even when they appear
uncanny to modern eyes. The variations in magic tale characters’ per-
ception and experience of magic suggests a new and different prehis-
tory for fairy tales.In magic tales, gods in the ancient world and medieval fairy creatures
inhabit a richly peopled world of their own, from which they can and
do emerge to affect the lives of ordinary mortals. In sixteenth-century
Venice a new sort of magic tale appeared. For the first time there began
to exist a sustained tradition of magic tales in which supernaturals and

fairy figures without either backstories or residence in a parallel world
enter narratives in order to benefit human beings. This is fairy tale
magic, and it emerges within a set of early modern problematics gene-
rated by profound social, economic, and religious shifts. A second change marks magic tales in the millennia between ancient
Egypt and the Italian Renaissance. Over the centuries the prominence of
the parallel world inhabited by divinities and supernatural forces gives
way to the earthly world, as human protagonists replace divinities and
supernatural forces at the center of narrative focus. A third tendency in magic tales over this long period involves the
effect of magic itself on magic tale characters. In the ancient and medi
eval worlds, magic often posed a maleficent threat to human beings,

2 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
with happy endings reserved for other-worldly bliss in a heavenly
afterlife. In Renaissance magic tales, magic becomes a narrative motor
that can bring about a heaven on earth happy ending for its heroes and
heroines, a narrative closure that marks the fairy tale genre.
The deep and rich vein of magic in its many incarnations has been
examined, assessed, re-examined, and re-assessed. In the preceding
paragraphs I have offered observations; my efforts to account for these
observations lie interspersed within the following chapters. In this open-
ing chapter I will simply point out that the nature of magic in its rela
tionship to tale protagonists in magical tales has been little regarded,
have the changes over time in the nature of magic, possibly because fair
tale magic – believed to have existed unchanged over millennia – h
seemed to require little examination. In the following chapters I examin
the shifting balance between magic’s maleficent and beneficent effects
on mortals in the tales, the physical composition of magic, the earthly
or other-worldly locus of supernaturals, and the allocation of agency
among supernaturals and human beings. What emerges is a generally unidirectional drift in the control of
magic over time. In magic tales from the ancient world, divinities
largely monopolized magic; in tales of the Jewish and Muslim Middle
Ages, the absolute power over the universe that characterizes mono-
theism correlates with portrayals of a single divinity as the ultimate
manipulator of magic, while in medieval Christian magic tales, magic
exists within hierarchical orderings of divine agents that differ from
place to place and that also change over time. Jewish and medieval Muslim magic tales share many narrative
structures, and both traditions are shaped by their monotheistically
driven plots. In contrast, structural and narrative similarities link th
polytheistic magic in ancient Greek and Roman magic tales with, for
instance, contests between the Virgin Mary and the devil in medieval
Christian magic as well as with miracle tales and early modern fairy-
land fictions. Renaissance fairy tales deploy magic differently from their magic tale
predecessors. Their fairy tale magic exists solely within the human uni-
verse and its results nearly always benefit the tales’ human heroes a
heroines. Furthermore, in fairy tales, only the manifestly wicked suffer
ill effects from magic (in contrast to fairyland fictions, which will be
discussed below). Considered within a large historical continuum, fairy
tale magic resembles a response to fundamental changes in the way(s)
human beings understand their position both within familiar secular
society and a transcendent religious universe.

Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales 3
The statements above run counter to contemporary assumptions
about much of the world of narrative magic, but hundreds of tales bear
witness to the profound shifts alluded to here. The most significant shi
moves ancient and medieval magic from its (principal) service to divini-
ties to the service of human beings. Of course, there are exceptions to
this overall direction of development. How could there not be excep-
tions, when so many voices have told so many stories from so many
differing individual perspectives? I do not argue narrowly, from single
tales, but from overall tendencies, which emerge from dozens of tales in

each of the cultural traditions explored in Chapters 2 to 8. Positioning fairy tales within historical and intellectual movements may
seem grandiose for so humble a genre, but it is defensible and it is fou
dational for the following chapters. Equally present is a thesis put for
in Fairy Godfather: Straparola, Venice, and Fairy Tale Tradition in 2002 about
magically mediated weddings that produce fairy tales’ happy endings.
Here and there one encounters such plots before the Renaissance, but the

story-line didn’t take hold in medieval Christian Europe. First of all, the
centrality of magic that characterizes fairy tales contradicted the anti-magic
literary requirements for the European novella tradition in the medieval
and early modern period, and second, magic as a functional narrative
element seems to have run counter to popular expectations, as exempli-
fied in Liom/nbruno in Chapter 6. Furthermore, the fewness of magically
mediated weddings that produce happy endings in Jewish and Muslim
medieval narrative traditions shows that it was equally atypical there. Historical magic practice and confrontations between magic practice
and overarching intellectual developments such as Renaissance human-
ism, the scientific revolution, and Enlightenment rationalism have been
well studied, and form only a small part of this book’s purview. Here
the emphasis is on magic as it functions narratively in magic tales as a

whole and in fairy tales in particular. My teaching of Greek and Roman
mythology proved invaluable for thinking about mythic metamor-
phoses in ancient storytelling, while a decades-long fascination with
medieval European brief narratives provided a foundation for exploring
medieval Jewish, Christian, and Muslim tales of magic and miracles.
1 I would like to draw readers’ attention to Patricia Eichel-Lojkine’
s Contes en Réseaux.
L’émergence du conte sur la scène littéraire europénne (2013), a broad-based study of
the emergence of the modern conte from predecessor tales from sixth-century India
to the late Middle Ages. Our differing approaches and assumptions render
work complementary, as she concentrates more on structure and individual tale
histories in her exploration of the backgrounds of various modern contes.

4 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Scholars and lay commentators alike understand the terms used in the
following chapters in different ways, and so I would like to define the
terms that will be used in Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic before discus-
sion proceeds. Each narrative considered here is a tale in terms of its
length. In general, this means that each can be told or performed at a
single sitting. The Thousand and One Nights, or the Arabian Nights as it is
commonly referred to, consists of longer narratives, but they are divided
into brief nightly tellings that Shahrazad’s sister Dinarzad refers to as
“what has been said”
2 (an Arabic turn of phrase that is usually translated
as “story” or “tale”). The publicly performed Liom/nbruno analyzed in
Chapter 6 consists of two parts, each of which requires about half an
hour to present. Tale plots are linear, as Max Lüthi classically described them in The
European Folktale: Form and Nature, typically lacking subplots that would
retard their forward motion. Tale content, similarly simple or simplified,
rarely provides any explanation of characters’ motivations, while tal
prose calls on a narrow range of adjectives. Heroines are “beautiful,”
with readers’ or listeners’ imaginations supplying details. In Thousand
and One Nights, heroes and heroines are stereotypically “like the moon,”
with occasional additional details such as swaying hips or eyebrows
meeting above the nose. In tales, both syntax and style are suitable for oral delivery and aural
comprehension. Many of the medieval texts treated in Chapters 3, 4,
and 5 were read or presented to a listening audience, in the same way
that reading entertaining narratives aloud remained a customary prac-
tice for all social classes well into the modern period, beginning to di
out only when individual private reading became habitual among mid-
dle- and upper-class print consumers. Formal and historico-critical aspects of the tale as a genre have been
well treated recently by Patricia Eichel-Lojkine in Contes en Réseaux
(2013). Of particular importance is her discussion of the tale ( conte) as
“processual,” a term she adopted from J.-M. Schaeffer (2007: 37). Her
observations about tales’ oicotypal diffraction in Christian and Jewish
European cultures (43) expand the concept of local variants (oicotype
to larger cultural constructs, while the examples she offers demonstrate

2 My thanks to Robert Irwin for generously responding to this and many other
queries about Arabic vocabulary and usage.

Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales 5
ever-changing intersections of generic constraints with cultural and
religious possibilities (“L’identité pluriel du conte,” 39–63).
In this study I utilize a psycho-social approach I developed nearly
30 years ago to analyze the corpus of Jacob and Wilhelm Grimm’s tale
collection, Kinder- und Hausmärchen. Genres lengthier than tales – such
as novellas, novels, and dramas – incorporate particularizations abou
characters and situations, but tales – with their elisions, tropes, a
stereotypes – rely on shared assumptions for listeners’ comprehens
of their fast moving plots and shorthand character descriptions. Such
tales inevitably leave blank spaces in the text, precisely because certa
explanations were unnecessary for the original audiences, who lived in
the same historical and geographical spaces and had been exposed to
the same socio-cultural values, tropes, and expectations. Those blanks,
however, remain in place for modern readers, who must somehow fill
them in to understand the stories that contain them. In other words,
how do we come to understand the nature of an implied but unar-
ticulated content? To avoid explicating ancient texts in contemporary
terms, caution is required, precisely because tales give voice to the
cultural context within which they come into being. My own strategy
for filling in the psycho-social blanks of tales from a distant past is
assemble multiple points of confirmation before speculating about the
content that historical tellers/writers and listeners/reader shared. Thinking about a tale’s resolution is simpler, because magic tales’
verbal resolutions are easily recognized, a gratifying violent punishmen
for wicked characters with the wish-fulfilling rewards granted to heroes

and heroines. Few in number, they clearly signal a story’s end. The tales discussed here may be freestanding or framed, like Shahrazad’
tales in Thousand and One Nights or Giovan Francesco Straparola’s tales
told by a merry assembly in The Pleasant Nights. Straparola’s stories could
be read by an individual, such as a merchant on his travels (the reader
so often alluded to in other sixteenth-century tale collections). Authors
often built an audience into the frametale, an audience that could be
understood as a fictively shared social context for its reader. If the same
tales were told aloud, they would be listened to within a group, that is
within an actually shared social context that incorporated everything
appropriate to that situation: food, wine, jolly spirits, and joshing wo
play much like that depicted within Straparola’s frametale. Jewish or Christian sermon tales entail situational contexts far dif-
ferent from the secular merriment of private or social readings. In a
shared religious space, listening to a magic tale ensures a conscious
awareness of a transcendent moral, ethical, or religious framework for

6 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
a magic tale’s reception, with neither wine-bibbing, rib-tickling, nor
eye-winking. Authors must have borne in mind the social effect that
a literary, social, or religious framing might have had on readers’ and
listeners’ responses, and it is enticing to consider the effect their
ness might have had on individual authors’ organization, presentation
and composition of their tales.
Learned magic rarely appears in the tales discussed in Magic Tales and
Fairy Tale Magic. Hints of astrology occasionally surface, usually as a
proverb that could be understood in multiple ways. A lapidary assertion
that marriages are made in heaven could, for instance, refer to the effe
of a heavenly constellation’s alignment on the course of a tale protago-
nist’s life, could affirm the centrality of divinely ordained predestina-
tion, or could reflect cultural wisdom. Alchemy is equally absent from
magic tales, and so is ritual magic. There is no Hermes Tresmegithus
or Paracelsus to be found in these tales, for most magical procedures as

described in handbooks of magic take more time and exactitude in ingre-
dient preparation than is possible to recount in magic tales, which are
by definition brief. Instead, such tales favor the instantaneous, such a
sudden transformations, immediate travel across vast distances, and
swiftly won victories. The prime counter examples for these observations
are to be found in Medea’s utilization of occult knowledge in Chapter 2
and Straparola’s description of invoking a demon’s assistance in Chapter 7. Popular magic practice is as absent as learned magic in these tales.
Nowhere are the relics and blessed objects described by Richard
Kieckhefer, the historian of medieval magic, to be found in magic tales
or fairy tales (2000: 78). As for the Arabian Nights, their magic seems to
have come latterly, for in the fifteenth-century Alf Layla wa-Layla there
are neither magic lamps nor flying carpets. In fact, the great majority
of the entries for “magic” in The Arabian Nights Encyclopedia (2004) per-
tain to stories that wouldn’t join the Nights canon until the eighteenth
and nineteenth centuries. In one exception to the general rule outlined
above, an Egyptian gains magic powers by ingestion, when he soaks the
pages of a magic book in beer and drinks the resulting brew (Chapter 2)
. The tales discussed here were originally composed in languages other
than English, and I have used English translations for their ancient
hieroglyphic, Greek, Hebrew, or Arabic voicings. Because translations
inevitably absorb something of the age in which they were translated,
I have tried to get as close as I could to the sense of original wording
by referring to at least two different translations, whenever that was
possible. Despite my best efforts, my own translations will necessarily
bear the marks of the twenty-first century.

Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales 7
All of the tales discussed here offer perceived magic, in the particular
sense of what the stories’ characters and sometimes the stories’ a
perceive to break natural law or to exist above natural law and therefore
to belong to the realm of what they understand as supernatural. Similarl
magical agents who are perceived within the contexts of the tales them-
selves to be extraordinary (demons, fairies, sorcerers and sorceresses) are
understood to produce magical results. Their supernatural identities are

a kind of shorthand for the magic often absent from the page. Implicit
in many Jewish, Christian and Muslim magic tales is an assumption that
God is the supreme magic-producing agent. It was surprising to me to fin
that another class of events, those that are extranatural and improbable

and that are perceived to be implausible, elicit the same kind of amaze-
ment from fictive characters and frametale listeners as does magic itsel
f. What we today call fairy tales were a new genre when they appeared
in print in the early 1550s. Their fabricator, Giovan Francesco Straparola,
often used existing motifs and characters to fashion tales in which magi
brought about a happy ending, which in his tales consists of marriage to

a royal personage, subsequent progeny, and a long and comfortable life.
Among Straparola’s many magic tales, it is the happy ending that distin-
guishes his “fairy tales” from the magic tales in his collection, a subject
discussed in Chapter 7. Fairy tales are brief, structurally linear, stylistically and syntactically
simple, or “compact,” to use Elizabeth Harries’ term (2001:16–
18). Fairy
tales differ in several ways from fairyland fictions (Bottigheimer, 2010:
462–3), which play no role in the following discussions. Fairyland fic-
tions are generally “complex” (Harries, 2001:16–18), which me
ans that
they are structurally and syntactically complex, lengthy, and stylisti-
cally rich. Fairyland fictions are often existentially doubled, with a fairy
world paralleling the human world, into and out of which both fairies
and humans move. A literary continuation into the early modern world
of the medieval matière de Bretagne, an important component of western
literary tradition from the high Middle Ages onward, fairyland fictions’
doubled reality of a fairy realm and a human world incorporates a
sense that the material world of everyday life is subordinate to a divine
or supernatural world and reality. Fairyland fictions also differ signifi-
cantly from fairy tales in that they can end badly, as do Marie-Catherine
d’Aulnoy’s dystopic “L’Île de la Félicité” (The Island of Happiness),
“Le Mouton” (The Ram), and “Le Nain jaune” (The Yellow Dwarf).
Typically the dramatis personae of fairyland fictions foregrounds aristo-
crats and favors the interests of the nobly born, whereas fairy tales often
incorporate the humbly born along with the aristocrat.

8 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Most readers of this study will come to it with some knowledge of
fairy tales and their magic. When fairy tale magic emerged in the tales
of Giovan Francesco Straparola in the Renaissance, its constellation of
characteristics differed from that of the magic in medieval romances,
their immediate antecedents and their literary predecessors. Straparola’s
fairy tale magic is human-centered. That is to say, his fairies direct the
beneficial effects of their fairy tale magic toward human beings, not
toward other supernaturals. Fairy tale supernaturals typically have no
explanatory backstories from a life in a parallel world, and consistent
with those absent biographies, helpful fairy figures generally appear
from nowhere, do their job, and then depart for parts unknown, as in
Straparola’s “Prince Pig” (II.1):
“And it chanced that while she slept there passed by three fairies wh
held mankind somewhat in scorn, and these, when they beheld the
sleeping queen, halted, and gazing upon her beauty, took counsel
together how they might protect her and throw a spell upon her.” After the three do so, they fly away. (Straparola, 1898:1:134–5)
It’s true that these fairies are said to have little regard for mankind, bu
Straparola writes in no explanatory emotions to account for the third
fairy’s contrary wish. Fairy tale magic takes place in this world, the world in which its pro-
tagonists (whether royal or ragamuffin) live and seek their happiness.

If the tales’ heroes leave the earth’s familiar surface on an enchanted
horse, it is to fly to a real geographical location like Cairo or Damasc
(“Livoretto,” III.2). Consistent with its earthbound geography i
s fairy
tale magic’s push for human-centered well-being. That is to say, fairy
tale magic moves a plot toward a happy ending that encompasses physi-
cal comfort (enough to eat), social success (marriage to a royal), a
reproductive permanence (children to succeed them):
“... they all embarked and returned together to Capraia, where with
sumptuous feastings and rejoicings Peter was duly married to Luciana,
and lived with her in great honour and contentment until Luciano
died, and then he became king in his stead.” (“Peter the Fool,”
“After the space of a few days Bellisandra and Livoretto were married

amidst the rejoicings of the whole people, and thus with the princess
as his lawful spouse, with sumptuous triumphs and feastings, and
with the happiest omens, Livoretto was made the Sultan of Cairo,

Tales, Magic, and Fairy Tales 9
where for many years he governed his realm in peace and lived a life
of pleasure and tranquillity.” (“Livoretto,” III.2)
“... and the King Ferrandino with Biancabella and Samaratana lived
long and happily, and when Ferrandino died his son succeeded to his
kingdom.” (“Biancabella,” III.3)
“And by these means Costantino rose from an estate of poverty or
even beggary to be a powerful king, and lived long with Elisetta
his wife, leaving children by her to be the heirs of his kingdom.”
(“Costantino Fortunato,” XI.1)
In a few instances, fairy tale magic retards the achievement of a happy
end. Exemplified by the third fairy’s curse in Straparola’s “Prince Pig,”
it sets in play the need for the titular hero to achieve happiness only
in a third marriage. Later fairy tale authors, such as Giambattista Basile,
would thematize such a retardation in his “Sun, Moon, and Talia” (V.5),
a recasting of the Franco-Iberian romance “Perceforest” as a fairy tale.
Charles Perrault did the same in the 1690s with a hundred-year slumber
caused by a fairy curse, which he accounts for by inventing fairy anger
at not having been included in the princess’s christening banquet. The constellation of human-centered magic agents and effects that
characterize fairy tale magic is a persistent grouping that becomes
institutionalized in the narrative universe from the mid-1500s onward.
Traces of such magic occasionally surface before the 1550s, as in the
first story considered in this study, the ancient Egyptian “Shipwrecked
Sailor,” whose monstrous supernatural serpent promises prosperity,
a good death, and eternal rest to a shipwrecked sailor. Another hint
appears in a medieval Jewish tale, but is undermined in its frametale
by the assertion that the evident impossibility represented by the tale
as a whole (including its happy ending) shows the power of God to
achieve the impossible. None of these magically mediated poor person’
happily-ever-after here on earth took hold, either in ancient Egypt or i
medieval Europe. There simply wasn’t sufficient confirmation for this
plot in the ambient culture, even as a fantasy of wish fulfillment, to
support retellings, and such plots died aborning.
Text choice
It remains to account for the texts that I discuss in the following chap
Some will wonder why I do not include ancient Sumerian tales like the

10 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Inana or Dumuzi tales with their occasional demons, water turning to
blood, counterfactual journey to the underworld, and dream prophecy.
Ancient Indian and Chinese tales are similarly absent, even though
they sometimes contain motifs that recur in medieval Mediterranean
and northern European tales, such as the mythic Hindu giant bird
Garuda, capable of bearing a passenger aloft, and occasionally credited
as the narrative ancestor of the ebony horse in the Arabic Thousand
and One Nights (Chapter 3). In contrast to these isolated antecedents,
the tales and tale traditions examined here participate in a linked
discourse. Greek authors recognized the shape and some of the con-
tent of Egyptian magic tales; authors in the Roman Empire knew the
Greek narrative world intimately; early Muslim writers translated much
Greek learning and literature into Arabic and absorbed many Homeric
adventures into their literary translations. In the Middle Ages there
was well-documented exchange among Jewish, Christian, and Muslim
All of the medieval magic tales discussed here are datable to the early
1500s or before. I did not have access to a datable text of Sindbad the
Sailor and so it does not form part of the chapter devoted to medi-
eval Muslim magic tales, although its tales clearly circulated in the
Muslim Middle Ages. Neither does the “Egyptian” Rhodopis tale appe
here, but for a different reason. Its age is indisputable, but the shoe-
dropped-into-a-pharaoh’s-lap exemplifies a high degree of improb-
ability and is thus implausible but not impossible (Bottigheimer, 2010:
453), literary parameters directly related to the fairy tale genre that
I address in Chapters 4, 6, and 7. I also have not included the “Chin
Cinderella,” purportedly a ninth-century precursor for Charles Perrault’s
well-known version (Waley, 1947; Ting, 1974) because of personal reser-
vations about the tale’s history, which I will explore in another place.

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman
Magic Tales
Middle and New Kingdom magic tales
One of the world’s most ancient recorded stories tells of a sailor ship-
wrecked on a distant island. Just as he gives thanks for his deliverance
, a
monstrously large, gold-skinned serpent with blue eyebrows approaches.
The serpent asks who brought him to these shores, which the sailor,
prostrating himself, answers by telling of the wreck and his survival. In
a sympathetic response, the serpent recounts his own sad history and
promises the sailor rich gifts, a prosperous future, and death and buria
l in
his homeland (Lichtheim, 1973: 1: 211–15; Simpson, 1972: 50–6
Preserved on a nearly 4,000-year-old Egyptian Middle Kingdom papy-
rus, the story has three features familiar from later magic tales: a ship-
wreck, a monster, and a promise of untold wealth. The ancient Egyptian
tale, dated by a copyist’s mark to the early XIIth dynasty between
1991 and 1786 BCE, was written, according to one scholar, in a period
in which popular superstition came to be expressed more freely and
“monsters took a new lease on life” (Fischer, 1987: 17; Petrie, 1895: 45;
Simpson, 1972: 5, 50). Despite its familiar setting (shipwreck) and characters (sailor and
monster), the story transports us into an alien world. The monster is
stranger than any fire-breathing dragon, with its beard, gold-plated
skin, and eyebrows
2 of lapis lazuli. Equally strange to modern eyes is the
1 Since this chapter was written, Hasan El-Shamy has edited and republishe
Gaston Maspero’s well-annotated 1915 Popular Stories of Ancient Egypt.
2 “[E]yebrows” in Lichtheim (1973: 1: 212), “markings” in Si
mpson (1972: 52),
“colour” in Petrie (1999: 39).

12 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
sailor’s response to the monster: he repeatedly abases himself – belly to
the ground, arms bent before him, face covered – promising to honor
the monster in the future, and offering gifts now. To the monster, the
sailor is, and remains, insignificant and inconsequential.
Triply framed, the story is as literarily complex as it is culturally
alien. Its primary narrator is a scribe who states in the manuscript that
he, Amen-aa, son of Ameny, has copied the tale from a written source.
A second internal narrator, identified as a worthy attendant of Egypt’s
monarch, recounts the entire tale to a noble listener as an adventure
that he had himself experienced. Within the attendant’s tale lies a third
embedded tale about the serpent’s miraculous escape from a star’s fiery
destruction of his beloved daughter along with his 75 brothers and
their children. In the scribe’s skillful literary structure, doubling plays
a prominent role,
3 with two descriptions of the ship and its sailors, of
the storm that destroys all save one, and of the serpent’s ultimate gifts.
Suffusing the entire tale is the strangely compelling motif of a human
encounter with the supernatural. The magic in “The Shipwrecked Sailor” recalls the odd magic in oth
Middle Kingdom tales, such as those told to King Cheops in the Westcar
Papyrus. In “The Boating Party” (Lichtheim, 1973: 1: 216–17),
a royal
magician sets one half of a lake’s water atop the water of the other half
to recover a precious jewel lost in its depths.
4 In another tale, a magician
called Djedi knows how to rejoin a severed head to a goose, a heron, or
an ox without disturbing or distressing the animal (ibid.: 217–20).
in “The Birth of the Royal Children,” divinely sired triplets come
the world wearing crowns of lapis lazuli, their limbs overlaid with gold

(ibid.: 220–2). Each of these ancient Egyptian magical interludes has analogues in
later taletelling traditions, but the Egyptian displacement of the human

protagonist from the narrative center in favor of a supernatural creatur
a supernatural ability, or a strangely alien appearance commands our
attention, for this displacement contrasts so sharply with the centralit
of human figures in modern fairy tales. It is as though a monster’s over-
whelming magical appearance stands for the overwhelmingly dominant
3 Simpson points out later allusions to the tale of the sailor shipwrecked
on the
island of serpents (1958: 50 ff.). Brunner-Traut writes of the spread of Egyptian
narrative material in general (1974: 51–65).
4 Removing waters from their seabed parallels, and perhaps prefigures, Mos
creating a dry seabed for the Israelites’ exodus from Egypt, even though the
method of and intent for removal differs.

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 13
pharaonic figure in ancient Egypt’s social structure. On the other hand,
nothing stands between the man and the monster; no intermediary
magician directs the tale’s mantic forces, and in this respect an ancient
Egyptian tale like “The Shipwrecked Sailor” is consistent with mod
fairy godmothers, who simply enter a tale to benefit its protagonist.
The magic in the stories told to King Cheops in the Westcar Papyrus,
on the other hand, mixes its contexts. In some, the pharaoh confronts
magic directly, but in others the pharaoh calls for magic to be per-
formed on his behalf by a magician, a worker of magic by profession.
Thus some of the Westcar papyrus tales bear a resemblance to fairyland
fictions, with their fëerie running parallel to but conceptually sepa
from human life. The Middle Kingdom was followed by the five-century-long New
Kingdom (c1570–c1070 BCE). Tales surviving from that era include
mythic episodes with divinities and impossible apparitions, such as a
ship of stone, as well as tales of parallel worlds (this life and the l
and of
the dead), between which people can be ferried. But for the most part
New Kingdom tales of magic are characterized by magical transforma-
tions, in which strange impregnations turn natural processes upside
down and the laws of nature fade. The most famous New Kingdom tale is “The Two Brothers” (Lichtheim,
1973: 2: 203–11; Simpson, 1972: 92–107), which survives in a single
papyrus from the thirteenth century BCE (Simpson, 1958: 5). Discovered
in 1852, its systematic study began only in 1925 (Wettengel 2006).
A stunning range of motifs familiar from ancient Bible stories and the
modern fairy tale canon are prefigured in its more than 3,000-year-old
plot. There is a failed seduction and a subsequent accusation like that
the story of Joseph and Potiphar’s wife; a speaking cow that gives good
advice; a magical river that protects the hero from pursuit; a separable

soul; an evil prophecy; love for an unknown woman caused by seeing a
single hair from her head; a wife’s fatal betrayal of her husband’s secret;
resuscitation from death; reincarnation; and triply occurring events.
Despite its motivic and thematic familiarity, the sequence of events in the
New Kingdom “Two Brothers” tale is as confoundingly strange to modern
eyes as the earlier Middle Kingdom tale of “The Shipwrecked Sailor”
Two brothers live together. The elder, Anubis, is married; his younger
brother Bata labors for him in the fields. When Anubis’s wife tries to
seduce Bata, he flees, but she claims that Bata had attempted rape.
A cow warns Bata that his enraged brother is in pursuit, but the gods
interpose a river filled with crocodiles to help him escape. From the fa

14 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
side Bata tells his brother what has happened, then castrates himself,
while assuring Anubis that if he, Bata, is ever in mortal danger, the
wine in his (Anubis’s) cup will darken. Anubis returns home and kills
his perfidious wife.
Bata removes his heart from his body and hides it in the top of
a pine tree, where it protects him from danger. Then the sun god
Ra fashions Bata a beautiful wife, whom he warns to be careful of
the sea. When a hair from her head falls into the water, the current
carries it to Pharaoh, who sends messengers to fetch her to him.
Bata kills them, but Pharaoh reaches her by means of an old woman
who lures her away. She agrees to live with Pharaoh and betrays her
husband by revealing the location of his heart. Anubis’s wine immediately darkens, and he goes in search of Bata’s
heart, reunites it with Bata’s body, and restores his brother to life.
Bata then turns himself into a magnificent bull which Pharaoh buys,
but after Bata reveals himself to his wife, she betrays him again and
has Pharaoh slaughter him. From the bull’s blood grow two trees, one of which ceaselessly calls
out his wife’s name. In a third betrayal, she has Pharaoh cut down
the two trees, but a chip from one of the trees flies into her mouth
and impregnates her. The son that is born is Bata in yet another
form, but the unwitting Pharaoh, believing him to be his son, names
him crown prince. At Pharaoh’s death, the apparent son succeeds to
the throne, punishes his faithless wife, rules for thirty years, and is
succeeded by his brother Anubis.
Familiar fairy tale motifs permeate the magical “Two Brothers” tale,
but in its alien plot the tale achieves dynastic ambitions rather than
satisfying the requirement for individual well-being in a happy ending,
the condition so characteristic of modern fairy tales. Classic fairy tale
scholars such as Jan de Vries and Karel Horálek doubt that it can even
be considered an early folk tale, set as it is not within a folk commu-
nity, but within divine and royal spheres, while Wolfgang Wettengel
further distances “The Two Brothers” from folk tradition in asserting
that it is a document composed by or for the royal heir Sethos II to
provide a divine lineage for the Ramesside monarchs (Wettengel, 2006:
16) and in defining it as an early enthronement narrative (ibid.: 4).

In one way or another, magic in these tales is either in the province
or prerogative of pharaonic power. Only in the “Shipwrecked Sailor”
does the happiness (prosperity now, good death later) of a mortal here
on earth play a role.

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 15
Stories of the Ptolemaic period
Ptolemaic stories, composed between 1000 BCE and 100 CE, differ alto-
gether from the Middle and New Kingdom magic tales that preceded
them. In Ptolemaic stories a pharaonic ruler remains at the center of
Egyptian identity, but the stories themselves incorporate episodes that
seem to recapitulate historical developments from the reign of Rameses I
(c 1225 BCE) and from the even earlier generation of Amenhotep III
(c 1375 BCE). In novella-length stories of Setne Khamwas of the
Ptolemaic period (Lichtheim, 1973: 3:125–51), voyages up and down
the Nile appear to stand for historical contact between competing mon-
archies of the upper and lower Nile: the sorcery competitions between
Horus-son-of-Paneshe and Horus-son-of-the-Nubian-woman seem to
represent an ancient, long unresolved, and slow separation of ancient
pharaonic Egypt, as we commonly think of it (pyramids, Thebes,
Memphis) from its even more ancient origins further south (“up the
Nile”) in Nubia. The sense of “Egypt” in these stories is of a
n entity in
motion along a historical continuum.
Narratives from this period, like the Setne Khamwas stories, incor-
porate accounts of a vividly enacted rivalry between magicians from
Nubia and ones from Egypt that end with an Egyptian’s triumph and the
Nubian’s promise to stay clear of Egypt for 1500 years. The overall story
concludes at the end of that period, with the Nubian sorcerer’s return
and his accompanying challenge to Egypt. As the complex stories unfold,
Egyptians beat back Nubian challengers, and later events clarify earlier

episodes in an intellectually engaging manner. A large picture emerges
in which the author claims, and shows, that the gods demonstrate their
preference for Egyptians, their pharaoh, Egypt, and Egypt’s inhabit-
ants, by protecting them against upriver Nubian antagonists. Literarily
sophisticated, the Ptolemaic Setne Khamwas stories present Egypt and
Egyptian-ness in a manner newly self-aware of itself as a community. In the last three centuries BCE and the first three centuries CE, the
Hellenistic and Roman worlds deeply influenced Egypt’s economy and
governance, making it reasonable to assume, as did Flinders Petrie long
ago (1895: 134), that its literary imagination had also been affected.
Something central, perhaps a sense of Egypt’s undeniable loss of cul-
tural and political dominance, underlay changes in the kinds of stories
that were told and the manner in which their component parts were
represented. Magic is a case in point. As in the earlier “Two Brothers,” dramatic
signs, such as darkening wine, inform a helper that a character faces

16 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
grave danger. In the Setne Khamwas stories, the Nubian Horus makes
blood-red colors appear in the sky, in his mother’s food, and in her
drink as a sign for her to rise up, go forth, and save her son. All othe
forms of magic in the Setne Khamwas stories, however, are ones that
are quantifiable in real world terms. Skilled sorcerers know how to
prepare spells for amulets bound on the body to protect their wearers.
In these tales, magic becomes a tool for the hand that possesses it.
Above all, they know how to make wax images, to recite spells to the
images, to breathe life into them, and to have them carry out the
sorcerers’ directives, so that through their crafted images, sorcerers
transport a rival monarch into their own kingdom and maltreat him
humiliatingly before sending him home. Once again, magic serves
dynastic ends.
In Ptolemaic tales, gaining magical power is a physical undertaking.
For instance, possessing the book of magic written by the great god
Thoth confers the power to wield the book’s magic. Gaining access to
the book, an arduous undertaking, requires overpowering six miles of
serpents, scorpions, and reptiles surrounding the seven boxes encased
one inside the other. Made respectively of iron, copper, juniper, ivory,
ebony, silver, and gold, the last contains the sought-after sacred book.
As though to emphasize magic’s physicality, the owner of Thoth’s book
literally ingests its knowledge:
First he copied every word onto new papyrus, soaked the papyrus in
beer, dissolved it in water, and drank the resulting brew. This gained
him complete knowledge of the book’s contents. (Lichtheim, 1973:
3: 131; Petrie, 1895: 138).
Although the appropriator of Thoth’s magic powers ultimately dies,
because he isn’t the person appointed to bear Thoth’s magic, that fact
is less important than the physical manner in which he acquires the
book’s magical knowledge. A similar sense of the physical thinginess of
magical abilities emerges from the description of the Nubian sorcerer
Horus, who hurried down to Egypt “crammed with sorcery,” in the
words of Miriam Lichtheim (1973: 3:148).
5 It is interesting to note that a 2012 New York State Supreme Court case involved
precisely the same procedure. Cheik Ndal, called as an expert in Senegal
ese spells,
testified that he had helped an infertile woman become pregnant by writi
verses from the Koran on a piece of paper and having her soak the paper
water, which she then drank, after which she became pregnant (Yee, 2012: A24).

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 17
New Kingdom tales are rich in motifs that survived into, or were
revived in, modern times. Constituting a veritable catalog of later
magic-tale elements, they also provide enough plot elements common
to the Egyptian tales, the Hebrew Bible, and modern fairy tales to sug-
gest that the Old Testament functioned as a significant link in a chain
of transmission and dissemination of fairy tale motifs from the ancient
to the modern world:
1. The long-barren couple who have a son through supernatural inter- vention in the Egyptian New Kingdom tradition closely parallels the
Old Testament story of the aged Abraham, his barren wife Sarah, the
angel who promises Abraham that his descendants will be as numer-
ous as the stars in the sky, and the infant Isaac born to Sarah.
2. Egyptian magic wands parallel those belonging to Moses and Aaron in the land of Pharaoh.
3. Speaking animals remind us of Balaam’s ass.
4. Two rival brothers could be Jacob and Esau, although unlike Bata and Anubis, the Biblical brothers don’t achieve eventual harmony.
5. Contests between Pharaoh’s magicians and foreign sorcerers recall, and parallel, Biblical accounts of Moses and Aaron dueling with
Pharaoh’s sorcerers.
Whether ancient Hebrew stories borrowed from Egyptian ones or
whether it was the other way round (though most modern Biblical
scholars hold that the former is true) is of less significance than tha
ultimately the Hebrew Bible mediated motifs from ancient Egyptian
magic tales to the modern world. So, too, did Renaissance study of
Roman texts provide a link between ancient Egypt and early mod-
ern Europe. François Rabelais, for instance, reported learning about
Egyptian monsters from reading the Roman Lucian (Fischer, 1987: 13). Plots, characters, and characterizations of Egypt’s magic tales describe
a worldview notably distinct from that in Greek and Roman tales. The
tale of a long-barren couple’s son, a doomed prince, who does not and
cannot escape his predicted fate, parallels the inexorability of Oedipus
predicted fate, but the protagonists of Greek and Roman magic tales
do not prostrate themselves before an omnipotent monarch who func-
tions as a divinity-on-earth. Instead, Greek and Roman heroes and
monarchs share the same fleshly debts to their mortal existence from
birth through life to death and interment. That simple fact imbues
magic stories of ancient Greece and Rome with a sense of humanity
to which modern readers can still relate, while most Egyptian magic

18 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
tales exemplify social relationships that distance their protagonists so

greatly from one another that their plots remain largely alien to modern

Magic tales of the ancient Greek and Roman worlds
The most ancient Greek narratives known to us in the modern world
are myths of origins. Some portray the generation of the gods them-
selves followed by their elementally ferocious achievements of indi-
vidual primacy: conniving against her brutal husband, Kronos’s mother
instructed her son precisely how and when to castrate his father.
Again differing from Egyptian divinities, many gods and goddesses
in the early Greek pantheon personify earthborn forces (such as earth-
quakes) and natural phenomena (such as wind, water, vegetation, and
human and animal life). Many such narratives address questions of
origins, such as, “How did the waters of the world – the springs,
rivers, seas, and oceans – come into existence?” with narrative an
they sprang from the union of the Titan Oceanus with his sister Tethys. Homer’s Iliad and Odyssey (c800 BCE) and Hesiod’s Theogony and
Works and Days (c700 BCE) are rich sources for Greek mythology. The
Homeric Hymns, composed over a span of two centuries in the 600s and
500s BCE, describe divinities such as the radiant moon goddess Selene
driving her shining team of horses across the heavens. Inserted into
Selene’s hymn is a tiny history, just a few lines long, that recounts Zeus’s
loving union with her which produced the shimmering creature Pandia,
whose beauty may be understood as the light of the moon – hence,
another myth of origins. The many peoples who populated the Greek mainland, the Cycladic
islands, the coastal areas of the Black Sea, and the coast and mainland
of today’s Turkey migrated from the north and the east. Each brought
along myths of origins, which accounts for a considerable range of
local variations in Greek myth. As ancient Greeks encountered peoples
on their cultural periphery, they absorbed new narratives and story
elements, with the result that the specifics of tales about major and
minor divinities differ from one place to another, as well as changing
over time. Stories about Phoebus Apollo provide an excellent example both of
local variation and chronological change. Over centuries, stories of
the divinity Phoebus slowly merged with those of Apollo to produce
Phoebus Apollo. His birth then became a myth in its own right about
the Delian Apollo, which tells of the pregnant Leto wandering the

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 19
Greek mainland and islands in search of a place that will accept her.
When she promises to build a great temple in conjunction with an
oracle on the island of Delos, averring that it would bring them great
wealth, she finally finds refuge, and hence a place to give birth. The
myth of Pythian Apollo, on the other hand, gives evidence of a historic
displacement of an earth goddess in a different location, Delphi. And
finally, because of the prominence of Apollonian myth as a whole, and
because of Apollo’s special attributes, over time he comes into contact –
sometimes sexual, sometimes competitive – with a variety of mortals
and immortals (which nearly always ends badly for his partners), pro-
ducing narrative cycles characterized by processes of amalgamation and
Similarly, Selene moon stories and Artemis fertility myths mingled
over the course of centuries with chaste huntress narratives produc-
ing locally varying goddess figures, one of the most startling of which
is the many-breasted, animal-draped, and disk-crowned Artemis of
Ephesus, a cult figure that lurks behind Chapter 19 of the Biblical Acts

of the Apostles, where a silversmith named Demetrius, a maker of silver
shrines of Artemis, voices his concerns about losing his livelihood if t
disciple Paul’s teachings cause the great temple of Artemis at Ephesus to
fall into disrepute (Acts 19: 23–29). The mythic narratives discussed above show the complex inter-
relationships in narrative genres. As tales of origins, they differ from

magic tales, but the divinities who populate those tales also magically
shapeshift in other tales, and help or hinder heroes in encounters with
monsters who, by definition, belong to the world of magic. Memorialized on the Parthenon’s frieze, cross-species centaurs, half
man and half horse, occupy a disproportionately large space in memo-
ries of Greek monsters. Most other ancient Greek monsters are varia-
tions from a norm. Instead of two eyes, they have one, like Cyclops. Or
instead of one head they have many, like the 50-headed Hecatonchires,
born from the union of Gaia (Earth) and Uranus (Sky). Or they behave

abnormally, emerging from the sea to entangle Laokoon and his sons.
The narrative richness of Greek myth produced monsters of a sort that
survived in human memory to animate later magic tales. Interactions between humans and the gods and goddesses of early
Greek myth come to the fore in Homer’s epic poetry, with Olympus’s
alliances and hatreds reflected in gods’ and goddesses’ competing
port for Greek and Trojan warriors. Shapeshifting abounds, and gigantic
figures and forces in disparate shapes threaten destruction to Odysseus,
as well as to his companions who fall to supernatural adversaries.

20 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Earthly sorceresses, too, endangered Odysseus’s companions. On the
island of Aeaea all but Odysseus and Eurylochus turned into swine
when Circe
mixed them a potion – cheese, barley
and pale honey mulled in Pramnian wine –
but into the brew she stirred her wicked drugs
to wipe from their memories any thoughts of home.
Once they’d drained the bowls she filled, suddenly
she struck with her wand, drove them into her pigsties,
all of them bristling into swine – with grunts,
snouts – even their bodies, yes . . . (Homer, 1996: Book 10: ll. 257–64)
When Odysseus pleads for their restoration, Circe anoints them with
a new magic oil that undoes the effects of the first wicked drug and
renders them taller and more handsome than before and with their
memories returned. In succeeding centuries, the ancient Greek-speaking world developed
into small, independent city-states, organized into larger but loose
systems of alliances. The many Hellenic city-states shared a belief sys-
tem more or less in common, but local versions of stories about their
divinities still differed in detail. Look where we may, we find no brief
narratives in which beneficent magic – whether embodied in or medi-
ated by gods, goddesses, demigods, or natural spirits – acts on behal
f of
ordinary men or women to bring about earthly reward or here-and-now
happiness. There are wisdom tales that communicate stark warnings
against making wishes or asking supernaturals to grant special favors:
one need only remember the awful consequences of King Midas’s wish
for his touch to turn whatever he touched to gold. At its most benefi-
cent, magic, in the form of an oil that undoes a prior enchantment,
restores Odysseus’s men to their human form. For the rest, a golden
touch threatens Midas with physical starvation (because everything he
touches turns to incomestible gold) and emotional loss, as every one he
embraces stiffens into the precious metal. What remains are occasional tales of malicious magic, such as
Medea’s horrifying abilities that Euripides memorialized in in his late
fifth-century drama. Even though it is not a “tale,” that is, a brief nar-
rative, Medea’s story as we know it from Euripides must be addressed,
because Medea’s sorcery so well manifests the malice that seems to
drive the magic in ancient tales. Euripides’s Medea, a granddaughter
of the sun and a devotee of Hecate, claims credit for saving Jason from

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 21
fire-breathing bulls and magical warriors and for slaying the monstrous
snake guarding the Golden Fleece (1974: ll. 475–87). But having bee
set aside so that Jason can marry a new wife, Medea becomes “a danger-
ous woman” (l. 40). She steeps a gown and a golden diadem in deadly

poisons which her sons deliver as wedding gifts to Jason’s bride. Putting
them on, “her color changes . . . white froth spuming at her lips, he
eyeballs bulging all askew,” and “[t]he golden diadem that clasped her
head burst into a voracious and uncanny flow of fire, while the robe of
gossamer [her] children gave her began to eat her tender flesh away”
(ll. 1168–88). The sorceress then kills her (and Jason’s) two sons and
departs together with their dead bodies in a chariot drawn by dragons.
Medea’s magic first gains her the husband she passionately yearns
for, and then utterly destroys his joy and hers. On Jason’s side, Medea’s
magic wins him the Golden Fleece and ten years of marriage but makes
him an alien in the city of Corinth without a secure future. When he
approaches royal status by aspiring to the hand of King Creon’s daugh-
ter, Medea’s magic destroys his hopes. The absence in Greece of fairy tales of the modern sort with their
magically mediated happy endings for riff-raff and royalty alike is
surprising, and the noted classicist Stephanie West pointed out that
“[t]he lack of references in Greek literature to storytellers and Märchen
has often excited comment” (2003: 65).
6 Evidently, the many parallels
in motif but not in plot between ancient Greek myths and modern fairy
tales designate a cultural transfer of building blocks (motifs) that o
much later became part of fairy tale plots. Neither at the time of Athenian hegemony nor under Alexander the
Great nor during the Hellenistic period as a whole were Greek stories
about their gods and goddesses gathered into a single, internally con-
sistent narrative. That happened first in Rome around the turn of the
millennium, when Ovid composed the Metamorphoses. Publius Ovidius
Naso was born in 43 BCE in provincial Sumona, on the eastern side of
the mountainous Italian spine. Poetry came easily to him, and from an
early age he wrote and published copiously. Greek myths crept into his
Art of Love, with its stories of Daedalus and Icarus, Cephalus and Procris,
and Theseus and Ariadne. Talented and charming, Ovid (who once
said that poetry flowed from his lips of its own accord) took pleasure
6 West based her statement on A. Scobie, “Storytellers, storytelling, and the novel
in Graeco-Roman antiquity,” RhM 122 (1979): 229–59. Even Albert Wesselski,
with his more elastic definition of “Märchen” asserts its absence from Greek and
Roman antiquity (1931: 57).

22 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
in Rome’s literary salons. In style he followed the witty verse of his
contemporaries, but in mid-life Ovid’s fortunes shifted consequentially.
Just as he finished Metamorphoses in 8 CE, Ovid was banished to the far
reaches of the Roman Empire to a painfully isolated life on the western
shores of the Black Sea. It is certainly possible that his sudden remova
from Rome resulted from a literary inadvertence in the Metamorphoses,
for in one of its last stories, a character advocates killing a ruler, which,
in the years directly after Julius Caesar’s assassination, showed a risky
lapse of judgment on Ovid’s part. It was just as the Metamorphoses was
becoming public that he went into exile, where he remained until his
death in 17 CE at the age of 60. Ovid’s Metamorphoses brought together Greek stories since studied
by numberless generations of pupils of Latin: the creation, the flood,
the Titans, their successors the gods and goddesses of Mount Olympus,
stories of the human origins of countless trees, rocks, and birds, as we
as the human causes of the Trojan War. To all of that, Ovid added mate-
rial with Roman coloration, such as the wanderings of Ulysses and of
Aeneas, the founding of Rome, the assassination of Julius Caesar, and
the reign of Augustus Caesar. The 15 books of the Metamorphoses begin with the formless chaos
of an evolving universe and conclude with an ordered universe under
Augustan rule. Within the overall transformation from originary chaos
to Roman order, Ovid details some 250 metamorphoses of divine bod-
ies. A staple in the repertoire of magic, metamorphosis is one of the
forms of magic that typically enables fairy tale heroes and heroines to
ward off danger, perform impossible tasks, withstand supernatural trials,
and achieve earthly happiness. But Ovid’s metamorphoses change gods
and goddesses into forms that enable them to waylay and overpower
earthly beings. In stories that account for the existence of specific la
bushes, maple, oak, or evergreen trees, beautiful damsels fleeing from
divine but unwelcome lovers see bark cover their bodies and watch their
hair turn to leaves. Other girls in flight turn into bears, heifers, cro
rocks, and rivers, although now and again a vicious deity is punished
by being transformed into a rock or a bird. Whatever else metamorphic
magic achieves, it is not a happily-ever-after ending for the tales’
and girls, men and women. Ovid’s Metamorphoses embodies a grand vision of Mediterranean story-
telling, with stories arranged to make it easy for readers to understand

that vision. Chaos came first, then the flood, and then Egyptian power,
which he identifies by repeated references to the Nile and its annual
flooding. Ovid also works in explanations of Egypt’s early dominance

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 23
by declaring that the Nile stopped Io’s wanderings or that the sun dried
up the river when Phaethon passed too close to the earth in his disas-
trous attempt to drive the chariot of the sun across the heavens.
Ovid retains the characteristically Egyptian primacy of the sun and
of its deity Ra when he details the sun’s role in creating animals from
moist muck. Even more telling is Ovid’s retention of the color blue as a
marker of divinity – his Jupiter’s azure brow
7 recalls the lapis lazuli on
the brows of pharaohs and their consorts, as well as on the face of the
monster that begins this chapter. Similarly many of Ovid’s early stories
in the Metamorphoses, such as Deucalion and Pyrrha, maintain the quin-
tessentially Egyptian royal practice of brother–sister marriage. Ovid stresses a developmental link between Egyptian origins and
subsequent Greek gods and goddesses, repeatedly reminding readers
that the king and queen of the Greek pantheon, Jupiter and Juno (to
use Ovid’s Latin names for Zeus and Hera) were brother and sister. Like
the Greeks who named their chief deity Zeus Ammon, Ovid surnames
the king of the Greek pantheon Ammon. His “Jupiter Ammon,” at the
end of Book IV and again at the beginning of Book V, recalls and clearly
incorporates the Egyptian god Amun into his Latin-language stories of
Greek mythology. In subsequent books, however, Ovid’s stories begin
gradually to imply that civilized society rejects incestuous marriages,
so that by Book IX, Byblis, besotted with love for her brother Caunus,
recognizes that her love is both wicked and unnatural, although she
continues to invoke the gods as a model for her incestuous desires. As
Byblis learns to her cost, brother–sister unions remain in the distan
past between deities governed by laxer laws. Ovid envisages the Greek narrative world in triplicate:
1. a present time in which actions actually take place,
2. a present parallel universe of powerful divinities who intrude into the human world and require sacrificial propitiation,
3. and a mythologized history, in which past events account for the shape – as in rocks and woods – of the contemporary human world.
Of these three, only the gods’ and goddesses’ parallel world is co
tiguous with the magically parallel worlds of medieval, early modern,
and modern fairyland fictions. By Book XIV, the next to last in the
7 “Nec renuit Iovis caerulum supercilium…” Apuleius, 1965: Book VI, 258, para-
graph 7.

24 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Metamorphoses, Ovid moves beyond the physically brutal punishments
and retributions among protagonists of the Greek world to accounts
of humane judgments rendered by Rome’s mythic founder Romulus.
When the Nile reappears in the final book, it is as a river conquered
by Julius Caesar and brought under Roman rule. Caesar’s assassination
changes nothing, as Rome’s enlightened rule continues under Ovid’s
much praised contemporary, Augustus.
A mighty intellectual achievement, the Metamorphoses demonstrates
Ovid’s mastery of Greece’s vast body and disparate components of
mythic narrative. At the height of his literary powers, he unites them
into a single overarching vision by focusing on a single aspect in all the
stories he retold – transformations. Gripped by the intersection of Jason and Medea’s lives, Ovid wrote a
now lost tragic drama. In composing the Metamorphoses Ovid made their
tale one of its longest stories. He lingers over Medea’s passionate love
for Jason, his promise to marry her if she helps him, and her provision
of magic herbs and drugs and her chanting of magic spells to help him
prevail in the impossible tasks set by her father. And when Ovid finally
reaches the rejuvenation of Jason’s father, the metamorphosis that justi-
fies including Jason and Medea in the Metamorphoses, he breaks with
most prior narrative tradition by bringing her “skillful” potion c
to the page: her preparations for invoking the full moon, her page-long
detailed address to Hecate, her receiving in return a chariot drawn by
winged dragons, and her nine-day and -night passage passage through
the Hellenic world gathering herbs, roots, and waters. Then begins the
concocting and decocting of newly sacrificed black-fleeced sheep’s blood,
wine, and warm milk to the sound of her spells and prayers to earth and
underworld spirits. Only then does she begin to treat the aged body of
Jason’s father, laying him out on a carpet of strewn herbs, fumigating
his body with torches of flaming black blood, and boiling up a cauldron
(whose recipe is given in endless detail), slitting his throat, draini
ng his
blood, and replacing it with the cauldron’s rejuvenating juices. Aeson
arises young, strong, and unwrinkled from his bed of herbs. The metamorphosis that Medea works would seem to bring fairy tale
happiness here on earth for the now youthful Aeson. But Ovid makes
her magic lead directly to tragedy, as she uses her success with Aeson to
gull Pelias’s daughters to let her treat their father whom Medea hates.
Their filial love overcomes their equally filial reluctance, and when
they’ve mortally wounded their father, Medea slits his throat to silence
him and then pitches his body into a cauldron of boiling water and
ordinary herbs. Thus does her beneficent magic turn malevolent.

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 25
Ovid’s Metamorphoses also borrows heavily from Greek poets, anthologies
of myths, and the Ornithogonia (accounts of men transformed into birds)
by the Greek author Boios. He may also have used stories by Nicander
of Colophon, and he undoubtedly consulted some of the many earlier
books that were similarly entitled Metamorphoses that we now know
only because their titles were mentioned in other authors’ works. Modern readers of Ovid’s Metamorphoses are often surprised, even
repelled, by his evident comfort with gory physical encounters: horrify-
ing dismemberment (Pentheus’s mother tears him to bits in a Bacchic
frenzy), violent infanticide (Athamas smashes the head of his baby
Learchus against a rock; Procne cooks and serves her child to its father),
and patricide (Pelias’s daughters’ hack him to death). Human encounters
with animals are equally hideous: the Calydonian boar gores Ancaeus so
surgically effectively that his organs slip out and trail along the grou
Slaughter is prominent from Book I onward. In Book XII the Battle of the

Lapiths and Centaurs lasts for nine pages, during which Ovid explores
killing by puncturing, gouging, slicing, tearing, and smashing:
The broad dome of [Phaeocomes’s] skull was shattered, and soft brain
matter oozed out through his mouth, through the hollows of his
nostrils and his eyes and ears, just as clotted milk trickles through th
woven oak twigs of a basket or as the thick liquid, under the sieve’s
pressure, oozes through the close hole of the mesh.
A second estranging aspect of Ovid’s stories involves sexual desire.
Sexual encounters typically begin with priapic pursuit, with passion-
inflamed male suitors chasing down and ravishing beautiful girls.
Apollo chases Daphne; Jupiter pursues Io as well as Diana’s nymph
Callisto, and – as a bull – mounts Agenon’s daughter. Apollo, Neptune,
Mercury, and Pluto engage in sexual assaults, setting an example that
demigods and humans follow with brutal enthusiasm. Women’s lust provides the second largest category in Ovid’s
Metamorphoses. However, only a handful of women (Echo, Naiad, Byblis,
and Myrrha) run after cruelly unattainable men (the self-absorbed
Narcissus, the disinterested Hermaphrodite, the repelling brother Caunus,
and the criminally forbidden father Cinyras). Violent sexual pursuit in
the Metamorphoses privileges men.
Grief is as mortally dangerous as lust but dangerous for the sufferer:
Hylonome falls on the spear that killed her beloved Cyllarus in the
battle of the Lapiths and Centaurs. Dido falls on a sword when Aeneas
departs without her. Redressing the gender imbalance so evident in the

26 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
achievement of heterosexual erotic desire, Ovid introduces accounts of
passionate homosexual devotion as well as a host of aberrant encoun-
ters that end in death, grief, or transformation.
In the hundreds of brief narratives in Ovid’s Metamorphoses, human
experience in this world is not once valorized, validated, or crowned
with earthly happiness. Instead of explaining the world, individual
tales describe men’s and women’s encounters with mythic figures that
lead to suffering and death. Ovid’s version of human experience both
implies and teaches the fundamental importance of avoiding intersec-
tions with the other-worldly and the supernatural. Their magic powers
more often than not pose a mortal threat to human happiness, even to
an individual’s survival. Although seemingly magical shapeshifting defines Ovid’s stories,
these transformations provide compelling evidence for the gods’ and
goddesses’ unquestioned and unquestionable dominion over earthly
creatures. If earthlings achieve happiness, it is a rare condition, atta
despite the gods and not because of their active intervention. A remark-
ably non-, un-, or even anti-fairy tale quality pervades Ovid’s brief
mythic narratives, something that is even truer of his longer ones. His
stories about Jason and Medea, Byblis and Caunus, Myrra and Cinyras,
Alcyon and Ceyx, and the Lapiths and the Centaurs are bleak narratives
of misery that end either with a violent and gory death or with dissolu-
tion of the physical body and its transformation into eternal lament. Individual stories in the Metamorphoses display motifs, episodes, and
narrative images that endured for centuries:
1. a chained princess ultimately rescued from a dragon (Hesione and Hercules),
2. three impossible tasks (Hercules and the princess Deianira),
3. magic herbs (Circe and Medea),
4. a cannibalistic giant (Polyphemus in the Odyssey),
5. Circe, a powerful manipulator of magic and caster of spells (the Odyssey),
6. two stepmothers-turned-old-women, Juno and Pallasa, and
7. chariots pulled by a dragon, a lion, or a swan skimming through the air.
The first five of these motifs from familiar Greek mythology or from
Ovid’s Latin compendium reappear in the Middle Ages, are integrated
into chivalric romances, and slip smoothly into fairy tales from the
Italian Renaissance onward. The last two gain prominence only in early
modern and modern fairy tales, that is, with the rebirth of the classics
and translations of Greek and Latin writings into Italian and other

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 27
vernaculars in the later 1500s. 8 What is significant, however, is that the
ethic of the ancient Greek or Roman tales in which these motifs appear
is one that neither valorizes nor seeks to realize earthly well-being and
happiness for their human protagonists. The Ovidian ethic is diametri-
cally opposed to that of the happy human endings celebrated in num-
berless tales from the early modern period onward. Ovid reputedly boasted that his Metamorphoses would carry his name
through the ages. Many now-forgotten poets have comforted them-
selves with such a belief, but Ovid was right. In the Middle Ages he
was the most popular of the Latin poets. Schoolboys used his Latin
verse as a grammar school and university model for their writing. In
France literate adults read the French Ovide moralisé, which in 1340 was Christianized and translated into Latin as Ovidius Moralizatus, after
which schoolboys and university students were able to study Ovid’s
Metamorphoses as religiously acceptable assigned Latin readings. So
important was the rewritten Metamorphoses that French writers could
refer to Ovidius moralizatus as La Bible des poetes. From the twelfth-
century writings of Chrétien de Troyes and Gottfried von Strassburg
through the pan-European thirteenth-century Alexander Book and the
fourteenth-century Amorosa Visione of Boccaccio, medieval authors took
Ovid’s stories and his transformative magic into their own works. In Italy
Boccaccio rediscovered Ovid’s Metamorphoses in its pre-Christianized
Latin form, and reintroduced the Latin Ovid to European readers. By the late Middle Ages and the early modern period, the Metamorphoses’s
reach extended beyond French and Latin. By then its many incarnations
had also been translated into German, English, Italian, Spanish, Czech,
and Polish and had been distributed far and wide in copies printed in
the thousands. Fifteenth-, sixteenth-, and seventeenth-century printed
editions of the Metamorphoses, both in Latin and in European vernacu-
lars, flowed from print centers in Venice, Lyons, Antwerp, London, Paris,
Frankfurt, and Leipzig, as well as from small provincial presses like
those in Parma, Verona, Pineroli, and Florence in Italy or in Rostock
in the northern Germanies. All over Europe wherever there were afflu-
ent and leisured readers eager for stories to pass leisure hours, Ovid’
Metamorphoses were available on booksellers’ shelves in a language that
Hans and his wife, Anne and her husband, or Pietro and all his kin could

read and understand. In terms of its long-term influence, the general
8 Baucis and Philemon’s tale is the exact inverse of the Grimms’ morality tale,
No. 19 “The Fisher and His Wife.”

28 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
availability of Ovidian imagery would prove to be crucial for the contents
of early modern brief narratives of magic.
The Golden Ass of Apuleius
The life of Lucius Apuleius (c123 CE–date of death uncertain) exemp
fies the Roman Empire’s unifying effect on the Mediterranean world.
His mother and his well-off father, a provincial magistrate, lived in
Madauros (the Mdaourouch of present-day Algeria) in the Roman prov-
ince of Numidia. Supported by a small inheritance, Apuleius began his
studies in Carthage, continued in Athens and Rome where he immersed
himself in rhetoric, later becoming a successful lawyer.
At 33 Apuleius was in Oea, a town on the shore of the Gulf of Sirta in
today’s Libya, visiting an old friend from his student days, when he fell
ill. Nursed back to health by his friend, he became acquainted with his
friend’s attractive, wealthy, and widowed mother. Engaged at the time
to an in-law, she scandalized her family by switching her affection, and
her fortune, to the younger Apuleius. The family retaliated with a law-
suit, charging Apuleius with using magic to alienate her affections. The

trial resulted not only in Apuleius’s vindication, but also in his publica-
tion of an apologia, Pro se de magia. Apuleius returned to Carthage sometime around 161 CE, enjoying
public renown as a poet, philosopher, and rhetorician, and also becom-
ing the chief priest of Numidia. Two statues were erected in his honor:
one in Carthage and the other in the town of his birth, Madauros. Apuleius’s crudely erotic stories, entitled The Metamorphoses of Lucius
Apuleius, were united within a fictive first-person frametale whose narra-
tor’s comic sufferings began when a servant girl, meaning to transform
him into an owl, mistakenly turned him into an ass ( asinus). Passed
from one owner to another, the frametale man-turned-into-an-ass
retained his human intellect, hearing stories and seeing events that he
“recorded” when he regained human shape. The precise date of Apuleius’s composition remains unknown. Two
hundred or so years later, the church father St Augustine, disapproving
of Apuleius’s book, transmitted to the modern world a less lofty and
more popular title, The Golden Ass. Augustine, born in Apuleius’s home
town, had grown up there and, as a schoolboy, probably saw the stat-
ues that celebrated Apuleius both in Medauros and in Carthage where
Augustine, like Apuleius, studied at university. Stories from Lucius of Samosata’s Lucius, or The Ass are recycled in the
Golden Ass: in one, a harridan innkeeper plagues and then kills a man

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 29
called Socrates; in another a corpse is guarded against gods who take
on the shape of mice and a weasel to attack it. There are eunuch priests

who trick the gullible with fake predictions, and two classic stories of

clever adultery that Boccaccio took straight into the Decameron 1200
years later (VII. 2 and V.10). Amid these scabrous stories, like a diamond
on a dunghill, sits the brilliantly conceived “Cupid and Psyche.”
length places it firmly within the novella genre, but it has the overall

plot trajectory of a restoration fairy tale, whose royally-born heroine is
expelled from royal estate, suffers tasks and trials, and at the conclu-
sion, marries royalty and is restored to an elevated position. Much of
the tale’s declared magic is fabricated by Psyche’s sisters; the rest is bor-
rowed from the mythic qualities attributed to antique divinities.
Before Apuleius’s “Cupid and Psyche” there is neither allusion to nor
mention of any such story in Greek or Roman tradition. Greek mythol-
ogy credits Cupid’s well-aimed arrows for other irrational loves, such
as Apollo’s for Daphne and Pluto’s for Proserpine, but is silent on the
subject of Cupid’s love for Psyche and hers for him. There are individual
similarities between Apuleius’s tale and its predecessors, but when all of
the differences in his tale are put together, it is plain that “Cupid and
Psyche” represents a new kind of story. Gender antagonisms in Ovid’s
Metamorphoses had principally involved girls’ and women’s flights from
pursuing males. In “Cupid and Psyche,” however, the issues are more
complex. Venus becomes jealous of Psyche when her worshipers begin
adoring Psyche’s beauty and neglecting Venus’s temples. Psyche’s fam-
ily is described in psychological terms that are characteristic of novel
while the details of the marriages of Psyche’s sisters and of the four
impossible tasks with which Venus plagues her, both of which survive
in the expanded fairyland fictions composed by late seventeenth-
century conteuses like Mlle Lhéritier and Mme d’Aulnoy, amplify the
tale’s tensions. In introducing the plot element that Psyche’s child
would be born divine if she kept the secret of her husband’s identity,
but mortal if she divulged it, Apuleius links curiosity to speech and co
sequent punishment, a concept unfamiliar in secular literature before
the turn of the millennium. (The Greek Pandora myth had blamed the
titular heroine for her curiosity, but speech played no role.) Classically
Greek in feeling (recalling Medea’s tricking the daughters of Pelias) is the
cleverly murderous revenge that Psyche takes on her sisters, each of
9 Cupid’s divinity in The Golden Ass is replaced by a beast- or monster-lover’s
royalty in later iterations of this plot.

30 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
whom she induces to throw herself over a cliff to a bloody death on
the rocks below. The psychological drama of Psyche’s human isolation
(when both Ceres and Juno refuse to help her) culminates in Jupiter’
pronouncing her immortal.
“Cupid and Psyche” is the longest tale in Apuleius’s Metamorphoses,
one sixth of the entire text. Told by a crone hired by kidnappers to
guard a terrified girl abducted from her own wedding ceremony, “Cupid
and Psyche” is a love story with a happy ending. In particular, its plot
plays out between an earthling (Psyche) and a divinity (Cupid), who
themselves caught within a web of jealousies and power plays between
parallel worlds, that of the gods and goddesses on Mount Olympus and
of humans on earth, with the story’s happy resolution brought about
by supernatural intervention. It is the intervention of divinities into
human lives that counts as magic in Apuleius’s “Cupid and Psyche” and
that provides a model for fairy interventions into human lives in fairy-
land fictions and a template for fairy godmothers in fairy tales. To modern eyes, the ending of “Cupid and Psyche” should foretell an

equally happy conclusion for the unhappy frametale captive to whom
the tale is told. But her fate is alas a miserable one: she falls victim
to an
old admirer who kills her husband and whose eyes she tears out before
falling on her husband’s sword in a miserably magicless conclusion. Apuleius’s story furnishes the basic narrative materials for one of
Europe’s most enduringly popular fairy tales, “Beauty and the Beast.”
But it is important to realize that for Apuleius, the beastliness of the

groom was purely psychological in its origin and in the maintenance
of the illusion of a repulsive appearance: the Apollonian oracle at
Delphi, enigmatic as always, prophesied Psyche’s eventual marriage
not to a mortal son-in-law but to “a dire mischief, viperous and fier
in the words of Robert Graves’s translation (Apuleius, 1951: 100). It
is Psyche’s two sisters who persuade her that she had married a mon-
strous serpent, whose true identity, they say, is hidden from her by the
nighttime darkness that Cupid forbids Psyche to illuminate. Central
to understanding Apuleius’s story is recognizing two profound differ-
ences between it and tales of the “Beauty and the Beast” type: Psy
beloved is never a beast who needs to be magically transformed into
a handsome prince, and her love is never needed to redeem him from
an enthralling magic. Instead, in Apuleius’s novella, Psyche’s love for
Cupid is reinforced by the seductively smooth body of the man whose
arms embrace her nightly. She never confronts, and is never required
to love, a visible monster, as do the heroines of modern “Beauty and
the Beast” tales.

Egyptian, Greek, and Roman Magic Tales 31
A number of motifs that ultimately become a standard part of the
modern fairy tale repertoire form part of Apuleius’s collection of tales: a
magic salve that turns Lucius into an animal; multiple impossible tasks;

transformations by a witch of people into animals (a beaver, a frog,
and a ram respectively); the magic revival of a corpse; and taletelling

as therapy for a suffering frametale girl, which recurs in Basile’s Tale of
Tales. More important, however, is the fact that “Cupid and Psyche” is
a rare story from antiquity that rewards a heroine’s sufferings with a
wedding to her beloved. The wedding does not take place on earth, it
is true, and neither does the tale’s happily-ever-after. Along with “The
Shipwrecked Sailor,” “Cupid and Psyche” is one of the rare short narra-
tives from the ancient world that valorizes human happiness, that does
not allow a supernatural to destroy a human protagonist’s happiness,
and that has a happy ending ... in heaven. The actual practice of magic remains generally obscure in brief narra-
tives of magic in the ancient world. The ink in which Egyptian magic
formulas are written may be dissolved in beer and drunk to gain powers,
but that abbreviated account together with Ovid’s lengthy recital of
Medea’s magical preparations are a rarity among the classic world’s
declarations that magic has taken place. Magic itself remains undetailed

in “Cupid and Psyche,” despite Apuleius’s awareness of magic practices
like catoptric magic (performing magic with mirrors), hydromancy, divi-
nation, and sacrifices (Apuleius, 1997: 2: 57–8, 127, 153) and desp
ite the
misdeeds of the sorceress Meroe written into Book I of the Metamorphoses
and Apuleius’s subsequent humor at maladroit magicianship’s turning
Lucius into a donkey in its frametale. The fact that only Ovid puts the
practice of magic on the page grabs our attention, precisely because tal
of magic in the ancient world deal with the effects of magic or with
magic itself as an effect of suprahuman and supernatural powers rather
than with the actual practice of magic.

Jewish Magic Tales
This chapter’s explorations of Jewish magic tales rest on Hebrew
manuscript books that are traceable to specific geographic locations or
particular historical eras, and sometimes to both. Biblical histories fr
the Torah, the first five books of the canonical Bible, underlay centu-
ries of Jewish tellings of magic tales and also provided plot outlines o
characters for later expansions of those tales. A close consideration of

Moses’ supernaturally powerful exploits as they exist in the Torah opens
the chapter, and is followed by an examination of magic tales from the
Babylonian exile, the period of revolts against Roman authority, and
ancient and medieval diasporic narratives.The literature of Jewish magic tales was slow to emerge as a distinct
corpus. Even the pioneering scholar S.D. Goitein set aside magic-
related materials from the rich trove of manuscript sources in the Cairo
Genizah, leaving it for twenty-first century scholars to accept the prob-
lematic presence of evident belief in, practice of, and tales about magi
within some of the myriad documents produced in the course of Jewish
history. Much medieval source material became available to those who
could not read Hebrew from late nineteenth- and early twentieth-
century translations into western European languages, such as the 1916
Der Born Judas: Legenden, Märchen und Erzählungen by Micha Joseph
Bin-Gorion (1865–1921) and the 1924 Exempla of the rabbis; being a col-
lection of exempla, apologues, and tales culled from Hebrew manuscripts and
rare Hebrew books by Moses Gaster (1856–1939). Dating an individual narrative within the Jewish tradition of magic
tales can be difficult for lay readers, since popular anthologies often
ignate tales whose tellings date from the 1700s and 1800s, for instance,

as “medieval.” With respect to storytelling, I link the chronological term
“medieval” to pre-print production. The printing press’s first products, in

Jewish Magic Tales 33
the 1450s and 1460s consisted chiefly of higher literatures, but by 1470

cheap print products began to spread stories among a broader population
and by 1500 popular publishing was fully in place. In this chapter, the
period between 1470 and 1500 is taken as the point at which European
printing presses began to expand storytelling, and economic change
in urban centers began to significantly alter the social contexts within

which urban storytelling, whether religious or secular, took place.
The earliest extant Hebrew magic tales are to be found in the first
five books of the Bible (the Torah), as well as in the Bible as a whole
(the Tanakh) and in the books of the Apocrypha. New magic tales
were added in the period of the Second Temple (530 BCE–70 CE), by
the end of which the Jewish population of the eastern Mediterranean
had largely joined other Jews in their centuries-old and ever growing
diaspora. In the Rabbinic period, new tales were composed to suit the
fundamentally differing life experiences of Jews in the diaspora; in the

Geonic and medieval periods, many tales survived from earlier periods. The tale choices and dating of Eli Yassif in The Hebrew Folktale: History,
Genre, Meaning (1999) have largely determined the tales I discuss here.
Although Yassif was more concerned with genre than with a historical
approach to the tales’ creation, his chronological orderings, which a
based on the documents from which he excerpted each tale he dis-
cusses, are foundational for this chapter. I have augmented the tales in
The Hebrew Folktale with additional datable narratives that illuminate
changes in magic’s nature, purpose, and relationship to human beings
in Jewish magic tales. It is well known that individual tales change over time, but Yassif’s dat-
ing demonstrates that the kinds of tales told shift over time in accordance
with changes in the life experiences of the stories’ tellers and list
Thus, each telling or writing of a particular tale may be considered uni
since each writer or teller writes or speaks within a specific environme
that differs, if only microscopically, from geographically neighboring or
historically preceding milieus. Changes might be barely perceptible, but
each version of a given tale produces a slightly different story, distinctive
in its valuation of characters, its formation of plot, its conceptualiza
of outcomes, and the rhetorical or intonational emphasis on individual
story parts. Stories grouped together by geographical and historical prove-
nance proffer hints about their authors’ and their tellers’ attitu
des toward
tale protagonists’ relationship to magic along with the role of magic
As a result, comparisons between historically differing groups of Jewish

magic tales reveal significant changes in the role played by narrative
magic over time.

34 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Jewish magic tales form a part, albeit small, of Judaism’s fundamental
text, the Torah. Minutely studied by generation after generation, this
written document has been religiously parsed, ethically interpreted,
and narratively expanded by scores of Jewish sages. As a means of
communicating deep truths, stories of all kinds have found their way
into homiletics as well as into legal discourse. Within this vast body of
literature, some tales include supernatural characters and physically
inexplicable events, such as transformations, physical disappearances,
revivals from death, miraculous births, and overpowerings of humans
by demons. The way in which such stories were recounted shows how
their authors or the characters within their stories understood magic;
for them story elements that overturned the physical laws of nature
or inverted the normal course of events within their community were
inexplicable and were therefore understood as having emanated from
divine power expressed on earth or from the malevolent, malicious
powers of demonic antagonists. Magic was defined in terms of commu-
nity: what benefited Jews was divine intervention; what caused them
suffering was the magic of their (demonic or human) antagonists. The
inexplicable itself, the magic, was much the same in both cases. In theoretical terms, magic exists uncomfortably within monotheism,
which requires a single being, a supreme power, an only god, who wields
all power. Yet, the Tanakh includes accounts of ongoing conflict between
the God of the Israelites and local deities worshiped by Gentiles.
Consequently, Jewish characters’ encounters with “magic” distinct from
that supreme deity needed to be reframed.
A story’s survival lies in the province of cultural studies: those tales
that find acceptance are repeated from one generation to the next;
those that don’t, fall out of circulation. I will explore the narrative
dynamics of and attitudes toward magic in Jewish magic tales from the
ancient world to the end of the Middle Ages. (The dynamics of narra-
tive circulation [spoken or written] is essentially a folkloristic question
and forms no part of the following discussion.
2) Jewish magic tales
almost never incorporate magic practices like those described by Joshua

1 For a nuanced discussion of ancient Jewish magic’s coexisting with a monotheistic
worldview, see Gideon Bohak, Ancient Jewish Magic. A History (2008: 51–69).
2 See Yassif’s 1999 Hebrew Folktale, for a sustained inquiry into relationships
between oral folktale and Hebrew texts. Yassif “highlight[s] the thematic continu-
ity and intertextuality of the Hebrew folktale traditions (xiii), with
an “orientation
[that] is by no means historical, but generic” (xix) in contrast to
the direction
I take using the same material.

Jewish Magic Tales 35
Trachtenberg in Jewish Magic and Superstition (1939), Gideon Bohak in
Ancient Jewish Magic. A History (2008), Peter Schäfer in “Jewish Magic
Tales in Late Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages” (1990), or in the

minutely detailed instructions involved in handbooks of magical prac-
tices. In this respect, the magic in Jewish, Christian, and Muslim magic

tales is similar.
Magic in the Torah: Moses the magician
Beyond the extraordinary process of the world’s creation and the pres-
ence of giants, demons, and competing gods like Baal, there is, in the
Torah, a man with mighty powers whom Christians know as Moses and
Muslims as Musa. In the Torah he is Moshe, an 80-year-old magician.
Instructed by YHWH himself, he learns to throw his staff to the ground
so that it turns into a snake, and afterward to seize it by the tail so that
it “became a staff in his fist” (Exodus 4:2–4
4). YHWH further teaches
Moshe how to turn his hand a diseased white, like snow, and back to
normal flesh again (4:6–7), as well as to change the Nile’s water into
blood (4:9). The second book of the Torah tells Moshe that he will be
“a god” to his brother Aharon (4:16), holding “the staff of G
od in his
hand” (4:20), and that YHWH will make him “as a god for Pharaoh”
(7:2). With the “portents” (Exod. 4:21) put at his disposal by YHWH, Mos
is to respond to Pharaoh’s demand for a “portent” by telling Aharon to
throw down his staff and let it become a serpent (7:9), a piece of mag
that “the magicians of Egypt” easily match (7:112) but quickly l
ose, as
“Aharon’s staff swallowed up their staffs” (7:12). After Moshe – through

Aharon – has all the water in Egypt changed into blood and the entire

territory of Egypt swarm with frogs, the limitations of Pharaoh’s magi-
cians become apparent: they can perform the same feats, but cannot
undo them, as can Moshe (7:19–8:11). When Moshe – through Aharon –

turns “all of the dust of the ground [into] gnats throughout all the
3 In Ancient Jewish Magic, Bohak distinguishes between holy men with “innate
powers” and “readily available paraphernalia” to perform magic
to serve “some
of the needs of the wider population” and magicians with an “acqui
red body of
technical knowledge” to serve “their clients’ needs” (2008: 27). These distinc-
tions fit later instances of biblical and rabbinic magic, but the biblic
al Moses
already amalgamates the attributes and intentions of Holy men and magici
as Bohak describes them.
4 All quotations from the Torah are taken from The Five Books of Moses, trans.
Everett Fox (1995).

36 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
of Egypt” (8:13–14), Pharaoh’s helpless magicians recognize this work as
“the finger of God” (8:15) and do nothing when YHWH himself send
heavy insect swarms throughout all the land of Egypt (8:20). Moshe
is to announce a pestilential attack on the Egyptians’ livestock (9:
Moshe and Aharon are to hurl soot into the air that will settle “on m
and on beast . . . [and] become boils sprouting into blisters, throughou
all the land of Egypt, afflicting even Pharaoh’s magicians” (9:8–11).
Moshe alone is to announce a mortally destructive hail (9:13), whose
fiery realization commands pharaonic attention:
YHWH said to Moshe: Stretch out your hand over the heavens: Let
there be hail throughout all the land of Egypt, on man and on beast
and on all the plants of the field, throughout the land of Egypt!
Moshe stretched out his staff over the heavens, and YHWH gave forth
thunder-sounds and hail, and fire went toward the earth, and YHWH
caused hail to rain down upon the land of Egypt. There was hail and
a fire taking-hold-of-itself amidst the hail, exceedingly heavy, the like
of which had never been throughout all the land of Egypt since it had
become a nation. The hail struck, throughout all the land of Egypt, all
that was in the field, from man to beast; all the plants of the field th
hail struck, and all the trees of the field it broke down. (Exod. 9:22–
Moshe calls off the thunder, hail, and rain at Pharaoh’s request (9:33),
but he and Aharon recount to an unrepentant Pharaoh YHWH’s warn-
ing that he will send locusts on the morrow (10:4). Moshe “stretche
out his staff over the land of Egypt”
5 (10:13) to bring this threat about,
which YHWH eventually “reversed” with “an exceedingly strong se
wind” (10:19). Up to this point, the enabling and the immediate age
for each wonder is clearly identified as YHWH’s. But when Moshe’s out-
stretched hand results in covering Egypt with darkness, a momentary
lack of textual specificity opens the possibility that it is Moshe’s own
powers that YHWH directs to be released:
YHWH said to Moshe: Stretch out your hand over the heavens, and
let there be darkness over the land of Egypt; they will feel darkness!
Moshe stretched out his hand over the heavens,
6 and there was
5 Moshe stretches out his staff although YHWH has specifically told him t
stretch out his “hand” (Exod. 10:12).
6 The Jewish Publication Society’s 1985 translation of the Tanakh reads: “Hold
out your arm towards the sky …” (Exod. 10:21).

Jewish Magic Tales 37
gloomy darkness throughout all the land of Egypt, for three days,
a man could not see his brother, and a man could not arise from his
spot, for three days. (Exod. 10:21–22)
However, it is without Moshe and Aharon (12:29) that YHWH strikes the
final blow against Pharaoh, the death of all firstborns both human and
animal (11:1–6), and it is YHWH’s supernatural daytime column of cloud
and nighttime column of fire that leads the way to the place where the
Red Sea will form a wall for the Children of Israel on their right and o
their left after Moshe stretches out his hand (Exod. 14:21–22).
The Torah, as it became codified from its constituent sources, made it
clear to readers that Moshe’s magic was not his own, but that it enacted
God’s will. Each of Moshe’s (and Aharon’s) magical interventions is told
doubly: as a divine instruction and as a deed following therefrom. YHWH
tells Moshe to get the Children of Israel on their way, “to hold [his] staff
high, stretch [his] hand over the sea and split it, so that the Children

of Israel may come through the midst of the sea upon the dry land”
(Exod. 14:15). In another text Moshe has clearly raised an objection,
for YHWH says, “YHWH will make war for you, and you – be still!! [My
emphasis.] YHWH said to Moshe: Why do you cry out to me? Speak to
the Children of Israel . . .” (Exod. 14:14–15). As YHWH responds
to this
unrecorded cry from Moshe, we encounter a textual seam.
8 Something
7 Note the sequential and multiple deployments of magic as Moshe confronts

Pharaoh. In the Tanakh, Elisha demonstrates a similar breadth of magical
deployments – parting a river’s water by striking it with Elijah’s mantle (2 Kings
2:14), healing the bad waters of a spring (2 Kings 2:21–22), calli
ng forth she-bears
who mangled 42 boys who had mocked him (2 Kings 2:24), filling a dry wadi with
pools of water (2 Kings 3:16–17), filling empty vessels with oil (
2 Kings 4:3–7), an
unfruitful womb with a son (2 Kings 4:16–17), and with his own body
a dead child
with life (2 Kings 4:31–36) – attributed to the word of the Lor
d being with him
(2 Kings 3:12). Note that this is a partial list of Elisha’s miraculous/magical achieve-
ments, which continue unabated in the following chapters. This multiplic
ity of
supernatural events distinguishes the Moshe and Elisha narratives from o
ther super-
natural encounters in the Torah with the magic powers attributed to Elisha seem-
ing to have been designed to surpass those of Moshe. Customarily, as Yassif notes,
Biblical legends employ supernatural force only at the decisive moment (1999: 16).
8 Nineteenth-century textual scholars identified four documentary sources
within the Five Books of Moses that ranged in age from 900 to 500 BCE . Whether
one subscribes to the view that these documents had definably different
(Yahwist, Elohist, Deuteronomist, and Priestly) or whether one accepts co
tualizations of the Torah as a later construction, recent scholarship accepts the
views that the Torah comprises material from differing sources.

38 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
has been deleted. When the magical event takes place, “Moshe stretche
out his hand over the sea . . . and made the sea into firm ground.” I
the middle of this statement come these words: “and YHWH caused
the sea to go back with a fierce east wind all night,” affirming the
entire occurrence with a final assertion: “thus the waters split”
14:21). In this manner Moshe’s magic powers are presented as a chan-
neling of YHWH’s omnipotence. And since it is YHWH’s omnipotence
that YHWH himself repeatedly asserts in Exodus, it is consistent with
those assertions that it be made utterly clear that Moshe is not a rival

purveyor of miracles, but a subordinate provider of services that derive
from YHWH.
9 The Passover celebration of YHWH’s deliverance of the
Jewish people from Egyptian oppression in an annual religious ritual
reiterates that Moshe’s magic be understood within the context of
monotheistic power. A second instance of Moshe’s indwelling magic powers, however, is more
problematic with respect to monotheism. Perhaps this episode has attrac-
ted less general attention, because it has generated no surviving ritual:
Moshe said to Yehoshua: Choose us men, and go out, make-war
upon Amalek! On the morrow I will station myself on top of the hill,
with the staff of God in my hand. Yehoshua did as Moshe had said
to him, to make-war against Amalek. Now Moshe, Aharon, and Hur
went up to the top of the hill. And it was, whenever Moshe raised his
hand, Israel prevailed, and whenever he set down his hand, Amalek
prevailed. Now Moshe’s hands are heavy: so they took a stone and
placed it under him, and he sat down on it, while Aharon and Hur
supported his hands, one on this-side and one on that-side. So his
hands remained steadfast, until the sun came in. (Exod. 17:9–12)
It is possible to think of the top of a hill simply as a vantage point
from which to observe the battle on the plain below. However, we also
9 Indeed, I find that this understanding sheds light on the puzzling Exodu
account of God’s meeting Moshe on the road and attempting to kill him (Exod.
4:24), which Tzippora averts by circumcising their son. If YHWH’s rage resulted
from Moshe’s not having performed the ritual that would unite his son to the
community of Israel, whose identity was so closely tied to recognizing Y
pre-eminence, then that rage could be softened by an on-the-spot circumcision.
A further part of YHWH’s rage may be understood to have arisen from YHWH’s hav-
ing acknowledged a few verses earlier that Moshe will be for Aharon “
a god” (4:16).
At the very least, this suggests that Moshe will be to Aharon as YHWH is to Moshe.

Jewish Magic Tales 39
remember that the gods competing with YHWH abode on hilltops, so
that Moses’ hilltop positioning associates him with divine powers in
competition with YHWH. That possibility is only a dim presence in the
battle with the Amalekites, but Moshe’s indwelling power to affect the
course of battle solely by the up or down position of his hands and arms

argues for recognition of Moshe as an independent magician.
The Moses story unfolds within a document that predated the
medieval period by nearly two thousand years. And yet, because that
document underlay the intellectual and spiritual life of Jews, its texts

founded enduring narrative propositions. Primary among them is that
ethical magic proceeds only from the Almighty and that divine magic
will ultimately overpower demonic magic. In different ways, these
propositions, along with narrative corollaries, governed the growing
body of Jewish magic tales.
Second Temple period (530 BCE–70 CE)
As mighty Middle Eastern empires contended with one another,
Alexander blazed through them all, creating a vast empire that fell apar
at his death. At the same time in the West, Rome expanded its control
until it governed the far reaches of Europe and the Mediterranean lit-
toral. The period closed with the destruction of the Second Temple in
Jerusalem, the seat of Jewish ritual and legal practice, while the Roman

suppression of the Bar Kokhba rebellion two generations later (135 CE)

served as a coda. During the Second Temple period, the Jewish population was divided.
Although many had returned from Babylon to Israel after the legal end
of the exile (530 BCE), large numbers remained where they had been
since their early sixth-century BCE deportation. In addition, a sizeable
Greek-speaking Jewish population grew up in Alexandria. Tales generated and written in the post-Biblical period built up a
repertoire in which the Almighty and his angelic assistants often inter-
vened to save individual Jews and to preserve the practice of Judaism.
The prerequisite that magic be solely divine entails that its practice n
lie within the human province. The apocryphal Book of Tobit exempli-
fies this sense of magic as divinely dispensed. Written late in the Second
Temple period (in the second century BCE), the Book of Tobit is set some
600 years earlier, during the reigns of Shalmaneser V (727–722 BCE),
Sargon II (722–705 BCE), and Sennacherib (704–681 BCE). Never
into the Masoretic text by Jews or into Protestant translations of the
Bible after Luther, the tale of Tobit summarized below comes from The

40 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Dead Sea Scrolls Bible, translated into English and published by Martin
Abegg, Jr, Peter Flint, and Eugene Ulrich in 1999. 10
A devout Jew named Tobit, captive in Ninevah, is discovered burying
the Jewish dead. Fearing for his life, he flees with his wife Anna and
his son Tobiah. But before forty days have passed, a new king rules,
appoints Tobit’s nephew his chief of accounts, and Tobit, his wife,
and his son return to Ninevah and live in comfort. He apparently
continues his practice of burying the Jewish dead.
Subsequently Tobit, not knowing “that there were sparrows on
the wall above [him], . . . their fresh droppings fell into [his] eyes
and produced white films” that worsen until – despite physicians’

efforts to heal him – he is “totally blind” (2:10). For the n
ext four
years a kinsman and then his wife support him, and he falls into
despair. Positioning his suffering within a larger context of Jews’ not
having kept his commandments, Tobit begs the Lord to “command
his life to be taken from [him]” (3:6). The same day in far-distant

Media, a young woman named Sarah is reproached by her father’s
maidservants for having brought death to seven men, each of
whom “Asmodeus the evil spirit slew” on the wedding night (3:8).

Despairing, she wishes to hang herself, but reconsiders because her
aged father would die in grief (3:10), and so she begs the Lord to
“[c]ommand that [she] be released from the earth, and that [she] no
more hear condemnation” (2:13). “At the same time Tobit returned
from the courtyard to his house, Sarah the daughter of Raguel came
down from her upper room” (3:17). After adjuring his son Tobiah to live righteously, Tobit tells him
about money he had placed with a man in Media. Tobiah encounters
a man claiming to be a kinsman named Azariah (5:13), who comforts
Tobiah’s mother Anna. As they travel to Media together, he says,
“a good angel will go with him and shall prosper his journey and he
shall return in good health again” (5:22). Accompanied by a dog, Tobiah and the angel Raphael set out, and
when Tobias bathes his feet in the waters of the Tigris, “a large fish
leaped up from the water to swallow the young man’s foot” (Tobit
6:3). The angel instructs him to seize the fish, to remove its gall,
heart, and liver to keep for medicine (6:5), because “if you burn t
before a man or woman afflicted by a demon or evil spirit, then every
10 Readers familiar with the Book of Tobit in the Christian Apocrypha will note
many differences in language, style and attitudes towards magic.

Jewish Magic Tales 41
affliction will depart . . . And the gall is to be used to anoint a pers
eyes on which white scales have appeared; blow on them, on the
white scales, and they will be healed” (6:8–9).
Arriving in Media the angel, now called Raphael by the narra-
tor, informs Tobiah about his right as a relative to marry the “wise,
strong, and very beautiful” Sarah (Tobit 6:10–12), assuring him that
placing the fish’s liver and heart on the ashes of smoking incense will
drive off the husband-killing demon (6:17–18). The marriage is duly

contracted (7:1–13) – and Raphael having retrieved the money fro
Gabael – the wedding is carried out. Then Tobiah, Sarah, the angel
Raphael, and their entourage return to Tobit and Anna. Tobiah cures
Tobit’s blindness eyes by blowing the fish gall into his eyes and peel-
ing off the white scales. (11:11–14)
The tale ends with an explanatory coda, which we may understand
as its author’s effort to corral the magic so evidently practiced and to
attribute it to YHWH. The angel Raphael affirms his status as an angel
by claiming that his eating the fish Tobias had caught was “a vision”
(since it was well known that angels needed no earthly sustenance),
reveals to Tobit (and to the tale’s reader or hearers) that God had sent
him, that he was now “ascending to him who sent me,” and that Tobit
should “[w]rite down everything that has happened” (12:18–20). Tobias, Anna, and Tobiah do not take the angel Raphael’s appearance
among them for granted, but “marvel how the angel of the *** had
appeared to them” (12:22). In Tobit’s lengthy prayer, which comprises
Chapter 13, the Dead Sea Scroll manuscripts of the Tobit tale posit
reciprocity between people’s behavior and God’s marvellous response:
if Jews acknowledge God and live righteously, then the King of heaven
will succor them and have mercy on Jerusalem, “which will be built as
an eternal city” (13:16). At this point the tale of Tobit confers extrava-
gantly imaginative qualities on the future Jerusalem: it will have gates

of beryl and sapphire, walls of precious stones, towers of gold, streets
“paved with ruby and the stone of Ophir,” and the houses themselves
will speak, praising and blessing God and his name (13:16–18). The Book of Tobit, the principal source of information for Jewish
exorcistic fumigation, provides a rare glimpse into Second Temple period
magic practices, although it arrogates all such practices to the divine.

11 Bohak remarks on the absence of incantations from Tobias’s fumigations,
pointing out that in the story it is the repellent smell of the burning materials
that drive off the demon (2008: 88–94, here 92).

42 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
It is Raphael, one of God’s seven attendant angels, who instructs Tobiah
in the curative use of fish gall. And to exorcise the powerful demon
Asmodeus (a fallen angel) from the beautiful Sarah, it is another angel,
again Raphael, who instructs the human Tobiah in the process of
Written sometime around 100 BCE, when the dispersal of Israel’s
population was a long established phenomenon, Tobit prophesies on
his deathbed, “All our kinfolk who live in the land of Israel will be
tered and will go into captivity from the good land” (14:4). The au
writing what he saw, described a desolate land and a ruined Jerusalem
foreseen by an old man in Ninevah. Another Second Temple period tale that incorporates magical effects
is the Book of Daniel.
12 Composed in the second century BCE, it also
refers its events back to an early Babylonian monarch, Nebuchadnezzar
II (605–562 BCE), who elevates a worthy Jew to high position in roy
Daniel, chosen from among young men of royal or noble descent
and for perfection of body and mind (Daniel 1:3–4), is educated in
the literature and language of the Chaldeans, his insight and judg-
ment in these matters eventually proving him to be “ten times better
than all the magicians and exorcists throughout the realm” (1:20).When Nebuchadnezzar wishes to have a dream interpreted, he
requires that the interpreter have prior knowledge of his dream
and that he recount the dream accurately as a token of his insight.
Chaldean sages demur because “there is no one who can tell it to
the king except the gods whose abode is not among mortals” (2:11).
When Daniel’s god discloses Nebuchadnezzar’s dream to Daniel,
he praises God’s omniscience and omnipotence, intervenes to save
Nebuchadnezzar’s wise men from execution (for not being able to
recount the dream), and interprets Nebuchadnezzar’s dream as proph-
esying what is to be at the end of this age (2:28). Nebuchadnezzar
prostrates himself, worships Daniel (2:46), and raises him and his
three Judean companions to high office.
The favor bestowed on Daniel and his companions continues only as
long as Nebuchadnezzar’s benign mood, and when the Judeans refuse
12 Cited texts are taken from Tanakh: The Holy Scriptures: Torah, Nevi’im, Kethuvim

Jewish Magic Tales 43
to prostrate themselves before a gold image that Nebuchadnezzar
raises, the monarch orders Shadrach, Meschach, and Abed-nego [the
Babylonian names for Hananiah, Mishael, and Azariah] thrown into
a blazing furnace (Daniel 3:19–20), where the magically miraculous
effects of their god’s protection preserve all four from fiery death:
Even at “seven times its usual heat” (3:19) the oven cannot so
much as singe their garments, and they emerge unscathed (3:27).
Acknowledging that divine power saved them, Nebuchadnezzar
condemns anyone who blasphemes the Jews’ god to forfeiture and
death. (3:28–29)The next time Daniel is called to interpret a royal dream, he dis-
closes that Nebuchadnezzar will be deposed until he learns “that the
Most High is sovereign over the realm of man, and He gives it to
whom He wishes” (4:22). Nebuchadnezzar is immediately “banished
from the society of men and ate grass like oxen; his body was
drenched by the dew of heaven, until his hair grew long like goats’
hair and his nails like eagles’ talons” (4:33)
13 and his son Belshazzar
ascends the throne.
Daniel’s story continues at Belshazzar’s feast with a third set of tasks
and trials that begin with mystic words written by a disembodied hand
on the wall as irreverent concubines and courtesans drink from sancti-
fied gold vessels from the Jerusalem temple. Daniel’s interpretation (the
words foretell the numbered days of Belshazzar’s kingdom) is borne
out that very night when Belshazzar is slain and replaced by Darius the
Mede. Although Darius honors Daniel, his ministers and satraps con-
spire to bring him down by decreeing that anyone who petitions any
god or man other than the king be thrown to the lions (6:8): Darius reluctantly commits Daniel to the lions, but is relieved to
find him unharmed in the morning. Then “those men who had
slandered Daniel were brought, and together with their children
and wives, were thrown into the lions’ den. They had hardly
reached the bottom of the den when the lions overpowered them
and crushed all their bones” (6:25), after which Darius decrees “
throughout my royal domain men must tremble in fear before the
God of Daniel.” (6:28)
13 This passage marks an early point, if not the point of origin, of the mo
tif of
the Wild Man in folk narrative.

44 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
In the Book of Daniel, supernatural creatures save Daniel, preserve
Jewish practice, and exalt the Jewish people. The angel Gabriel, before
whom Daniel falls “prostrate” (Daniel 8:17), interprets Daniel’
s vision as
“what will happen when wrath is at an end” (8:19). Later Gabriel
sent forth in flight” (9:21); Daniel encounters a man whose face ha
the appearance of lightning, his eyes were like flaming torches, his arms
and legs had the color of burnished bronze, and the sound of his speech
was like “the noise of a multitude” (10:6), and who brings a vis
ion of
the political future,
14 at the close of which the archangel Michael is
predicted to deliver the Jews (12:1). Like Tobias, Daniel is magically aided by divine force, but unlike
Tobias, Daniel’s divine helper remains invisible, his invisibility center-
ing attention on Daniel’s perfections, which include his unwavering
loyalty to the divine power, even though Daniel’s personal powers at
the courts of Belshazzar and Darius may be understood to derive from
his successful studies of the literature and language of Chaldean magi-
cians. Daniel does not fit into the category of a magic-wielding Jew
whose powers derive solely from personal piety or from rigorous study
of Jewish holy books. This understanding of Daniel is confirmed by
comparison with Tobit, whose extreme piety provoked persecution, but
not the means of redressing it. The third, and final set of tales from the Second Temple period,
concern military exploits. The First Book of Maccabees, written in
Hebrew in a now lost text, has come down to the modern world in its
Greek translation. Not a Jewish religious text, it is valued for its fac
ally presented and textually documented account of the long wars led
by Judas Maccabaeus against Israel’s oppressors.
15 Judas often reminds
the Israelites under his command of past divine interventions, such
as the parting of the Red Sea, but the victories he wins result not
from divine intervention but from canny strategy and courageous
soldiers. The Second Book of Maccabees, composed originally in Greek, takes
a different tack altogether. Its author announces it as an abridgment of
Jason of Cyrene’s five books about the story (2 Maccabees 2:19), easier
to read and more entertaining (2:25). More importantly, he introduces
explicit magic. In Chapter 3, the Syrian king’s chief minister Heliodorus
arrives at the Jerusalem temple intent on removing the deposits of gold

14 A detailed and retrospective prediction.15 For 1 and 2 Maccabees I have used The New English Bible with Apocrypha (1970).

Jewish Magic Tales 45
and silver held there in trust for widows and orphans, a move that trigg
immediate supernatural opposition:
“…the Ruler of spirits and of all powers produc[ing] a mighty appa
tion” (2 Maccabees 3:24), . . . a splendidly caparisoned horse, whi
together with its golden-armored rider, rears up and attacks him with
its hooves, while two more men scourge him. A deep darkness sud-
denly falls, and Heliodorus’s men carry him away in a litter, “publicly
compelled to acknowledge the sovereignty of God.” (3:28)
That this event is miraculous is attested in the following text and is
given further weight by the reappearance of the same two splendidly
dressed and supernaturally strong young men who so recently scourged
Heliodorus (2 Maccabees 3:33–34). At the point at which Antiochus
invades Egypt for a second time, the author of the Second Book of
Maccabees embroiders the narratives with apparitions of military engage-
ments in the sky over Jerusalem that last “for nearly forty days”
(5:2–3). Daniel’s tale depicts the “rescue of an imperiled community and the
supernatural punishment of the one who harms the Jewish people”
(Yassif, 1999: 40). It might be argued that the author of the Second
Book of Maccabees uses a supernatural vanquishing of Heliodorus from
the temple treasury to make the same point, with the ensuing illusion
of military charges and countercharges in the night sky reinforcing this
higher purpose by imaginatively projecting earthly events onto a heav-
enly screen. Surpassing any illusionism effected by an earthly magician,

the author of the Second Book of Maccabees pens magic onto the skies,
creating a spectacle that guarantees divine support and promises future
intervention. This kind of magical apparition, even if merely literary,
communicates the optimism of a moment of military triumph. Gideon Bohak has considered the paucity of evidence for magic prac-
tice in the Second Temple period, including the “total lack of evidence”
of Jewish amulets (2008: 114–15). He suggests that more evidence ma
emerge from as-yet-undiscovered documents, but concludes, problem-
atically in my view, that the absence of documents suggests that magical
knowledge was transmitted orally rather than in writing in this period.
Considering the Tobit, Daniel, and Maccabees magic tales against the
historical background of their second and first century BCE composi-
tion suggests a different possibility. These tales’ general trajectory is
upward; their mood is optimistic; a can-do sense pervades the texts;
their protagonists seem to feel they can and will triumph against all
odds. With such confidence the need to turn to magic would naturally

46 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
diminish, and could well have contributed to the paucity of evidence
for magic practices in the Second Temple period. 16
By the end of the Second Temple period, Jews from Palestine had
moved throughout the Roman Empire as well as into Asia Minor and the
Near East. Dating this diasporic movement is difficult, but Erich Gruen
estimates that “Jews abroad far outnumbered those living in Palestine

and had done so for many generations” (2002: 3). As repeatedly emer
from his 2002 study Diaspora: Jews amidst Greeks and Romans, Jewish
diasporic populations largely accommodated to or assimilated into
the surroundings into and within which they had voluntarily situated
The Rabbinic period (70–632 CE)
The Maccabees’ earlier military victories were not predictive for the
future. After Jewish insurrection in Palestine in the late 60s CE and
the destruction of the Second Temple in 78 CE, the great majority of
Palestine’s Jewish population also became diasporic, as Roman gover-
nors in Palestine dispersed them to distant parts of the Empire. The
nation of Israel no longer existed in political terms, its destruction
effectively invalidating Jewish magic tales in which God protected and
fostered it. During the Rabbinic period that followed the destruction of the
Second Temple, authors of Jewish magic tales explored new narrative
materials and acknowledged that opponents of the Jews wielded magic
just as had the Biblical Moses. On many occasions magic tales of the
Rabbinic period seem to adopt a near-polytheistic view of YHWH as one
among many divinities competing for supremacy, a vision occasionally
expressed in the Torah and by later prophets. The Jewish community’s dispersal over huge distances means that
tales composed by individual rabbis in this period took shape within
specific cultural milieus that differed markedly from one another. This
cultural heterogeneity entailed recurrent inconsistencies in worldviews.

One tale might claim that magic proceeded solely from the Lord, while
another might acknowledge non-Jewish divinity-derived magic, while
counterbalancing that acknowledgement by defining non-Jewish magic
as inferior in strength and effect.
16 Yassif says that both he and Bohak “think there were as many magical p
tices in that period as they were in any other; however, they were not properly
documented” (personal communication).

Jewish Magic Tales 47
Rabbinic tales also incorporate marks of their authors’ attempts to
Judaize Gentile practices. Instead of invoking a pagan formula, the
name of the Jews’ God might be uttered to bring salvation. In this
respect it is relevant to consider the trope of efficacious language as
opposed to efficacious gesture (such as Moses stretching out his hand).
The practice of using language to affect the course of events emerges in

a period that also saw rabbinic examinations of God’s efficacious speech
in the Creation of the world. There were, as well, rabbinic inquiries in
the precise words used by God in creating the world by speaking His
own name (Janowitz, 2002: 19–23). If God’s uttering his own name had
been so consequential,
17 then its use by learned Jewish speakers might
equally well affect reality. This reasoning underlies events in a story
about Avishay ben Zeruya, who speaks God’s name and thereby saves
King David from the revenge of Goliath’s brother Yishbi:
Goliath’s brother Yishbi, seeking revenge on David, traps him in
an oil press, but as the weight lowers, the earth opens beneath the
press, saving David. Avishay ben Zeruya, recognizing by signs that
King David is in danger, hastens to him.
18 In a second attack Yishbi
throws David into the air so that his falling body will be impaled on
his spear, but Avishay speaks God’s name, which halts David’s fall
and saves his life.
The same concept of magically efficacious speech shines through the
tale of Rabbi Pinhas ben Yair’s splitting a river to let him continue on
his way to the academy. Moses had initiated the opening of the Red Sea
(Exod. 14:21) and Joshua had cleared a path through the Jordan River
( Joshua 3:5–17), as had Elijah and Elisha (2 Kings 2:8, 14) before
(Bohak, 2008: 33–4). Instead of raising his hand (Moses) or garme
17 Talmudic distinctions permitted “the use of ‘the Laws of Creation,’
a term
which was later interpreted to signify the mystical names of God and the
Magic that operated with the assistance of demons was prohibited (Trachtenberg,
1961: 19).
18 The tale also incorporates a miraculously swift journey in which Avishay rides
David’s donkey.
19 Yassif recapitulates and lists the tale’s component motifs as they appear in the
Babylonian Talmud (1999: 85–6). Mimekor Yisrael (1976) gives two later iterations:
“The Brave Abishai” (First Version, 108–9) that draws attention to King David’s
pride and Abishai’s insight and courage, while “The Brave Abishai” (Second
Version, 110) replaces Abishai with Goliath’s mother and draws on medieval
motifs, such as spinning in a tower.

48 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
(Elijah and Elisha), Rabbi Pinhas invokes the river’s name (Ginnai) to
part the swollen stream. His astonished companions ask if they too
might cross the river, which Pinhas ben Yair says is possible for any Jew
who has never treated another Jew improperly. The underlying story
makes unabashed use of magical means, but turns the magic to an ethi-
cal purpose (Yassif, 1999: 118). In effect the rabbinic formulation admits
the efficacy of magical practice, while transforming it into a homily in

support of community cohesiveness. Along with divine interventions
to save individuals from destruction, the Rabbinic period was also the
point of origin for many stories about Solomon and the archdemon
Asmodeus. From these confrontations with the demonic, Solomon rou-
tinely emerges victorious because of his legendary insight, expansive
knowledge, and political power.
Some rabbinic tales, however, seem so alien to prior Jewish tradition
that one feels they must have been imported from other cultures. The
same Rabbi Pinhas ben Yair who split the river Ginnai by invoking
its name also has the power to recover a pearl for a king by casting a
spell and commanding whatever mouse had swallowed it to cough it
up. When, at the outset, Rabbi Pinhas is asked to recover the pearl, he
denies having magic power, yet immediately lays a spell (ibid.). This
sparely told version of the tale, from a Babylonian tractate, offers no
reason for the king’s having approached Rabbi Pinhas. Other early tales
about the pious man present him as scrupulously careful in adhering
to Jewish religious law and social custom, suggesting that as a pious
and holy persona he incorporates the collective knowledge of an entire
people. This could have made him an obvious choice for the king to
approach for help. “Rabbi Pinhas ben Yair and the Pearl” frames its plot within spe-
cifically Jewish ethics and religious observance, making it possible to
understand the magic at his disposal as nature’s bearing witness to his
piety. But the story told about a pearl swallowed by one of the king-
dom’s mice, alien to prior Jewish narrative in fact and in spirit, probably
came from outside Jewish culture. After all, the mouse does not act as a
entity independent of and separate from the humans it confronts, like
Bala’am’s donkey or the snake in the Garden of Eden; this mouse is the
stage for Rabbi Pinhas’s exercise of God’s name to produce magic results.
As such, “Rabbi Pinhas ben Yair and the Pearl” appears to exemplify a
Judaization of a tale borrowed from an alien culture. The practice of expanding canonical writings by inventing new
Biblical characters begins in the Rabbinic period. Goliath’s purported
brother Yishbi (discussed above) provides one instance, the satanic figure

Jewish Magic Tales 49
Asmodeus another. Focusing on Asmodeus and his demonic hordes
opened a long and productive narrative path. Asmodeus makes his first
appearance in the Second Temple period in the body of Tobias’s intended
bride Sarah, but in Rabbinic-period tales, demons inhabited the entire
world, subverting wavering souls and opposing the righteous (Yassif,
1999: 144–66), and already existing Jewish practices to counter demo
begin to enter Jewish magic tales. Amulets created by sages can turn
away demons, but their creation and production require detailed knowl-
edge of demons’ habits and of the capacities of inanimate objects to
relate to demons. For instance, in order for an amulet to protect agains
the indwelling demons resident in a particular bush, it is necessary to
know their precise number. Hence, an amulet prepared for 60 demons
is required for a sorb-bush inhabited by 60 of them (Bohak, 2008: 375)
As the Babylonian scholar Rav Huna (c216–296/7 CE) perceived,
demons’ omnipresence accounted for every imaginable ill: “Every one
among us has a thousand on his left hand and ten thousand on his
right hand.” Abba ben Joseph bar H .ama (c270–350 CE), known as Rava,
specified the various mischiefs caused by demons: “The crushing in
the Kallah [the assemblies of Babylonian students] comes from them.
Fatigue in the knees comes from them. The wearing out of the clothes
of the scholars is due to their rubbing against them. The bruising of th
feet comes from them.” Rava’s near contemporary, Abbaye (c280–340
CE), declared that demons “are more numerous than we are and they
surround us like the ridge round a field” (Yassif, 1999: 145–6). It is
hardly surprising, then, to find an increase in spells and incantations
in magic tales of the Rabbinic period to protect pious Jews in a demon-
infested world. Prayer, however, remains the protective method of
choice. Faced with a seven-headed dragon in the academy of the revered
teacher Abbaye, Rabbi Aha ben Jacob falls to his knees and prays. One
dragon head falls off, and with each subsequent prayer another falls
off, until the whole dragon disappears (ibid.: 152–3). In magic tal
es the
Torah itself is the ultimate “shield against injury by demons,” and “to
be a Torah scholar . . . is to guarantee one’s safety in this demon-infested
world” (ibid.: 148). Some composers of magic tales in the Rabbinic period introduce
variety by imputing a benevolent helpfulness to individual demons.
This innovation verges on an animism that Jewish monotheism had
continuously striven to extirpate and that is therefore problematic in
the extreme. Nonetheless, such innovative stories made their way into
the canon of Jewish magic tales. The demon Bar Themalyon is pre-
sented as having allied himself with Rabbi Simeon bar Yohai and Rabbi

50 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Eleazar against a Roman emperor who has issued decrees against the
Jews. When the demon meets the two men on their way to supplicate
the emperor, he devises a ruse to assist them:
Bar Themalyon entered the body of the Emperor’s daughter and
possessed her spirit, causing her to cry out that Rabbi Simeon bar
Yohai must be brought to her. As agreed, Rabbi Simeon banished
Bar Themalyon with the twice uttered formula, “Bar Themalyon, get
out!” thus “curing” the princess. In gratitude the emperor invi
ted the
two rabbis to enter his treasury and take whatever they wished, but
their only wish was to remove the anti-Jewish decrees. (Ibid.: 154)
If helpful demons exist, then it makes sense for a pious Jew to come to
the aid of a helpful demon, when it is under threat from a wicked one,
which happens in another Rabbinic tale, “R. Abba Jose of Zaythor and
the Spirit of the Spring” (ibid.: 155). In many Rabbinic magic tales, larger questions about the role of
magic and Jewish ethics beg for attention. What constitutes and what
determines good and evil? What is permitted and what is prohibited?
Does a good intention in the magic-worker render magic permissible?
Correspondingly, does an evil intention taint magic pursued with
demonic forces? Despite the Torah’s repudiations of sorcery and the
practice of magic, rabbis used magic tales in homiletic contexts. Centra
questions remain unresolved. Is magic made licit by virtue of being
performed by a Jew? What constitutes a true miracle that demonstrates
God’s intervention in Jewish life? How can one distinguish between a
miracle and an illusion?
21 Why, in some stories, do Jewish followers
of Jesus who work magic never act benevolently toward Jews, while
20 Two other versions of this tale appear in Bin-Gorion, Mimekor Yisrael (1976),
under the title “Annulling the Three Decrees.” In the First Version (678–680),
a female demon occupies Bar Themalyon’s role; in the Second Version, as in
Bin-Gorion’s Born Judas (2:193–9, here 197), Asmodeus himself is the helper,
claiming in a dream to have been sent by “the Holy and Blessed One …
to work
a wonder for you” (680).
21 Both magic tales and commentary in the Rabbinic period address issues sur-
rounding miracles, magic, and illusion. Illusionism for the sake of ente
ment, for instance, is permitted. Other apparently magical conjurations
must be
understood as either miraculous and proceeding from divine power or from
forbidden instance of obtaining magical results by dealing with demons.
See the
discussion of sages’ conjuring a calf and eating it vs a min’s conjuring a calf by
illusion (Yassif, 1999: 162).

Jewish Magic Tales 51
in other stories demons (who by definition assist fallen angels and are

therefore necessarily evil) occasionally display benevolence and some-
times purposefully assist Jews? In an unending generative richness,
further stories grew up in response to each of these questions.
Even though the Torah appears to repudiate sorcery and the practice
of magic, the stance of the Masoretic text as a whole is considerably
more complex. In “Jewish magic: a contradiction in terms?,” the op
ing chapter of Ancient Jewish Magic, Gideon Bohak makes the point that
the Masoretic text’s warnings and prohibitions focus more on non-
Jewish practitioners than on magic acts themselves, about which there
remain confusion, contradiction, and an absence of clarity. Astrology offers a special case. Probably the most widespread form of
divining the future, astrology was omnipresent as a practice in the Rabb
period, yet in story after story, both plot and contextualizing frames declare
that astrology is inapplicable to believing Jews. “Rabbi Akiva’s Daughter”
is the most famous magic tale to demonstrate this (Yassif, 1999: 163–4).
Astrologers had foretold that a snake would mortally wound the young
woman on her wedding night, but when she thrusts the pin of a brooch
into the wall and kills the snake that is lying in wait, the prediction
undone. In the tale’s words her escape from the foretold death results not
from magic, but is the natural outcome of her having charitably fed a po
man at her wedding feast, an episode that forms the basis for Rabbi Akiv
homily on deliverance from death through charity. The sages’ declaration
of Jewish invulnerability to the predictions of astrology recalls earlie
tales in which piety gives rise to natural wonders, and to later magic
tales in which even a divinely predestined fate is occasionally escaped.
Medieval tales (632–1492 CE)
In the medieval period, a diasporic existence continued to define Jewish

identity, regional and national persecutions conditioned Jewish experi-
ence, and periodic expulsions from one polity to another exposed Jews to

novel cultures and expanded their narrative repertoire. In their diaspor
existence in Europe and the Middle East, Jews often translated local lit
ratures into Hebrew (Yassif, 1999: 265), introducing alien story elements
into Hebrew narrative. The culture of Islam had carried wisdom tale col-
lections like Kalila wa-Dimna and Sendebar (known in English as The Seven
Wise Masters) in the train of its spread along the southern Mediterranean
littoral and into the Iberian peninsula, and Christian culture contrib-
uted story content from classic medieval Christian collections like the
Gesta romanorum and the Fior di virtu (Bin-Gorion, 1916: 2: 324–33).

52 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
At the same time, Jewish vernacular storytelling flourished in a variety of
Semitic and Indo-European languages and dialects.
Threats by Christian society to individual Jews and to the Jewish com-
munity as a whole provided subject matter for two medieval Jewish
magic tales. One concerns the bishop of Salzburg who undertakes to kill
Rabbi Judah the Pious (Yassif, 1999: 355). But with foreknowledge of the
impending attack, the rabbi works a spell that traps the bishop’s head in
a window, where it remains until he promises to stop persecuting Jews.
At the end of the tale the Bishop converts to Judaism! In a later easter
European tale, “Akdamut Millin,” a gigantic priest-sorcerer kills many
Jews before a hunchback from the Ten Lost Tribes kills him (ibid.). In both
tales, magic banishes present evil from the earth (the Bishop of Salzbu
the Christian priest-sorcerer) and holds persecution at bay, at least for
a time. In both tales, magic wielded by Jews, whether by the historical
figure Rabbi Judah or by a legendary hunchback, alleviates suffering for
Jews as a community rather than bringing happiness on earth to an indi-
vidual, an outcome that distinguishes Rabbinic tales from later fairy tales. Demon tales composed in the Rabbinic period continue to hold
Satan’s helpers, and sometimes Satan himself, responsible for everyday
dangers. The tales themselves are often little more than anecdotes, in
which a certain demon threatens a pious Jew, who then seeks help from
a knowing rabbi. The rabbi recognizes the demon and banishes it by
calling it by name and ordering it to depart, a formula easily adapted t
any threatening situation. When a Jew actively seeks out a demon for his own benefit, the ensu-
ing tale becomes more complex. In an early thirteenth-century Hebrew
tale, narrative paraphernalia (vast forest, gigantic and hideous black
man), rich descriptions of glittering material wealth, and easy access
a parallel spirit world) are more akin to high medieval courtly romance
than to Jewish narrative tradition, but this alien content is embedded
within a medieval Jewish worldview:
In the courtyard of a rich Jewish merchant’s house there is a mys-
terious and forbidden doorway. When the man’s wife one day
approaches the entrance, demons issue forth and snatch her away
to Gehenna [Hell]. The husband goes in search of her, fears entering
Gehenna himself, and sends a servant. The servant finds his master’s
wife in a chamber, “the walls and ceiling were covered in glittering
gold, and the floor [was] of fine stones, red and sparkling.” Wearing
golden clothing and sitting on a chair of gold at a golden table set
with golden foods, she is served by servants who cut her food and

Jewish Magic Tales 53
pour white wine into a golden cup. Astonished at the grandeur and
royal honor accorded her, the servant tells her of her husband’s sadness
at her loss. She however responds that the room, its furnishings, her
clothing, her food, and her drink are in truth fire that consumes her
body and flesh, while the white wine is “molten lead” poured into
goblet of fire, and that all sinners of Israel suffer thus, and her husb
should repent his evil deeds. Asked about her own evil deeds, she con-
fesses to adultery, desecration of the Sabbath, transgression of ritual law
(lying with her husband while menstruating), and lack of compassion
for orphans and the poor. She gives the servant her ring as a sign of the
truth of her message. Deeply moved by his wife’s message, the husband
rejoices, “went to synagogue and asked for mercy from the Holy One,
blessed be He. With great weeping and a broken heart he repented fully
and did not move from there until his soul departed. And a heavenly
voice said: ‘This man is summoned to the world to come.’ This is t
o ful-
fill that which is said, ‘That I may cause those who love me to inher
substance; and I will fill their treasures.’”
The tale accepts the existence of demons, as well as an easy slippage
from the human world to the demonic underworld. What distinguishes
it from earlier demon tales is the richness of its descriptions: gold co
the walls; the wife wears cloth of gold and drinks from a golden goblet
while seated on a chair of gold and surrounded by servants, details that
suggest the tale’s kinship with contemporaneous courtly romances. But
since her wine is in truth liquid lead in a goblet of fire, and since th
e heat
is cosmically punishing, she can think only of warning her husband to
repent. The doubled report – in Gehenna from the wife to the servant
and in the human world from the servant to the husband – borrows from
the stylistics of courtly romance to amplify its moral message.
Literary crossovers between medieval Jewish and Christian storytell-
ing were many. Some were stylistic, like the doubled message in the
tale above; some consisted of a simple motif, like the magic healing
herb that cures leprosy and wins a poor boy a rich bride in an early
22 Yassif translates the untitled tale from Ms. Oxford Bodleian Or. Heb. 135,
338b–339b (1999 358–61). This is my abbreviated account of the t
ale’s plot.
23 See Susan Einbinder, who touches on the “narrative doublet” as part of a new
set of twelfth- and thirteenth-century sensibilities in Hebrew prose literature, in
“Signs of Romance: Hebrew Prose and the Twelfth-Century Renaissance” (222).
With particular reference to the tale of “King Solomon’s Daughter in the Tower”
see Michael Chernick, “Marie de France in the Synagogue.”

54 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
thirteenth-century Bodleian manuscript, Sefer ha-Ma’asim. 24 Susan
Einbinder identifies French-language romance motifs and techniques in
twelfth-century Jewish writings, even in religious texts such as martyrdom
narratives (2000: 221–34). A now century-old reference to similar borrow-
ing in a Jewish–Italian context appears in L. Landau’s “A German-Italian
Satire on The Ages of Man,” while “Solomon’s Daughter in the Tower”
exemplifies the adoption of pre-existing plots from romances in Christia
Europe and puts them to use for traditional Jewish purposes (1916: 469n
King Solomon looks into the stars to learn who would marry his
beautiful daughter. When he learns that the poorest man in Israel
will do so, he shuts her into a heavily guarded high tower built in
the sea. The predestined groom eventually sets forth, bereft even of
clothing, and takes shelter against the night chill within the carcass
of a dead ox. During the night “a huge bird” carries the carcass with
the man inside to the roof of the tower, where the young woman
finds it – and him. Learning he is a Jew and bathing and anointing
him, the princess falls in love and asks him if he wishes to marry
her. They marry joyfully with God and the archangels Michael and
Gabriel as witnesses, and with a ketubah written in the man’s blood.When she becomes pregnant, and the guards inform Solomon.
Questioning her the king learns of the wedding ceremony, then asks
the man “about his father, mother and family, and from what city”
he comes. Then Solomon rejoices, saying “Blessed is God who gives
a woman to a man,” fulfilling [Psalms 68.7].
In another version, King Solomon is explicitly reconciled to the mar-
riage and promises the couple “a large sum of money,” acknowledging
that “God made this marriage,” a statement that places this versio
explicitly within the corpus of predestined bride tales.
24 Ms. Ox. Bodl. Heb.d.11.#51 (Yassif, 1999: 344).25 This version comes from Midrash Tanhuma ms. Ox. 183. See Chernick, “Marie
de France in the Synagogue” (2007: 185).
26 The version in question appears in Bodleian Ms. Or 135 and is summarized
in Ben-
Amos, “Straparola: The Revolution That Was Not” (2010: 438). “‘The Omnipotent,’
said a Rabbi, ‘is occupied in making marriages” (Abrahams, 1890:
172). “[A]n Agadic
story, in which the force of this predestination is shown to be too strong even for
royal opposition … is effectively illustrated” by the story of Solomon the King
whose “future son-in-law would be the poorest man in the nation” (
ibid.: 176). The
tale Abrahams describes ends with Solomon’s words, “Blessed is the Omnipresent
who giveth a wife to man and establisheth him in his house” (ibid.:

Jewish Magic Tales 55
The eighth-century Midrash Tanhuma consists of homilies related to
scheduled readings during the religious year. 27 But since each surviving
copy of the Midrash Tanhuma was the product of manuscript technology,
variation crept into subsequent iterations, because “almost every scribe and
every copyist . . . thinks himself justified to alter and to enlarge, to sho
and to amplify . . .” (Gaster, 1924: 3). Thus this story appears in later edi-
tions of the Midrash Tanhuma, but not in all of them. Moreover, content
shifts distinguish one telling of “King Solomon’s Daughter” from another
(ibid.), so that the medieval Jewish exemplum, “King Solomon’s Daughter,”
would have presented slightly different sermon material for synagogue us
depending on the congregation’s geographical location and on the particu-
lar Midrash Tanhuma available to and used by the deliverer of a sermon.
In analyzing his translation of the Oxford Bodleian ms 183, Michael
Chernick describes a range of understandings of the story possible for its
various medieval Jewish hearers. An educated elite could have pondered i
as an allegory of the Jewish diaspora and its eventual return to Israel, while
simple listeners could have taken pleasure in it as an instance of Solom
human pride reined in by God’s Divine power. How listeners under-
stood the tale would also depend on which version of “King Solomon’
Daughter” they heard, since even minor changes in tellings of the tal
change the narrative weightings of individual story parts (Elstein, 2006).
The following version elevates the role of Solomon’s pride, accentuates
the role of magically functioning supernatural forces, and downplays the
daughter’s agency in her relationship with the young man in the tower:
King Solomon dreams that the smallest of the tribes will marry the
virgin daughter of the largest of the tribes, which he understands to
mean that the poorest man in Israel will marry his daughter. In response
he shuts her into a doorless tower under heavy guard, and then chal-
lenges the prediction with these words: “Now let me see the acts and
working of His [God’s] Name.” And yet the son of a beggar, taking
shelter one night in the skin of a dead horse, is carried by a hoopoe to

the roof of the very tower in which Solomon’s daughter is confined.
27 There is considerable discussion of the date of the Midrash Tanhuma.
References here denote Tanhuma A, the manuscript edited by Solomon Buber
and published in Vilna in 1885.
28 This motif appears in slightly different form in the Old French Romance of
Alexander, where sailors sew themselves into animal hides and are carried aloft b
griffins (Tuczay, 2005: 275). The romance itself first came into being in the third
CE and was translated into Latin, Georgian, Armenian, and Syriac before
it entered Old French literature.

56 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
She helps him enter the tower, she eventually conceives a child, and
the two marry each other in the sight of God. The tale then returns
to Solomon’s personal and political greatness, making it clear that
the mighty Solomon remains subject to God’s intent.
This tale’s magic emerges from the impossibility of a thrush-sized hoo-
poe’s flight from the ground to the top of a tower bearing in its beak a
man wrapped in a horsehide. Significant for the history of magic tales
is the image of a bird-delivered man into a tower that already existed
in the pre-1225 Christian European stock of magic tale imagery in
“Yonec,” a lai by Marie de France composed two generations earlier
around 1170. That tale’s bird, a kind of hawk, flies in by the tower
window, turns into a handsome young man who asserts that he is not
a demonic illusion, and brings love and a resulting pregnancy to the
imprisoned wife of a cruelly jealous husband. Gwen Seabourne, taking
the non-judicial medieval practice of imprisoning women as her point
of departure, infers that the scenario of a woman in a tower would have
been familiar both to Marie de France in England, where she composed
her French-language lais, and to contemporary readers and listeners in
France, where her lais soon spread.
Haim Schwarzbaum recognizes that Marie’s collection and the
roughly contemporaneous medieval animal fable collection, Mishlei
Shu’alim, share several fables that are unknown in other collections
from the same period.
30 And Michael Chernick, in an article provoca-
tively entitled “Marie de France in the Synagogue” (2007), argue
s that
Rabbi Berechiah ben Natronai ha-Naqdan, who translated Ysopet,
Marie de France’s collection of Aesopic fables, into Hebrew, was a likely
conduit between Christian court culture and Jewish fabulists, as well
as a likely conduit through which Marie’s plots could have reached a
29 See Bin-Gorion, Mimekor Yisrael: Classical Jewish Folktales (1976: 170–1); or
Bin-Gorion, Mimekor Yisrael: Classical Jewish Folktales. Abridged and Annotated
Edition (1990: 70–2). Malachi Beit-Arié confirmed Yassif’s dating of the Bodleian’s
Hebrew manuscript (Ms Oxford Bodl. Or. 135) in Tarbiz 54.4 (1985): 631–4,
which Yassif had published as “Sefer Ha-ma’asim: The Character, Origins, and
Influence of a Collection of Folktales from the Period of the Tosaphists” (Hebrew)
in Tarbiz 53 (1984): 409–29. For a discussion of “King Solomon’s Daughter” as a
proto-rise fairy tale, see Bottigheimer, 2010: 447–96, here 472–3.
30 “Introduction” to Bin-Gorion, Mimekor Yisrael, 1976: li. See also Berechiah ben
Natronai, ha-Nakdan, 1967, Fables of a Jewish Aesop (trans. Moses Hadas). Karl
Warnke believes that the Mishlei is based on Marie de France’s collection (1898:
lxviii ff.). (See also Brucker, 2011: 209–36, here 210.)

Jewish Magic Tales 57
medieval Jewish writer. More significant for the history of magic tales
and fairy tale magic is that the magic act in “King Solomon’s Daughter”
benefits the couple with material happiness here on earth: King
Solomon accepts the marriage, holds a great wedding feast, and gives
the couple a large sum of money. As such, and outside the context of
its framing story about Solomon’s intention being subservient to divine
power, the tale’s happy ending of a reward here on earth (wealth, mar-
riage to a beloved of royal rank) that is precipitated by magical event
predates Renaissance Italian rise fairy tales with happy endings and in
so doing, diverges from many medieval magic tale endings whose hap-
piness is reserved for the hereafter. The atypicality of “King Solomon’s
Daughter” is reinforced by the fact that Jewish morality tales incor-
porating evidence of God’s all-surpassing omnipotence and ability to
confer treasures previously provided wealth not for personal well-being,

but principally to enable a poor family’s son to study Torah, further
evidence of an orientation away from secular well-being and toward
supernal endeavor.
“The Bride and the Angel of Death” is another tale of a marriage
predestined by God (and therefore made in Heaven), because, like
“Solomon’s Daughter,” it centers on a marriage-related prediction
(therefore emanating from God). As in the Book of Tobit,
a bride suffers the loss of successive husbands before each marriage
is consummated.
31 Eventually, her hand is claimed by a desperately
poor cousin, to whom Elijah appears with detailed instructions about
the importance of a respectful reception of a particular, and poor,
wedding guest. The guest is the Angel of Death come to claim the
bridegroom’s soul. Accepting his fate, the bridegroom takes leave of
his wife, but she, versed in Jewish law, claims the year required by
Deuteronomy 24:5 that her husband must be allowed to spend with
his newly wed wife. The Angel of Death submits her claim to God,
who rebukes the Angel of Death and grants the request.
Subsequently, this tale came to be associated with the celebrated Rabbi
Reuven, so that in some versions he himself becomes the subject of
interest to the Angel of Death, while in others it is Rabbi Reuven’s son
who faces death on his wedding night. Whoever the Angel of Death’s
31 Yassif understands this tale, known only since the Middle Ages, as having

roots in the Rabbinic period (1999: 103). However, I consider it a medieval tale,
because of the tale’s medieval textual provenance.

58 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
victim is to be in this medieval tale, the bride remains the salvational

heroine, who argues the Jewish legal position so successfully that her
groom survives not only the year, but an entire lifetime.
32 “The Bride
and the Angel of Death,” like other medieval magic tales and earlier
rabbinic ones, reflects an orientation away from God-as-Savior-of-the-
Nation and toward God-the-Rewarder-of-Individual-Merit. In making
a woman’s actions pivotal for the tale’s outcome, it follows a line rec-
ognizable from contemporaneous European medieval narrative, where
secular romances included active women and the Virgin Mary actively
resolves difficult personal issues suffered by women in Marian legends. Another early thirteenth-century tale, “Rabbi Yohanan and the Scor-
pion,” is structured within a frametale communicating and validating
Jewishness itself. The tale, as translated by Bin-Gorion from Hebrew int
German, closes on a Jewish note, as Yohanan ascends a throne married to
a woman who has converted to Judaism, thus allowing him to maintain
a Jewish home within an alien society.
33 Into this frametale the story-
teller inserts magic material and events of the sort that typify medieva
Christian courtly romances, but that has not appeared in Jewish magic
tales before this point.
A dying father instructs his son Yohanan to buy the first thing
offered to him in the marketplace at whatever price its owner asks.
Consequently he pays an outrageously high price for a little box
(in other translations a goblet or chalice) that proves to contain a
scorpion. Yohanan and his wife impoverish themselves feeding the
ever-ravenous scorpion, which grows to a gigantic size. Eventually
the scorpion begins to speak, acknowledges all they have done for
him, and asks Yohanan what he wants. Yohanan asks for knowledge
of all the world’s languages, to which the scorpion generously adds
the languages of animals, birds, and wild creatures. To the wife, who
asks for wealth to feed her family and their household, he grants
gold, silver, jewels, pearls, and cattle. Yohanan asks the scorpion who
he is, to which the scorpion replies that he is a son of Adam, born
32 See Yassif, 1999: 103–5 for further details.33 My understanding of the overall structure and intention of the tale dif-
fers from that suggested by Vered Tohar, who states, “Johanan in the end is
appointed king of a foreign realm and its non-Jewish subjects, and in ef
fect loses
his Jewish identity” (2009: 63–4) and that “he has forsaken t
he path of Judaism
and perhaps even converted” (ibid.: 65). Tohar reads “Johanan and the Scorpion”
as an instance of a medieval Jewish fairy tale or chivalric romance (ibid.: 56–61).

Jewish Magic Tales 59
before Eve’s creation. But when Yohanan asks for his blessing, the
scorpion answers, “May God protect you from the troubles that await
you.” (Bin-Gorion, 1916: 6: 188–93)
The second part of the story pieces together a constellation of magic
motifs that remained linked for centuries. It begins with the pars pro toto
strand of golden hair, whose beauty causes a monarch to fall deeply in
love with the person from whose head it fell.
34 This improbable open-
ing event is followed by the hero’s passage through a dangerous forest
called ya’ar devei ilaii, a forest full of beasts named in the Talmud (Yassif,
1999: 272); his encounter with speaking animals from the realms of air,
earth, and water; and his freely offered and helpful responses to those
35 Despite its complement of magical motifs, this section pro-
claims ethical and religious values to justify the hero’s altruistic treat-
ment of the enormous fish whose life he spares:
A raven drops a golden hair before a childless king, who tells his
counsellors to find the woman from whose head the hair has come so
that he can marry her. The counsellors call Yohanan to court and tell
him to “find her or you and all Jews will die.” Yohanan takes leave of
his family carrying provisions for three years (32 loaves of bread and
10 gold pieces). Entering an enchanted forest, he meets a huge dog,
who wishes to be the same size as other dogs, so that he can sate his
34 Note the similarity to the Egyptian “Two Brothers” tale.35 These joined motifs re-emerge two centuries later in a magic tale by Gio
Francesco Straparola, in which Prince Livoretto fetches Princess Bellisa
ndra from
Damascus for his master the King of Egypt.
36 My summary translation of the tale as it appears in Bin-Gorion (1916: 6:
188–204). The full text of Bin-Gorion’s attribution follows: “Un receuil de contes
juifs inédits §VIII in R[evue] d[es] É[tudes] J[uives] XXXIII S. 239–54. Die Geschichte
ist auch im Maase-Buch enthalten. Zum Wald debe Illaio siehe Bb.Tim. Traktat
Hullin S. 59 b. –“Die Erzählung ist allem Anschein nach ein wes
Märchen; die Hauptzüge derselben sind deutschen Märchen entnommen,
während die Hauptperson R. Chanina semitischen Ursprungs ist.” (G
Chrestomathie S. 411.) –Ubersetzt (sic) bei Helvicus, Historien I
S. 57–68; im
Auszug in Mitteilungen der Ges. für jüdische Volkskunde I
2 S. 9–12 (Quellen
dazuds. S. 68, 69)” (6:315). The note’s closing references to the Grimm tale “Die
weisse Schlange” (vol. 1:89–93) and Grimm commentary (3:120, 121 [1856/57
Final Edition of tales and commentary]) reveal Bin-Gorion’s indebtedness to a
questionable nineteenth-century understanding of tale history and interrelation-
ships, in particular the primacy of Germanic Märchen. Bin-Gorion does not date
the manuscript source, as does Yassif.

60 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
hunger. Yohanan gives him one of the loaves. Next, Yohanan meets
a huge raven, with the same result. Finally, on a riverbank he meets a
fisherman who asks if he’ll pay ten gold coins for whatever he brings

up in his net. Yohanan agrees, and receives an enormous fish worth a
hundred gold coins. The fish begs for its life, promising that the good
deed will be repaid, and Yohanan throws him back. The fisherman
scolds Yohanan, who responds by declaring that God’s compassion is
valid for all creatures. (Bin-Gorion, 1916: 6: 193–7)
The tale’s third section brings Yohanan face to face with the queen from
whose head the fateful golden hair had fallen. She manifests magical
qualities, such as knowing without being told the nature and reasons
for Yohanan’s journey to her distant country. She sets two apparently
impossible tasks, with a retarding device added to the second, so that
all three grateful animals assist the hero: Now Yohanan enters a city on the far side of the river, where the queen
of the city already knows of Yohanan’s mission [to bring her back to the
king]. However, she sets two requirements: he must fill one cask with
water from hell and a second one with water from Paradise, a task that
the raven carries out for him. Next she asks him to retrieve a ring she
had lost twenty-five years earlier, which the fish agrees to bring about,
since the fate of Israel depends on finding the ring. A wild boar charge
him and swallows the ring, just as it is about to be delivered into his
hand, but the dog regains it. The tasks having been performed, the
queen accompanies Yohanan back to his country. (Ibid.: 6: 197–201)
The fourth part of the story takes unexpected turns: On his return Yohanan discovers that his wife has died and that the
king has taken his children captive. The king wishes to marry the
queen immediately, but she requires a year’s delay to prepare herself.
Yohanan himself stands high at court, his children are restored to
him, and the king gives him his ring as a token that he rules over
everything that the king possesses. The royal counsellors become
jealous. (Ibid.: 6: 201–2)
37 Note that Bin-Gorion uses the phrase Wunderwald debe Illai (ibid.: 195). 38 Note that Bin-Gorion uses the phrase die Weisen des Landes, which I assume to
be the king’s counsellors.

Jewish Magic Tales 61
The jealous counsellors kill Yohanan and hack his body into
pieces. The Queen restores his body by rubbing the wounded places
with the stone of her ring and splashing his body with water from
Paradise, so that Yohanan appears youthful. When she kisses him
and prays to God, Yohanan is restored to life.
Seeing that she can restore the dead to life, the King goes to war, in
the belief that she will restore him should he be killed. But when he
dies on the battlefield, the Queen goes to him, and at first follows the

same procedure as with Yohanan. But then she sprinkles the king’s
body with water from hell, and he and his followers burn up. She
says disingenuously, “See, restoring to life is not in my hands, but in
the Lord’s.” Yohanan and the Queen return to the palace, where the
people choose Yohanan as their king, and he and the queen, who
converts to Judaism, live together happily and contentedly and have
sons and daughters. (Ibid.: 6: 202–4).
Hair of gold, grateful animals, impossible tasks, reassembling and resus
citating a dead body, these story elements, either separately or linked,
are alien to earlier Jewish storytelling tradition.
41 On the other hand,
the tale is thoroughly Jewish in its making the entire Jewish people’
fate dependent on the hero’s carrying out an impossible task, and in
having the queen convert to Judaism at the conclusion (which recalls
the Bishop of Salzburg’s concluding conversion; see page 52). The queen
restores Yohanan to life, although she withholds the same magic heal-
ing powers from her husband, behavior that inverts a religious posi-
tion about marital responsibilities and ethics, which may account for
the tale’s disappearance from Hebrew literature until twentieth-century
39 The impossible tasks and their performance, together with the queen rest
ing the hero’s hacked-to-pieces body to a handsomer form than before also form
part of Straparola’s tale about Livoretto and Bellisandra and are discussed in
Chapter 7. Straparola and the author of the Yohanan story may each have taken
this uncommon episode from the tale of Medea, but the cluster of shared
argues for an immediate textual relationship, the details of which are c
40 Readers familiar with Straparola’s tale of Livoretto and Bellisandra in his
Pleasant Nights will recognize this early thirteenth-century Kabbalistic tale as its
likely precursor. See Yassif, 1999: 271–2, where the scorpion stands for “a prime
Jewish protagonist” (272).
41 Yassif also recognizes the tale’s narrative elements as “inherently alien to
Judaism” (272). Bin-Gorion (=Berdichevsky) included the tale amon
g Kabbalistic
tales in volume 6 of Der Born Judas.

62 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
scholarship returned it to Hebrew narrative. 42 “Rabbi Yohanan and
the Scorpion” would be printed in Yiddish in the Ma’aseh-Buch (1602)
and ten years later in German. Its translator, a Jesuit named Christoph
Helwig titled it “Von Rabbi Chanina der ein Gefess kauftet darinnen
ein Frosch der reden kondre” in his 1612 tale collection Jüdischer (sic)
Historien (57–68).
By the late thirteenth century, magic itself could be treated as a tale’s
protagonist. In “The Sorcerer” (1281–84) by Isaac Ibn Sahula (born
1244), a handsome young man, having sought in vain to learn magic
in the Holy Land, “provide[s] himself with a substantial sum of money

and [goes] down to Egypt” (Stern and Mirsky, 1990: 299). There he
refuses a simple craftsman’s offer to teach him magic, believing he is a
charlatan. Understanding the true reasons for the rebuff, the old man
uses his magic skill to produce an illusion in which the youth believes
he has spent two years in royal service, has married the king’s daughter,
and has had a son who dies tragically. In his despair the youth seeks the
craftsman’s help, only to learn that “‘all this was vanity, striving after
wind . . . the days through which you passed, the catastrophe itself! –
this happened in a twinkling. . . . All these events have befallen you t
prove that my claims to magic are true.’” The young man concedes h
error and begs to be allowed to study with him: “‘There is no wiza
who can surpass you in conjuring! No one knows the mysteries as you
do! God himself has taught you all this. He has made you foremost in
your art’” (ibid. 310). Although Ibn Sahula intends to create a
tale about arrogance as a human failing, the tale’s significance for
Jewish magic tales lies in its continuing attribution of magic powers to

God alone, as well as in its humbling of the tale’s youthful hero. Another medieval Hebrew tale, “Virgil in the Basket” (Yassif, 2009:
245–6), is equally problematic, but apparently more so for modern
readers than for its medieval ones. With its virtuous but trickster wife
and her tenacious but vindictive would-be lover, the early fourteenth-
century “Virgil in the Basket” replicates medieval Christian European
characterizations of Virgil as learned in the dark arts. It resembles tales
from Christian Europe, in which a virtuous wife bests a conniving lover
by exposing him to public mockery (here she suspends him in a basket
between her tower window and the ground below for all to mock).
42 I agree with Tohar that “Johanan and the Scorpion was evidently too problem-
atic and provocative for its intended readership” (2009: 64).

Jewish Magic Tales 63
An important difference separates the tale outcomes, however: the
Christian German tale cited by Yassif grants victory to the quick-witted
wife, while the Jewish European tale imposes a humiliating revenge
on the woman by the magician. A superficial interpretation of the two
tales’ differing conclusions suggests a stark gender divide. Yassif, in con-
trast, reasons that medieval Jews would have understood the Jewish tale
of “Virgil in the Basket.” in a context that included the destruction of
the Second Temple “as the completion of the tale of revenge left unfin-
ished by the previous tale … as reliable testimony of a great punishm
inflicted on the city of Rome, capital of the destroyers of the Jewish
capital” (ibid.: 259). It is likely that the medieval Jewish reader
s who
would have understood “Virgil in the Basket” as an allegory of Jewish
revenge on the destroyers of the Second Temple would have been the
most learned of this tale’s readers (and listeners). I include it here as an
instance of the difficulties of grasping meanings that might have been
imputed to stories by past writers and readers. Some tales give up their

meanings readily; others, like “Virgil in the Basket,” resist later efforts
at interpretation.
In succeeding ages Jewish authors of magic tales compose narrative
courses of events to fit the overall conditions in which Jews of that da
lived their lives. Stated simply, Jewish stories retained ancient motifs,
but adapted them to the various cultures in which their creators found
themselves. Tales including magic were no exception. If there is an over-
arching tendency in the history of the Jewish magic tales discussed in
this chapter, it is magic’s shifting deployment. Initially (in the Biblical
and Second Temple periods), magic assists the Jewish nation. After the
destruction of the Second Temple, magic stories detail the protection
magic offers individual pious Jews. But in the medieval European period
Jewish magic tales begin to invoke magic to bring about human happi-
ness, although more frequently as the realization of Jewish ethics than
as the gratification of individual social or material gain.

Magic Tales in Medieval
Christian Europe
A vast variety of stories circulated in the Christian Middle Ages. Their
differing casts of characters reflected Europe’s mix of Celtic, Germanic,
Latin, and Slavic ethnic groups and its pagan and Christian religious
cultures. Story plots communicate peasant, mercantile, courtly, and
cloistered social environments, as well as rural and urban communi-
ties, narrative riches that were further expanded by importations from
Byzantium, and from West, East, and South Asian cultures. There were
stories for every taste: bawdy tales of lust and low humor, chaste allego-
ries of hot desire thwarted and heavenly reward conferred. Miraculous
intervention saved sinners and routed the devil; chivalric epics eased
slow hours at court; and prankish urban tales and abbreviated romances
of knightly valor amused literate city dwellers along with less lettered

contemporaries, at home and on the road.The titles of scholarly collections such as Märchen des Mittelalters
(Tales of the Middle Ages, Wesselski, ed. 1925) and Märchen vor Grimm
(Tales before Grimm, Uther, ed. 1990), and of studies such as Formes
médiévales du conte merveilleux (Medieval Forms of the Magic Tale,
Berlioz et al., eds. 1989) suggest an equivalence between medieval magi
tales and modern fairy tales, because they use terms – Märchen and conte
merveilleux – generally associated with modern fairy tales. However,
this is not the case. Magic functions differently in medieval tales and
appears to have been understood by its quondam authors, readers, and
listeners in terms of beliefs and values far different from today’s under-
standing of fairy tale magic. As Jacques Berlioz, Claude Brémond, and Catherine Velay-Vallantin
note in the preface to Formes médiévales du conte merveilleux, it is diffi-
cult to define what is understood by the term conte merveilleux, beyond
such a tale’s having a royal character play a role in an adventure with a

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 65
(generally) male protagonist, a (usually) familial antagonist, and (
always) magical intervention. Berlioz, Brémond, and Velay-Vallantin
pay less attention to the way in which medieval European magic tales
differ from early modern and modern ones, and so it is worth drawing
attention to the fact that the magic in medieval European magic tales
cannot be relied on to produce happiness here on earth. No plot could
better exemplify the singularities of magic in medieval European magic
tales than one about a young and beautiful wife who dies, leaving her
40-year-old husband bereft.
An angel from God promises the sorrowing widower to revive her
in exchange for the next twenty years of his life. Joyfully assenting,
the husband turns into a sixty-year-old, and his wife returns to life.
However, she soon rejects him for a younger man. Her husband real-
izes he made a bad bargain, the angel returns his twenty years of
life, and the faithless wife dies and – in the tale’s own words – rots.
(Uther, 1990: 40–4)
This is not a tale with a happy ending of married bliss here on earth so

typical of modern magic-propelled fairy tales. Such endings were rarities
in the Middle Ages. Instead, a tale’s magic, as here, consists principally
of miracles wrought by God, the Virgin Mary, saints, or angels to bring
about divine justice on earth or eternal reward in heaven, or else magic

takes the form of illusions produced by the Devil. Medieval romances, which contrast sharply with brief exemplary
narratives like the one above, range from courtly Arthurian romances
through popular chivalric ones such as Huon of Bordeaux or Beuve
de Hantone to novel-like romances such as Partonopeu de Blois, Jean
d’Arras’s prose legend Le Roman de Melusine (The Romance of Melusine),
and La Belle au cheveux d’or (The Golden-Haired Beauty). These long
narratives, and others like them, formed part of an enormous body of
secular narratives that survives from the late 1100s to the late-1400s in
manuscript, and from the later 1400s onward, in printed books. Arthurian romances loom large throughout western Europe in the
medieval period, demonstrating medieval literature’s Europe-wide inter-
national reach. In great variety, Arthurian romances recounted Round
Table-centered matière de Bretagne (matter of Brittany), which via transla-
tions, reformulations, and compilations made its way from France to Ital
(Picone, 1984: 89; Delcorno Branca, 1984: 103). There Lancilotto (som
times Ancilotto), Tristano, and their companions took on a life of their
own, diverting urban citizens and popular audiences (Picone, 1984: 89–

66 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Arthurian romances reached their zenith between 1350 and 1450,
a period that can be considered an Arthurian age, an aetas arthuriana, as
the Swiss Italianist Michelangelo Picone calls it (1984: 90). Often re
aloud, the romance was a flexible genre. Its heroes’ and heroines’
tures could expand or contract in direct response to audience interest o
as an expression of individual tellers’ enthusiasm and knowledge. Although the sheer length of romances technically excludes them from
a discussion of magic tales, their plots were so often abbreviated that in
practice a single romance often existed simultaneously in two forms,
one a lengthy romance, the other a brief tale. In romances’ thousands
versified lines, the magic of monsters, giants, flying horses, and encha
ment appears only here and there. But because all of the romances’ magic
survives into tales abbreviated from them, magic occupies a larger propor-
tion of abbreviated tales’ total narrative than is the case in romanc
es. In both romances and the tales derived from them, authors typically
present the results of enchantment, rather than writing in the detailed
processes that medieval grimoires prescribe to achieve those results.
Thus, romances and their derivative tales rarely teach modern read-
ers much about the medieval practice of magic or about the forms of
enchantments used to produce that magic. Another absence caused by
medieval tales’ abbreviation from courtly romances is the use of magi
functions “as a ploy for developing the inner lives of the characters

(Kieckhefer, 2000: 109). A hero’s and his beloved’s hope, anxiety, and
despair make frequent appearances in a lengthy courtly romance like
Cleomades, but once Cleomades was shortened into the magic tale
Clamades, most of those references fell into oblivion. In terms of style, medieval magic tales scour the plots of the
romances, epics, and novellas clean of most of their adjectives, and
rarely pause to individualize their often nameless heroes and heroines.
This characterization overlaps with descriptions of classic fairy tales set
out by the Swiss scholar Max Lüthi in his classic The European Folktale:
Form and Nature (1982). The resulting tales themselves, however, tell
stories far different from typical fairy tales. Consider the Sindibad cycle
(not Sindbad the Sailor!), which entered Europe as De rege et septem
sapientibus (The King and the Seven Wise Men). Often called simply
Dolopathos, after the king in its frametale, the Dolopathos frametale and
stories are exemplary tales, intended to warn a king against taking an
ill-considered action, in this case, executing his son.
The son’s life hangs in the balance, because his stepmother, the
king’s second wife, has falsely accused him of sexually accosting her.

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 67
Under a temporary bond of silence, the son cannot defend himself.
To save the young man’s life, seven wise men tell the king exemplary
tales until the son is free to speak and can exonerate himself.
Assembled by a Cistercian monk named Johannes (birth and death
dates unknown) in the Haute-Seille (Alta Silva) abbey in Lorraine in
eastern France in the late 1100s, the Dolopathos collection contains
eight tales altogether, seven exemplary tales and one magic tale. Two
of the exempla derive from eastern sources, a fact that makes Johannes
a significant mediator of Near Eastern narrative material to medieval
European literary circles (Maaz, 1993: 7: col. 573). On the other hand, its
single magic tale, with a full array of motifs that lived on in European

storytelling, has no known eastern antecedent. For the next three cen-
turies, the Dolopathos collection spread its single magic tale far and wide
via manuscript reproduction, public readings, and perhaps even private
Out hunting, a young king chases a doe deep into the woods. He
loses sight of her, but comes upon a nymph who while bathing is
holding a golden chain. He makes her his wife (as the text chastely
says), and she conceives – six boys and one girl.The king’s mother, realizing that her son’s new bride will rise above
her in wealth and power, feigns fondness for the mother and the
seven infants, but secretly orders a servant to kill the babies (each
of whom is born with a golden chain around its neck) and replace
them with seven puppies. Instead of killing the newborns, the serv-
ant abandons them under a tree in the woods, expecting wild beasts
to devour them.
With characteristically pious religious expressions, the tale credits God

with the children’s wellbeing (“But the author and creator of all crea-
tures, God – who sees all, sustains and directs everything, humankind
even more than the rest . . .”), recounting how an old hermit nouris
them with doe’s milk. During this period, the children’s mother suffers cruel punishment
at the hands of her mother-in-law. Buried naked up to her arm-
pits, fed with kitchen scraps, and spurned by her husband, she is
scorned by his subjects. The sun wrinkles and burns her skin, her
eyes cross, her hair darkens with filth, and she withers away to skin
and bones.

68 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
After seven years, her husband – once again hunting in the
woods – catches sight of seven children with gold chains around
their necks and is touched by natural affection (a medieval belief
in blood recognizing blood). Returning to the castle, he tells his
mother about them; she in turn dispatches a servant who finds the
boys transformed into swans and their sister holding their golden
chains. Stealing the chains, the servant brings them to the queen
who – to destroy the chains’ magic capacity to change the swans
back into boys – delivers them to a goldsmith to be made into a
goblet. Unwittingly he subverts her intention by using different gold
to fashion the goblet. Without the chains the brothers can’t return to their human form,
and so they fly away, settling on a pond near their father’s chateau.
Encountering them once again, the king is amazed at their beauty
and orders that they be fed daily from his own table and be kept
safe. Their sister presents herself at the chateau each day and begs
for food, which she shares with the half-buried woman, unaware that
she is her mother. The king, startled by the girl’s resemblance both to
his wife and to himself, asks her to tell him her story, which she does
in the presence of the king’s criminous mother and her servant. Their
nervous glances and changing color reveal the mother-in-law’s secret
crime. “And when everything had been unveiled, God whose eye
sees everything, whose knowledge nothing escapes, who does not
allow that the innocent suffer for too long a time for that the unjust
may glorify themselves from their wickedness, allowed it to happen
that the old woman had her servant try to murder the little girl. But
her father accidentally s[ees] what [i]s happening and intervene[s].”
The servant confesses; the king’s mother does too (after torture);
the goldsmith returns five of the chains intact, with the sixth, alas,
incomplete. Hence, five of the brothers return to their human forms,
and “the sixth is the one you see on a coat of arms with a golden
chain.” The king’s nymph-wife is raised from her living grave and
cleansed of seven years’ exposure to the elements, and the mother-
in-law is interred in her place.
The tale’s magic consists of motifs (a gold chain encircling each child’s
neck at birth) and process (transformations between human and animal
form), but not practice. That is to say, no ritual brings about the boys’
transformation into swans, no invocation of demons or angels causes
their metamorphoses. The magic simply happens, and in this respect
readers are left to wonder about agency. How is one to understand a

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 69
magic that is enacted by no character in the tale? From what source of
supernatural power does the tale’s magic proceed? The text does not
answer these questions. Its author may have believed that the ques-
tions did not need clarification, because he anticipated that his reader
or listeners would understand the source of magic power. If this train
of thought is valid, it engenders a second and equally important ques-
tion: what constitutes the understanding of the role and function of
magic posited as shared between author and reader or listener in this
magic tale?
A medieval understanding of magic in the Dolopathos magic tale
may be found in the opening formulaic invocation of “the author
and creator of all creatures, God – who sees all, sustains and direct
everything, humankind even more than the rest . . .” Here the author
signals ultimate agency, clarifying (in general) without specifying (in
particular) a divine source of magic powers within the tale. Assuming
a shared acknowledgment of God as the author of everything in the
known universe deftly exempts an author from the narrative necessity
of accounting for the source of this tale’s magic, as it is manifested in
the appearance of the gold-bedecked infants, the magic transforma-
tions of its swan boys, and the miraculous survival of their half-buried
mother. Another medieval Christian magic tale, the verse novella Asinarius,
was composed at approximately the same time that Johannes de Alta
Silva assembled Dolopathos, Its plot, like that of the suffering nymph-
queen, is one of social restoration:
A long barren queen conceives and gives birth to an ass instead of
an infant. Named Asinarius, he is educated as a prince and acquires
social graces such as learning to sing and play the zither that com-
pensate for his repellent appearance. Leaving home, the prince
encounters a king who offers him his daughter in marriage. On his
wedding night, Asinarius sheds his donkeyskin, but resumes it in the
morning. A servant observes this strange process and advises the king
to snatch the skin and burn it. Deprived of his skin Asinarius decides
to flee, but changes his mind when the king promises to divide his
realm with him.
1 Albert Wesselski considered Asinarius the first European “Märchen” (Märchen des
Mittelalters, 1925: 94). The text is available in English translation in Ziolkowski,

2006: 341–50. A Latin text can be found in Asinarius, 1983: 4:137–251.

70 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
The language in which Asinarius is written, Latin, suggests that its
original audience was learned or at least able to read Latin (Gatti, 19
2 It is plain misfortune, not enchantment, that causes Asinarius
to be born as an ass, even though his mother’s long sterility is attributed
to the hostility of Lucine, the goddess of conception. Thus neither fëerie,
a misspoken wish, an unintended insult to the fairy world, the mischief-
making of malicious fairies, nor a curse at conception causes the prince
rough and hairy donkeyskin. His mother proposes drowning him, but
his father intervenes, referring to Jupiter, Juno, Venus, and Hercules to
assert the prince’s right, as royal offspring, to live: “Whichever of the
gods it was who gave him as heir, [Asinarius] will be on the throne as
king of my realm, his head will bear his father’s crown, and his father’s
entire glory is owed to him”. (Ziolkowski, 2006: 342) The donkey-prince’s remarkable ability to sing and charm his com-
panions with sweet melody results not from fairy gift, but from firm
intention and hard practice. The finger-wagging ethic of practice pro-
ducing proficiency differentiates Asinarius from later fairy tales where
such a gift is conferred as a benefit to counterbalance or soften a fair
Similarly consistent with a pragmatic mentality of cause and effect
deeply at odds with the tenets of a magic-driven world is the donkey-
prince’s decision to leave his father’s realm. It follows upon a reasoned
consideration of his fate should his father no longer be able to protect

him from his subjects’ scorn. The story’s underlying soberness where
magic is concerned even conditions the tale’s description of the removal
of Asinarius’s hated pelt: when he climbs into bed with his new wife he
simply takes it off. In much the same way, the pelt’s final destruction
occurs because of human rather than supernatural intervention, when
his father snatches and burns it. A prince’s being born as a donkey is a
counterfactual situation that sits incongruously within Asinarius’s over-
all realism. And yet, the story’s author slips this isolated bit of magic
into the story so seamlessly that it is narratively frictionless.
2 Gatti places Asinarius in the tradition of elegiac distichs, which carried Aesopic
and other animal tales from the ancient world through the Middle Ages to
early modern era. For more on the role of elegiac distichs in the histor
y of medi-
eval Latin literature, see Rodriguez Adrados, who considers such elegiac
a new phase in the evolution of the “género fabulístico” (1
991: 26–43, here 27).
3 In Perrault’s “Riquet à la Houppe,” for instance, the highly intelligent bu
t ugly
hero has the gift of conferring intelligence on the woman who loves him.
Of the
two sisters, the ugly one is intelligent, the beautiful one stupid.

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 71
Like many novellas produced before 1450, Asinarius incorporates
sexuality as a prominent narrative hinge and refers in particular to
the female sex’s pleasure in and desire for sexual congress. Asinarius’s
royal mother provides the first instance of licit female sexual pleasure

by implicitly affirming her delight in nighttime frolics (in a complain
that she no longer has that pleasure). The Asinarius author later adverts
explicitly to sexual readiness in describing the princess’s pubic fuzz and
developing breasts as physical signs that she will wish to bed whatever
man might come along. Consistent with the text’s explicit physical
description of the princess’s body is her father’s offer of his daughter
in marriage to Asinarius: “Do you wish that our daughter should be
given you between your arms, so that she may occupy herself with
you in nighttime games?” The subsequent coy chronicling of the wed-
ding night describes the virgin “rush[ing] headlong into the bond of
“Immediately he leaps into bed and the girl follows. What follows
they know – and the bed itself knows. (Nor do I think that the man
hiding [the servant who observed the proceedings] could have failed
to notice which games and what sorts of games were conducted there
by night!) For a time he tempers the heat of amorous desire, and she
fulfills the offices of a wife for her husband.” (Ziolkowski, 2006:
Lastly the royal newlyweds’ heavy slumber precipitates the tale’s resolu-
tion, for it enables the bride’s father to spirit away and destroy the fatal
donkeyskin. At two points, Asinarius hints at its (initial) intended reader- or listener-
ship, leaving the impression that its quondam audience consists of
wealthy urban dwellers. For instance, the donkey refuses a seat either
among the servants or among the knights, claiming he is no ordinary
donkey of the stable, but a person of urban nobility, a statement that
locates Asinarius firmly within that rich treasury of medieval secular
urban tales pitting city folks against country bumpkins.
4 Sharing in the
donkey’s urban identity would have made the prince’s country ass-skin
4 Ziolkowski argues that Asinarius’s author “created the poem for a school
milieu” (2006: 204), because it “explores themes that would have
struck home
in young boys as they perused it” (205). My own readings of medieva
l, early
modern, and modern religious and secular school texts suggests otherwise, since
school texts nearly always incorporate overt references to the childness
of their
readers and explicit directions about obedience to their elders and soci
al betters.

72 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
deformity doubly amusing to urban readers and listeners. A second hint
suggests and describes a cityscape that celebrates the donkey’s royal wed-
ding with decorations and acrobatic entertainment before the people,
rather than within a country castle or palace (Ziolkowski, 2006: 347, 348).
Asinarius’s anonymous author did not invent the story de novo.
Neither did he take it from Apuleius’s “Cupid and Psyche,” where a cen-
trally important fact is that Cupid’s imputed monstrosity was not objec-
tive and factual (as was Asinarius’s years-long donkey-ness observed
by everyone who encountered him), but an imagined beastliness,
insinuated by Psyche’s jealous sisters. The author of Asinarius speaks of
a “legend” that provided his facts. Whether that refers obliquely
to a
dim knowledge of Apuleius’s tale (which seems unlikely, since “Cupid
and Psyche” seems not to have been known before its rediscovery in
the Renaissance), or whether it refers to some other ass-skinned hero,
we cannot tell. The magic of a donkey’s paradoxical zither-accompanied sweet
singing fascinated the French scholar Claude Brémond. Consider the
following ancient proverbs, as did Brémond. “There is neither a zi
playing ass nor a philosophical bull.” Or again, “What is an ass’
s voice
in comparison with the lark’s?” Or another: “An ass takes no pleasure in
the zither.” Each of these proverbial sentiments contributes to the foun-
dational (and humorous) cultural and experiential subtext within which

Asinarius is embedded. Its worldview seems to suit the age, for it enjoyed
an undeniably wide currency in the Middle Ages: Hugo von Trimberg
lists Asinarius in his thirteenth-century Registrum multorum auctorum as
a book read in schools as well as by general readers (W agner, 1977: 1:
col. 866). From this we may conclude that Asinarius’s composition
reflects then-reigning assumptions about magic within its urban reader-
ship and that its use propagated those same assumptions.
Miracle books and exemplary tales
Miracle books came into being in the same period as exemplum collec-
tions. The Cluniac Petrus Venerabilis (c1092–1156) is thought to have
gathered material for his Liber de miraculis (Book of Miracles) during
an 1142 trip to Spain to study Islam. Another monk, the Cistercian
Herbert of Clairvaux (?– 1198), produced a second influential book
of miracles around 1178 (Lacarra, 1979, 1986; Marsan, 1974). The
cultural and literary importance of twelfth-century miracle books lies
principally in their having provided a common source of religious
images to the entire European continent: they were adopted by later

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 73
twelfth- and thirteenth-century compilers in Germany, when Caesarius
of Heisterbach (c1180–c1240) published Dialogus miraculorum (Dialog of
Miracles, 1219–1223) and Libri VIII miraculorum (Eight Books of Miracles,
1225–1226); in France, when the Dominican Guillaume Perraud (?–c
referred to in English as William Peraldus) produced Summa de vitiis et
virtutibus (Compilation of vices and virtues, before 1250);
and in Italy
when Giovanni di San Geminiano (c1260–c1332) gathered together a
handbook of tales, Summa de exemplis et similitudinibus rerum locupletis-
sima (The most complete compilation of exempla and similitudes). Most miracle books were composed and distributed in Latin, but some
were composed in the vernacular. The Manuel des pechiez (The handbook
of sins, c1270), constructed for an Anglo-Norman French-speaking audi-
ence, was subsequently translated by Robert Mannyng of Brunne (c1275–
c1338) for English speakers as Handlyng synne. Exemplary material also
appeared in Spanish, English, German, French, and Italian, and later in
languages of the European periphery, such as Icelandic and Czech. Exemplary tales existed in the thousands in the Middle Ages, but
because modern scholars long turned away from this narrative form,
a dark and general oblivion enveloped them until the late twentieth
century. Europe’s first exemplum collection, the Disciplina clericalis
(Education for clerics) was composed by Petrus Alphonsus (c.1065–
after 1121), a Spanish Jewish convert to Christianity, who introduced
Moorish, Jewish, and Middle Eastern material into the European exem-
plary tradition. Petrus Alphonsus, believed to have been physician to
Alfons I of Aragon (1073–1134) and Henry I of England (1100–1135),
traveled to Britain, where Disciplina clericalis was translated into English,
and where the genre as a whole was enthusiastically adopted. Indeed,
a large proportion of medieval exemplum collections’ authors were
British by birth or association: the 1140 Gesta regum Anglorum (Deeds
of the English kings) by W illiam of Malmesbury (c1095–c1143), the
c1150 Liber moralium dogmatis philosophorum (The Book of Doctrine of
the Moral Philosophers) by Guillaume de Conches, Gemma ecclesiastica
by Gerald of Wales (Geraldus Cambrensis, Jewel of the Church, c1146–
c1223) written sometime between c 1190 and c1200, and De naturis rerum
(On the Natures of Things) by Alexander of Neckham (1157–1217),
which was in place by 1200. For source material, these authors turned
to works treating history, natural phenomena, and divine manifesta-
tions. Continental chronicles – for instance the early thirteenth-century
Chronicon (Chronicle) of the Cistercian Hélinand de Froidmont (c1160–
1237?), the Speculum historiale (The mirror of history) of the Dominican
Vincent of Beauvais (c1190–1264?), and sometime after 1287 the Chronica

74 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
(Chronicles) of the Franciscan brother Salimbene of Parma (1221–af
1287) also contained tales that could be put to use as exemplary exhor-
tations to solidify a Christian identity among their listeners. The world of medieval exemplary tales as a whole is one in which
the strangely unaccountable is miraculous rather than magical, a world
in which divine figures routinely intervene in daily life and save the
sinful from danger when they repent. Exempla provided memorable
material communicating precisely this kind of message for high and
late medieval preachers, with these stories’ currency attested to by
ubiquity in the early thirteenth-century sermon collections of Jacques
de Vitry (c1160–1240) and those of his contemporary Odo of Cheriton
(c1185–c1247). Exempla collections were generally organized for eas
reference and practical use, with stories arranged either thematically
or alphabetically, thus easing the search for colorful narratives and apt
embellishments. Organization was necessary, because an individual
exemplum collection might contain up to 1,000 stories. The sheer number of surviving manuscript copies of exemplum collec-
tions confirms how widespread was their medieval distribution and use.
All pre-print collections of exemplary tales were copied by hand scores
of times. In the Liège University library alone, for instance, there are
some 2,000 exempla manuscripts originally produced for the brothers of
the Holy Cross. The fact that so many manuscript copies have survived
suggests that the numbers of manuscript exemplum collections once
in circulation far exceeded those that now lie ready to hand in libraries
and archives. Like other widely used medieval manuscripts, exemplum
collections also figure prominently among pre-1500 printed books. The collections themselves were carried on the person of mendicant
monks who journeyed, usually on foot, who slept on the same straw
that their hosts did and who ate at humble people’s boards. Small port-
able excerpts suffered equally hard use. Written upon, stained by sweat,
frayed and torn by constant use, they lost pages, with those most often
turned to the first to disappear.
Scala coeli
In the early fourteenth century, the Dominican monk Johannes Gobi
Junior (birth date unknown–c1350) compiled one of the medieval era’
most successful collections of exemplary tales, the Scala coeli (Stairway
5 This is equally evident in all medieval manuscripts that saw hard use, s
uch as
Petrus Comestor’s Historia Scholastica. See Bottigheimer, 1994b.

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 75
of Heaven). Assembled soon after Dolopathos and Asinarius, between
1323 and 1330 in a monastery in Provence, the kinds of tales it contains
are of broad interest and long-term significance. Each of the Dominican
preacher’s stories is a model of clarity. Structured like exemplary stories
in earlier collections, each begins with an announcement of the story’s
intended teaching, continues directly with the story itself, and ends with
an explanation that pounds its message home. Like his contempora ries,
Johannes arranged the stories alphabetically by category, beginning
with abstinentia (abstinence) and ending with usura (usury). To find
just the right story for a mercantile, courtly, or domestic audience,
preachers could consult headings such as “Merchant,” “Knight,” “Wife,”
and “Husband.” The Scala coeli’s interest for historians of magic tales lies in the fact
that mendicant preachers delivered its stories to ordinary people,
6 and
in this way the Scala coeli spread far and wide a host of ancient and
recent written sources that the well-read Johannes Gobi listed in his
preface: secular stories from Aesop, Macrobius, Hermes Tresmegithus,
Ovid, Seneca, Suetonius, Historia Troiana (Trojan history), and Historia
Antiqua (Ancient history) as well as some from the writings of Christian
theologians of antiquity along with Gesta Romanorum (Deeds of the
Romans), Liber de Septem Sapientibus (Book of the Seven Sages), Miracula
Beate Virginis (Miracles of the Blessed Virgin), Alphabetum Narrationum
(Alphabet of Tales, c1308–1310) and several other exemplum collections,
such as Gesta Alexandri (The Deeds of Alexander), and Barlaam.
The Scala
coeli thus became a compendious source of popular knowledge of magic
tales (along with exemplary and Aesopic tales), and it began relaying
these stories to Europe’s sermon-hearing and church-going listeners
soon after Johannes Gobi compiled it. Rudolf Schenda draws attention
to the importance of the preaching orders in maintaining and spreading
narratives from 500 to 1500 naming the following preachers: Jacques de
Vitry (1160/70–1240), Caesarius of Heisterbach (c1180–1240), the t
teenth-century Etienne de Bourbon (1205–1261), and the fourteenth-
century John Bromyard (?–?; Schenda, 1993:141). The printing press carried Johannes Gobi’s stories into the early mod-
ern world, where they continued to spread. Printings of Scala coeli are
6 The single “heard” tale not attributed to a religious source, No. 686, recounts
a miraculous intervention by the Virgin Mary that was later documented as
Miracle No. 22 in a 1434 Marian miracle collection by Jean Herolt (died
For more on collection-to-collection crossover, see G. Philippart and Brenda
Dunn-Lardeau (1993).

76 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
recorded in the Germanies (Lübeck 1476, Ulm 1480, Strasbourg 1483),

the Low Countries (Louvain 1485), and England (Boston 1505; see
also Huet, 1920). The history of the contents of Scala coeli as it passed
from manuscript to print production strongly suggests that story taste
changed over time, and that this change took place in conjunction with
technological innovation. The technological aspect is centrally impor-
tant, because printing presses vastly expanded the number of individual
people’s exposures to identical versions of Johannes Gobi’s stories. We
cannot know whether the changes made to the contents of Scala coeli
represent publishers’ assessments of public taste, censors’ imposi
tion of
newly formulated criteria of public morality, or readers’ real or reported
expressions of personal choice and demonstrations of buying power. All
we know is that 130 of his original 1000 tales were eventually omitted.
An analysis and characterization of the omitted tales might well indicat
what material or belief elements fell from favor between 1476 and 1505. The fact that the same tale could be disseminated from hundreds
or even thousands of sermon books to one generation after another
means that tales’ indwelling concepts and constructions of magic had
the potential to establish as well as to confirm nearly identical patter
of thinking about magic among widely disparate peoples in medieval
Europe. To put this another way, even though magic tales constituted
a very small proportion of exemplary collections’ narrative inventory,
magic tales survived preferentially. Moreover, the survival of a tale and its
image of magic from one generation to another did not need to depend
on one individual’s telling it to another individual, as has long been
believed among folklorists, because the same sermon book with the same
magic tale provided a later preacher with exactly the same tale – wit
much the same, or identical, wording – for a new generation of listen
This mechanism would neatly account for retention of a given story’s
structure and style among oral informants, had stories been collected in

the field by folklorists in the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries. The generative power of the Scala coeli shows itself in the large num-
ber of its tales that re-emerged as folktales in subsequent centuries (
de Beaulieu, 1993: 598–600.). Other exemplum collections also spread
plots along with their magic. The Legenda Aurea (Golden Legend, c1260)
of Jacobus de Voragine (c1230–1298), probably the most read – or
heard – book in medieval Europe, initially in manuscript and later in

incunabula incarnations, also contributed to the spread of dragon-killer

tales, as well as narrations of miraculous events that in later centurie
would be understood as expressions of magic (Fleith and Wenzel, 1996:
8: col. 846, 851–2).

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 77
Until this point I have offered general, but not specific, evidence
that exemplum collections were effective in spreading their tales. Let
us now consider some test cases. In terms of geographical reach, it is
worth noting that one Scala coeli exemplum (No. 618) turned up in the
late Middle Ages in a manuscript in far-distant Iceland (Berlioz et al.
1989: 89). In terms of chronological persistance, Scala coeli stories were
excerpted into both secular and religious story collections, well into the
early modern period, that is, into the 1600s. The influence of Johannes
Gobi’s Scala coeli stories is well-nigh incalculable. His tale No. 538 about
a youngest son’s obtaining the water of life for his ailing father marks
a point of origin for a motif cluster that recurs in many later European

fairy tales. However, the uses to which the motifs are put in the Scala
coeli story and the understanding of the magic those motifs commu-
nicate express apparent assumptions about magic that are specific to a
medieval Christian worldview and that are cloaked in religious imagery:
A king, suffering from a malady curable only by water from the foun-
tain of life (aqua fontis viventis), promises his kingdom to whoever
brings him some of its water. His first son searches river banks (per
riparias), the second plains (per planicies), and the third mountains
(per montes). There the third son finds an elderly man who directs
him to the fountain of youth (fons juventutis). To reach it, however,
he must overcome a mortally dangerous serpent, mustn’t look upon
a group of girl choristers, mustn’t accept arms from knights and
barons whom he meets, and finally must open a palace gate cov-
ered with bells without causing them to sound. Within the palace
a girl holding the key to the fountain of youth tells him that she is
not only to give him the restorative water but is also to marry him.
Returning home after his marriage, he receives his father’s realm.
In this story a dangerous quest for a mythic substance (the water of life)
is impeded by a series of tasks and trials. The hero is given important
information by an unidentified old man, but the hero’s success depends
solely on courage and obedience unaided by other-worldly or magi-
cal assistance. The girl’s straightforward explanation of why the young
prince is to marry her takes only three lines of Latin and gives a good
example of this story’s dry style (Gobi, ed. Polo de Beaulieu, 1991: 399).
7 My rendering is based on the French translation in Berlioz et al., 1989:
The Latin original is in Polo de Beaulieu, 1991: 399–400.

78 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
As far as secular magic vs religious miracles is concerned, the last
third of the narrative reveals and delineates the tale’s religious content
in an explicitly worded tripartite medieval scholastic explanation: on
the spiritual level, the three human sons of a sick father represent thr
sorts of people: the first searches for pleasures (delicias) and frequents
coastlines; the second looks for pleasures (delicias again) on the plains,
the traditional Biblical locus of sin; the third passes through penitanc
(penitencias) and takes to mountain roads. Now come the third son’s
four trials (quattuor impedimenta) in which he encounters the serpent’s
taste for vengeance (affectio vindicte qui est coluber); the pleasures of the
flesh as represented by women (carnis complacentie que sunt mulieres);
a knight’s attachment to earthly things and his fear of poverty ( affectio rei
terrene et timor paupertatis qui sunt milites ); and an appetite for recognition
and preferments represented by the gate’s bells ( appetitus honoris qui sunt
campanule). To withstand the assigned trials, the commentary explains
that the third, successful, son uses both material and spiritual means,
namely, the staff of the memory of the Passion of Christ, a flight into
poverty, the hoped-for celestial reward, and the “sponge of humility.”
Only he, the third and youngest son, is able to penetrate the palace of
grace, find spiritual love, and obtain the water of the remission of sin
together with the young woman within the palace who becomes his
spouse (Berlioz et al., 1989: 100–1; Gobi Junior, ed. Polo de Beaulieu,
1991: 399–400). Arguments such as these permeated medieval exegesis,

their broad currency suggesting that preachers believed that their read-
ers and listeners found them persuasive. Above all, it is religious puri
rather than magical assistance that wins the day. As Gobi tells the story, it contains a cluster of motifs – the youngest
of three brothers, a quest, tasks and trials the successful completion o
which gains a royal bride, and the water of life – that would come to

characterize the magic-propelled action of many modern fairy tales, but
Johannes Gobi makes these motifs into a religious exemplary tale that
typifies a medieval Christian worldview. If this tale of a quest for magic
healing were a modern restoration fairy tale, either its hero would suffer
from the difficulty of performing the tasks and trials set for him, or e
his indwelling goodness would elicit magic help from a magic helper to
accomplish his tasks. But neither as the story is told nor as it is inter-
preted by Johannes Gobi does magic help or does a magic helper appear
in any manner that corresponds to a fairy tale paradigm. Instead the
story admits its listeners to a world in which a hero negotiates his way
through and around allegorically explained magical impediments by
following detailed instructions. Johannes Gobi’s commentary lengthens

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 79
the tale by half, effectively denaturing the story’s thrust and gutting
its narrative body, so that his tale, together with its commentary, leads
us into a strange world. The magic remains unquestioned, as do the
instructions, and in this rare instance magic leads to a happy ending
here on earth.
Another exemplary tale from the high Middle Ages has a plot and an
outcome that confound a modern reader:
A not yet marriageable girl (“Ein noch nicht mannbares Mägdlein,”
trans. Wesselski, 1925: 46) is betrothed to a knight who goes abroad,
leaving her and his realm under the protection of his seneschal.
During the knight’s absence the seneschal attempts to sexually vio-
late the girl, and in her dismay, the young woman strangles him
while he sleeps and seeks help in disposing of the body from a com-
patriot at court. The friend, however, refuses to help unless she sleeps
with him. She promises to do so (“with her mouth, but not from
her heart”), and when he carries the corpse to a bridge, from which
he means to dump it, she gives carrier and corpse together a mighty
shove, and both disappear into the river. Eventually the young woman’s husband returns. To cover her lost
virginity, she slips a virgin maid into the marriage bed on her wedding
night. But once deflowered, the maid refuses to leave the marriage
bed, and so the heroine smothers her, stuffs the body into a chest, sets
it on fire, awakens her husband, and flees with him to safety. Long afterward, the young woman’s conscience leads her to confess
her sins to her chaplain. He prescribes a daily penance (wearing a hair

shirt) and a weekly penance (bread and water). But then the devil
spurs on the confessor to woo her himself. He demands that she go
to bed with him, threatening to expose her past to her husband if she
demurs. Trusting in God’s mercy, she refuses the confessor’s advances.
The young wife’s penitence and her trust in God comprise the story’s
religious and narrative pivot, and are presumably why medieval preach-
ers told this story. The confessor then reveals the wife’s history to her husband (omit-
ting his own attempts to extort sexual compliance), and pledges his
eyes as guarantors of the truth of his story that she is subject to a
daily and a weekly penance for the sins he has just revealed to her
husband. The following Friday the husband and the confessor meet
in her room, where her drink proves not to be penitential water but

80 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
delicious wine (because God has transformed it) while under her
dress there is not a hair shirt, but soft linen (because God has trans-
formed it too). The knight then tears out the confessor’s eyeballs.
(Wesselski, 1931: 46–7)
The story’s final words emphasize its moral: “And so God saved the
repentant woman who had given up sinning and relieved her of her
guilt in his great mercy.”
8 The tale of the triple murderess, initially
pre-pubertal (noch nicht mannbar) and later penitent and reformed
(bereuende und der Sünde entsagende) (Wesselski, 1925: 47), is not one of
murders punished, but of penitence rewarded. The magical transforma-
tions of the water and hair shirt that save her lie solely within God’
s gift,
far from any sorcerers’ charts, retorts, or conjurations.
Marian legends
From the late 1100s to the mid-1400s secular tales without magic
recounted women’s witty independence and self-protective actions in
sexual relations (Bottigheimer, 2000). Towards the beginning of this
period, religious tales, including exemplary tales, used magic to exon-
erate their heroines. Nowhere was this more the case than in Marian
legends. Directed primarily at women, they valorize their heroines and
sympathize with their suffering. In these stories, women’s difficulties
are generally caused by rapacious male relatives or exploitative church-
men, such as the young wife’s confessor in the exemplum discussed
above. Here is another tale that provides a divinely governed magi-
cal cover-up for a different but equally horrifying sequence of events,
maternal incest and infanticide:
An elderly Roman senator is married to a young, beautiful, and vir-
tuous wife. Long childless, the wife bears a handsome son shortly
before the senator’s death. In her bereavement, the senator’s widow
8 Wesselski took this story from the Compilatio singularis exemplorum reproduced
in Alfons Hilka (1913). Wesselski also cited Reinhold Köhler, Kleinere Schriften,
ed. Johannes Bolte (1898 f.) 2: 303–99; Victor Chauvin, Bibliographie des ouvrages
arabes ou relatifs aux arabes ... 217 ff., A.L. Jellinek in Euphorion 9: 163, and Bolte-
Polivka, Anmerkungen zu den Kinder- und Hausmärchen der Brüder Grimm (1913 f.)
3: 449ff. Also Catalogue of Romances in the Department of Manuscripts in the British
Museum (Vol. 3 was edited by J.A. Herbert in 1910) 3: 563 (#46); and A. Bricte
Contes persans 38 ff. E. Tegethoff reworked Méons text in 1:109 ff. (All citations
are from Märchen des Mittelalters [208–9].)

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 81
takes the baby into her bed, and there he sleeps night after night
until he grows to adolescence. One night while asleep, he impreg-
nates her. When she realizes that she has conceived a child by her
son, the widow sends him away to shield him from knowledge of the
sin he unknowingly committed, bears the incestuously conceived
baby, kills it, and secretly buries it.
Later, burdened by guilt, she disguises herself as a Master of Arts
and goes to Rome. There her eminent intelligence and wise counsel
gain the attention of the Holy Roman Emperor, who makes her his
trusted adviser. But one day the devil seeks out the pope and reveals
her past sins to him, promising to dig up the baby’s bones as proof of
his accusations. The “counselor” denies the charge and throws her-
self on the Virgin Mary’s mercy, promising to build her a fine chapel
if she delivers her from discovery and execution. The Virgin Mary
complies, the Devil digs in vain, and the exonerated widow erects a
chapel dedicated to the Virgin.
This is not a unique plot, but one that typifies the short-lived medieva
genre of Marian legends in which Mary miraculously aids women in
need of help. Reading Marian legends leads to the conclusion that they
are less about maintaining morality than about establishing Mary’s
supremacy over the Devil by telling stories in which Mary’s super-
naturally effective magic powers exceed the Devil’s.
9 Stories like these
assume that magic exists as a discrete entity and that victory goes to
the person who controls the more powerful magic. Whether the magic
in question functions in the real world or solely in a narrative is not
spelled out in the stories themselves. Unlike Marian legends, Bible stories are a vanishingly small com-
ponent in the corpus of medieval magic tales as a whole. In practice,
Bible content itself began to reach a larger readership only at the end
of the twelfth century, with the 1170 Historia Scholastica by Petrus
Comestor (?–1178). For the use of students at the Paris “schools
” (later
the University of Paris), he retold narrative parts of the Old and New
Testaments, appending to each historia a commentary derived princi-
pally from the church fathers. Lot’s wife dramatically turns into a pillar
of salt, the Red Sea opens up for Moses, and chariots of fire surround
9 Much has been written about devils, particularly within the context of
Reformation beliefs, but a medieval story like this one has long remained below
the radar.

82 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Elisha, but Petrus Comestor made these episodes stand for scholastically

mediated messages. Occasional glimpses of medieval attempts at the
natural sciences glimmer through his prose, but the Historia Scholastica,
despite its profound influence in other areas, sent little of its Biblic
material into popular narrative. That the principal source of Biblical
knowledge for the largest number of people (I except theologians from
this statement) in the Christian Middle Ages was not the Bible itself,
but a rewritten narrative, also distinguishes the use Christians made of

the canonical Bible from that made by Jews (Bottigheimer, 1996: 14–23;
Morey, 1993).
The absence of magical practice in magic tales
“Courtly society was ridden with magic and fear of magic,” notes
Richard Kieckhefer in Magic in the Middle Ages (2000: 96). Parents with
the means to do so often had a horoscope cast for a newborn child.
Gems were believed to have curative powers, their individual uses
delineated in lapidaries. Alchemy thrived because of beliefs that all ma
ter consisted of earth, air, fire, and water, whose differing proportions
determined matter’s form – for instance, gold or lead (Kieckhefer, 2000:
100–1, 116–39). Cleverly crafted medieval automatons that roared
sang could well have appeared to be magic-made-real before one’s very
eyes and might have contributed to Kieckhefer’s observation about
courtly society’s sense of magic.
Lengthy courtly romances, whether about figures like Tristan and
Isolde or about Alexander, were composed specifically for the ruling
classes of Europe’s Christian population, the same segment of society
discussed by Kieckhefer. Although these romances are replete with
the paraphernalia referred to in medieval handbooks of magic and are
based on belief systems foundational for their use, they do not advert
to specific procedures that those handbooks prescribe to achieve magi-
cal results. Neither do the magic tales based on romances, but magic
tales reached all segments of society, spreading much the same magic
far and wide. Citing dragon-slaying tales, Eli Yassif notes that in Jewish tales
miraculous encounters with a demon or dragon occur in places where
a Jew is closest to God, that is, in a place of study, whereas in Christian
magic tales, those encounters take place in natural surroundings near
a lake, or in a field or forest (Yassif, 1999: 153), that is, in the kinds of
places associated with pagan practices. Interior spaces seem alien to
most magic tales. The sorcerer’s workshop and his retorts, the detailed

Magic Tales in Medieval Christian Europe 83
instructions and the careful implementation of a grimoire are not to be
found in the magic tales examined here, which are shorn of all narrative

elements beyond their forward-moving linear action. There are no
echoes or reflections of pagan and Christian magic as exercised by
wizard priests and as uncovered by the Renaissance Inquisition (Duni,
2007: 47–74). Magic as it was practiced in the real world is a dim p
sence indeed in brief magic tales.
The magic in Marian legends and exemplary tales seems to have been
meant both to form and confirm religious identity and belief. Typically,
magic in these genres comes about because of individuals’ actions,
which is to say, pious behavior elicits miraculous and helpful interven-
tion, which characters then recognize as of divine origin, while evil-
doers are struck down or vanquished, equally miraculously. In medieval
secular magic tales magic is different, although with a steady thrum
of invocations to God and associated Christian divinities in the back-
ground, it is hard to posit such tales as wholly secular. Derived for the
most part from courtly romances, the magic of a medieval secular tale
often consists of a magic object’s expression of inherent magic powers.
Sometimes that magic object’s power is available to whoever possesses
it, whether that person is good or evil. Sometimes its powers can be
manipulated only by (usually) him for whom it has been intended or
for (usually) him who uses it with good intent. Even as identities and beliefs in the Christian Middle Ages were
forming, they were also changing, if the evidence from magic tales is
a reliable indicator. Nothing brought about change more quickly than
the quickening pace of urbanization and the industrial processes and
social transactions that were part of urban life. Worldviews shifted as
gender roles changed, particularly in northern Italy, the epicenter of
popular narrative. With a high population density, a money economy,
increasing prosperity, and broadly literate populations, these cities were
characterized by a literacy that writers could turn to good account. And

they did so, using magic extensively, as will be discussed in Chapters 6
and 7. But first we must give some account of magic in a sample of
Muslim magic tales.

Magic Tales in the Muslim
Middle Ages
In contrast to the two previous chapters, only two medieval manuscript
texts inform the greater part of this chapter. 1 One, Tales of the Marvellous
(Al-hikayat al-’ajiba) contains 18 stories of its original 42; the other, Alf
Layla wa-Layla (Thousand and One Nights), consists of the frametale,
five narrative cycles, three novellas and the opening pages of a fourth
from the earliest substantially surviving manuscript of the Thousand
and One Nights, or Arabian Nights, as it is popularly known. It might be
objected that the narratives in these two collections are not “tales”
se. That objection is valid for Tales of the Marvellous, some of whose sto-
ries are longer than the half hour or so that I accord a “tale’s” telling, but
in Alf Layla wa-Layla, Dinarzad routinely denotes each of Shahrazad’s
partial tellings of a lengthy narrative as “what has been said,” t
he Arabic
phrase rendered in English as “story” or “tale.” (See “terminology” in
Chapter 1, p. 4.) In this light, it is justifiable to redefine a length
y nar-
rative like “The Two Viziers” as a composite that consists of a series of
brief tellings that cumulatively comprise the narrative as a whole. The Thousand and One Nights, exists today in many iterations.
I will use the title Alf Layla wa-Layla for the fifteenth-century Syrian
manuscript; Mille et Une Nuit for the translated, edited, and expanded
version of Antoine Galland (1746–1715); Arabian Nights for the spe-
cifically western tradition that grew from of Galland’s version; and
Thousand and One Nights for the corpus as a whole that now exists in
canonical Arabic-language collections such as Calcutta I (1814, 1818)
and II (1839–1842), Bulaq (1835), and Breslau 1824–1843), and
1 After this chapter was completed, a copy of Claudia Ott’s new translation of
the fourteenth-century Andalusian Mi’at Layla wa Layla into German became
available to me. It is treated in a coda to this chapter.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 85
associated translations. Above all the Calcutta II edition exemplifies
the material of the Thousand and One Nights, and it is now available in
the 2008 three-volume translation of Malcolm C. Lyons that effectively
replaces the annoyingly florid Burton translation.
Both Tales of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla date from the end
of the Muslim Middle Ages, with proposed manuscript datings for Tales
of the Marvellous as early as the late 1200s or as late as the early 1400s,
and for Alf Layla wa-Layla manuscript sometime between 1450 and the
opening years of the 1500s at the very latest.
The geographical origins of both manuscripts are similarly close, both
lying in Egypt and the Levant, today’s Syria, Jordan, Israel, and Lebanon.
The Levant had long been one of the centers of culture and trade within
the reach of Muslim suzerainty in the late 1400s – from southern Spai
and Morocco through the Middle East to the Sultanate of Delhi in India,
and including the European Balkans, the lower Danube, Greece, and
Turkey, and many tales in Tales of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla
incorporate familiarly couched references to cities along the land-based

trade routes from today’s Turkey, Egypt, and the Levant to the East. Within the vast area under Muslim control in the medieval period,
lay the kingdom of Granada in Spain; the Almoravids, Almohads, and
Marinids following hard upon one another in and around Morocco;
Mamluks in Cairo; Seljuks in Turkey and beyond to Persia; Abbasids in
Baghdad until 1258; and Ghurids and their Mamluk successors in the
Sultanate of Delhi. Within and among them, there existed multitudes
of small jurisdictions. Governance was complex. Local lords tightly controlled towns and
cities, and higher officials provided regional oversight. In local and
regional contexts, ambitious families conspired to seize power, and
when successful, replaced existing rulers with members of their house-
holds. Failure resulted in brutal reprisals that eradicated individual
rebels and entire families. Numerous points of contact and overlap linked Muslim, Jewish, and
Christian cultures throughout the Mediterranean world, with consequent
opportunities for story content to move across political and religious
borders. The directions of narrative flow remain the subject of lively
discussion. If we are to believe what we read in the stories themselves,

2 In the 1980s Heinz Grotzfeld recognized the Egyptian ashrafi dinar mentioned
in the text only began to circulate in 1425 (Grotzfeld, 1984) and may not have
entered the awareness of the further reaches of the Levantine world unti
l decades
later, in the 1500s (Grotzfeld 1996).

86 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
both viziers and sultans prized good storytellers and rewarded them
richly. Storytelling was an evening activity (al-Nadim 2: 714, cited in
Irwin, 1994: 82). Both the Alf Layla wa-Layla frametale as well as many
of the stories it encloses extend evening storytelling into nighttime; the
Caliph Harun al-Rashid typically calls for a story when he can’t sleep; and
Shahrazad tells Shahriyar stories even later, in predawn hours .
Story collections were documented in the Muslim world as early as
the 900s, when Muhammad Ibn Ishâq al-Nadîm, a Baghdad bookseller,
noted the titles of several such collections in his 987 CE Fihrist (Dodge,
1970: 2: 712–13). One that he described had been undertaken by a con-
temporary, Abû ‘Abd Allâh Muhammad ibn ‘Abdûs al-Jahshiyârî,
was, he wrote, in the process of assembling a total of one thousand sto-
ries from Arabic, Persian, and Byzantine sources. Alas, al-Jahshiyârî died
after recording only 480 of them, and his ambitious collection has since

disappeared. Other story collections, however, survived (Binkley, 1997). Tales of the Marvellous, a miscellany discovered in the Istanbul Sophia
Library in 1933, provides a rich narrative trove in Arabic that includes
some tales known from Thousand and One Nights. Although long trans-
lated into German, it became available to an anglophone public only in
2014, when Malcolm C. Lyons translated it into English.
3 The other text
whose magic is analyzed in this chapter is the medieval Syrian manu-
script critically edited by Muhsin Mahdi and translated into English by
Husain Haddawy in 1990. This translation enables non-Arabic-reading
scholars to meet the Thousand and One Nights in its earliest extant guise,
before Galland embellished his 12-volume much-expanded edition of
that fifteenth-century Syrian manuscript with French cultural refrac-
tions and literary alterations in the early eighteenth-century. The years in which the extant manuscripts of Tales of the Marvellous
and Alf Layla wa-Layla were written were fraught with political tur-
moil. Mamluks, who created the Mamluk Sultanate in Egypt in 1250,
governed an empire centered in Cairo that eventually embraced the
entire Levant. On its northern edge in today’s Turkey, Ottomans suc-
ceeded to power as the Seljuk Sultanate of Rum broke up, and after they
gained control of Constantinople in 1453, established relations with
the Mamluk Sultanate in Cairo, extending their influence southward
and eastward into Syria. Military conflict followed, with the Ottoman
3 Because the translation of Tales of the Marvellous has been underway at the
same time as my composition of this chapter, I have used the German translation
of the Hikayat (Al-hikayat al-’ajiba), as it appears in Das Buch der wundersamen
Geschichten. 1999, edited by Ulrich Marzolph.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 87
Selim I winning a decisive victory over Mamluk troops north of Aleppo
in 1516. Six months later, in early 1517, Ottoman forces took Cairo
and made Egypt an Ottoman province. During the next few centuries
Ottoman-linked local representatives dominated day-to-day life and
commerce in Egypt and the Levant. This capsule history glosses over
a multitude of political and commercial alliances and conflicts in the
Mediterranean, the Levant, Persia, and the Indian subcontinent in the
fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries,
4 but it captures the
frame within which both manuscripts used here, Tales of the Marvellous
and Alf Layla wa-Layla, came into being.
The 1400s and 1500s were also a time of continuing contact between
Europe and the Levant. Not only did European pilgrims flow through the
area on their way to the Holy Land, but Venice had long had commercial
relationships with the Levant, and France and England were beginning
to move into that lucrative trade. There was also continuing commercial
contact between the Levant, the Far East, and the eastern coast of Afric
The effects of magic in Tales of the Marvellous
and Alf Layla wa-Layla 5
In the magic tales that follow, authors create characters who perceive
magic in different terms from those in the Jewish and Christian magic
tales of Chapters 3 and 4. Despite frequent textual assertions that all
magic is ultimately God’s alone, magic often lies within the domain of
demons’ purposeful maleficence in both Tales of the Marvellous and Alf
Layla wa- Layla, where it portends and often produces betrayals of the
trusting, exploitation of the unwary, and destruction of the faithful.
In these stories pious Muslims turn to God for support and assistance
against adversity, invoking his compassion, but they never knowingly
manipulate the forces to which demons so clearly have access. (In this
connection, it is necessary to remind readers that “Aladdin” entered the
Thousand and One Nights canon only in the early eighteenth century.)
4 For a nuanced discussion of a significant segment of Ottoman political r
tionships, see Faroqhî (1987).
5 In the following pages readers will miss references to Marina Warner’s Stranger
Magic (2012). Richly illustrated, and worth perusing for that alone, her es
address Nights tales as they were from Galland’s publication (1704–1717)
onward, with all of the eighteenth- and nineteenth-century additions and edit-
ing which they incorporate. Though broadly based, the essays of Stranger Magic
do not bear on this exploration of medieval Muslim magic tales.

88 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Even more unexpected is the realization that in both Tales of the
Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla, it is not magic that brings about a
happy ending here on earth, but an earthly ruler such as the Caliph
Harun al-Rashid. Indeed, the idea that felicity ( sa’âda) can be achieved
on earth, not just in heaven, was apparently so small a part of ordi-
nary expectations that it had to be defended in 1692 by a Damascus
sheik, ‘Abd al-Ghairi al-Nâbulasî (1641–1731), in response
to a public
attack on that idea by a Turkish interlocutor (Heyberger, 1994: 40). The
evident necessity in an Islamic context to outline and defend the pos-
sibility of achieving happiness on earth confirms that the notion of a
secular happy ending did not automatically form part of the worldview
of listeners to or readers of these tales. Such expectations may underli
differing perceptions of supernatural events by characters in medieval
Muslim magic tales from those that enable protagonists in fairy tales in
the early modern world to manipulate magic.
Tales of the Marvellous
Tales of the Marvellous presents its stories without a unifying frame tale.
It is possible that researchers will some day uncover equally ancient
story collections, as they comb through manuscript holdings of
European, North African, and Middle Eastern libraries. But before the
2010 recognition of Hundred and One Nights, Tales of the Marvellous was
the earliest entry point into Muslim tale collections. The collection
was found by a German scholar in the Sophia Library in Istanbul as MS
Ayasophya No. 3397. In the years since its discovery, its stories were
translated one by one into German by Max Weisweiler, Hans Wehr,
Sophia Grotzfeld, and Otto Spies before being brought together and
published by the Göttingen Arabist Ulrich Marzolph, who entitled the
collection Das Buch der wundersamen Geschichten. Erzählungen aus der
Welt von 1001 Nacht (The Book of Marvelous Tales: Stories from the
World of 1001 Nights). The manuscript, designated simply Hikayat (Stories), was characterized
by its compiler as al-hikayat al-’ajiba wa’l-akhbar al-ghariba (marve-
lous tales and strange information (Irwin, 2014: Introduction, Tales
of the Marvellous and News of the Strange), which its English translator
Malcolm Lyons adapted as its title. The manuscript date, its author,
and its original place of production have not yet been conclusively
identified, although to me its understanding of Egypt as a far-off and
fundamentally different place moves its conceptual production to the
far northern end of the Levant. Its handwriting style initially sug-
gested a date between 1300 and 1350 CE, which then made Tales of

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 89
the Marvellous the oldest known popular story collection of the Muslim
Middle Ages.
Scholars writing in Arabic preserved much literary and scientific writ-
ing from the Mediterranean world, and some of the content of those
ancient writings entered Tales of the Marvellous. As a whole, however,
its center of gravity lies not along the shores of the Mediterranean, bu
in the interior of the Levant and Iraq. Its 18 extant stories take place
major cities – Baghdad, Basra, and Damascus – as well as in a gene
ized “Persia” and a far-off Egypt, whose hieroglyphic writings, st
columns, pyramids, and other marvels are worked into several stories.
Others are set in the desert, in Khurâsân (today’s northern Iran) or in
the “Kingdom of Saihûn.” Although the Mediterranean appears now

and again in its stories, “the sea” in Tales of the Marvellous is more often
than not a far-off and nameless ocean. Only rarely does a sailor in Tales
of the Marvellous ply the waters between Byzantium and the Syrian
shore, probably because the natural route from there to Baghdad is over-
land. Overland travel from there to Damascus is equally routine in the
stories, presumably to avoid a sea passage made dangerous by piratical
attacks from corsairs of all nations. When Greek tradition emerges in Tales of the Marvellous, it is through
a Byzantine filter, as with stories of lovers separated and later reunited
(Grunebaum, 1963: 376–405), or with a magnetically attracting mountain
that mysteriously ensnares passing ships and holds them fast, a trope in

magic tales since antiquity (Lecouteux, 1999; Tuczay, 2005: 273–6). A language of personal obeisance and postures of social abasement,
familiar from Egyptian stories like those in Chapter 2, permeate Tales of the
Marvellous. Both language and posture unquestioningly accept despotic
power that is capricious and unrestrained. To acknowledge a superior such
as a sultan, caliph, or emir, a Tales of the Marvellous character typically
kisses the ground in front of that person’s feet, putting his lips to the soil or
to the street, even when he is himself of noble lineage. The powerlessne
of single individuals before their sovereign reflects the way in which t
surmount impossible tasks and wretched trials in Tales of the Marvellous –
not through magic, but through prayer or through a caliph’s granting
clemency, money, or earthly well-being. Evil-doers and wicked characters
conjure maleficent magic; pious Muslims can invoke Allah’s vast power
through prayer; and lucky ones encounter a beneficent ruler.
Magic in the plots of Tales of the Marvellous
The plots in Tales of the Marvellous recount the lives of ordinary humans
who experience extraordinary events or who encounter supernatural

90 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
forces. Their encounters resemble those in ancient Egyptian magic tales
more than they do those told by Ovid about Greece’s gods, demi-gods,
and humans. “The Story of Abu Muhammad the Idle” (No. 11) is typical:
Harun al-Rashid, wandering in disguise through Baghdad, sees
unmistakable evidence that one of his subjects possesses greater
wealth than he. Discomfited, he sends for the man, Abu Muhammad
the Idle, who is indeed rich beyond imagining. Harun asks to hear
his story, which Abu Muhammad obligingly tells. As a child he was
incorrigibly lazy. One day his mother gave him a dirham to invest
with a merchant leaving for the Orient, and Abu Muhammad rouses
himself to do so. On the return voyage the ship stops stock still, until

the merchant, remembering his promise, makes a purchase with Abu
Muhammad’s dirham – an ape! Before reaching Basra the ape dives
into the sea, repeatedly bringing up oysters, each of which contains a
priceless pearl, the beginning of Abu Muhammad’s fortune. One day
the ape begins to speak, reveals that he is a jinn under an enchant-
ment, and expresses a desire to marry the surpassingly beautiful
Badr al-Samâ. Abu Muhammad, he says, is to secure her for him by
marrying her, but is not to consummate the marriage. But in carry-
ing out the ape’s mission, Abu Muhammad falls hopelessly in love
with the bride. When the ape appears and carries her off two nights
later, Abu Muhammad goes in search of her, finds and frees her, and
lives happily ever after on the wealth the ape earlier provided him.
Harun likes the story and makes Abu Muhammad one of his boon
This tale foregrounds a classic character and plot in tales told for
amusement: a lazy boy, an unanticipated source of immense wealth,
a character transformed into an animal, and an ending in which the
hero’s becoming an intimate associate of the Caliph Harun al-Rashid is
a de facto achievement of happiness on earth. The Tales of the Marvellous
author attaches the entire story to a venerable and venerated historical
figure, Harun al-Rashid (766–809), and then uses an enchanted ape a
the trope of a ship brought unaccountably, i.e. magically in the eyes of
its protagonist, to a standstill, to propel the story forward. The story seems to consist of two disparate tales. The first comprises
an honest seafaring captain’s transaction (buying an ape for a dirham on
Abu Muhammad’s behalf) which results in a fortune (a haul of precious
pearls) that enriches an undeserving city-based lazybones. This part of
the story, improbable though it is, does not contravene any natural law

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 91
(it might be possible that an ape be trained to dive for pearls), and
therefore not impossible, and consequently not inherently magical by
any standard. The story could have ended with Abu Muhammad’s sud-
den enrichment, and perhaps at some point in its history it did. But in
Tales of the Marvellous the lazy hero’s acquisition of wealth is followed
by a second, distinctly impossible, train of events. The ape begins to
speak, telling Abu Mohammad that he is a powerful jinn under an
enchantment, without specifying either the enchanter or the reason for
the enchantment. It is as though the author has haphazardly plucked a
magical device from an available repertoire and inserted it into a class
episode in which an emissary or representative takes on the role of the
person who sent him and then displaces him.
Another tale, “The Story of Abu Dîsa, Nicknamed the Bird” (No. 9), a
type of “Dr Know-It-All” story that is widespread in the Near East, under-
mines supernatural episodes by satirizing astrologers and astrology. Its
ironizing presentation of a character’s supernatural knowledge of future
events undermines an audience’s understanding of the weaver’s predictive
gifts as a form of magic:
Urged by his wife, Abu Dîsa, a poor weaver, pretends to be an astrolo-
ger. In a gibberish prediction, he tells his first customer, a pregnant
woman, that she will bear two children, doing so neither on earth
nor in heaven. Inadvertently she gives birth in a treehouse. For
his apparent prescience Abu Dîsa is rewarded handsomely by the
woman, who is – unbeknownst to him – the king’s daughter.Equally improbable but successful predictions follow. The fearful
Abu Dîsa repeatedly tries to flee from his faked profession and from
the dire punishments he imagines will follow once he is found
out. When his wife berates him, he sputters out comically violent
wishes in retribution for her putting him in danger. The king
continues to shower him with priceless gifts and Abu Dîsa himself
finds opportunities to revenge himself on those who formerly
belittled him.
In real life, an ignorant and impoverished weaver whose timidity
paralyzes him into despairing inaction would never achieve wealth and
distinction, but this timorous little man is blessed with extraordinary
luck and endowed with social caginess. The character created by his
wife’s nagging leads to delightful inversions of every aspect of his miser-
able life. Illiterate, he pretends to peruse a tattered and notation-fil
notebook. Clueless, he predicts precise details about a princess’s future

92 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
confinement. Terrified, he tries to flee the king, but is instead showered
with royal gifts and grace. As a whole, the story spoofs astrologers and,
more surprisingly, tweaks the sensibilities of husbands who berate their
wives for interference, because it is precisely Abu Dîsa’s wife’s interfering
that precipitates his good fortune. Magic itself is presented as a conce
to be exploited among the credulous.
“The Story of the Four Treasure Troves” (No. 4) perfectly exemplifies
another story-extending device in Tales of the Marvellous, the embedding
of one tale after another within a single narrative frame. (This differ
from an overall frametale like that in Thousand and One Nights, where
Shahrazad remains implicitly or explicitly present throughout the entire

collection.) In this case the tale’s invocation and attribution is followed
directly by a frame into which a storyteller named Fadl inserts himself,
as he tells of sitting before Emir ‘Abd al-Wahhâb on a hot day. The Emir
tells Fadl he wants somebody who can tell him a marvelous and unu-
sual story. Fadl replies that among the Emir’s prisoners is an educated
and clever man who has begged for an audience. Summoned before the
Emir and ordered to speak, the prisoner uses proper Arabic, and so the
Emir has him bathed, dressed, fed, and brought back. The man agrees
to tell a story that the Emir knows in part, perhaps referring to the City
of Brass elements (Marzolph, 1999b: 599) that it contains. But in fact
tells four stories, one after the other, which include automata, abundant
troves of jewels, gold, and silver, and references to Magians. There is also
a crown, three of whose jewels have special properties: one causes who-
ever looks upon it to flee; another blinds the sons of whores; the third

inspires awe and reverence for the crown’s wearer. The same crown,
repeatedly warned against because it is also associated with destructive

magical powers, astrological effects, and subterranean marvels, is dan-
gerous. Some of the tale’s Christian protagonists convert to Islam as the
adventures conclude and join the inner circle of the tale’s internal royal
listener. Here and in succeeding stories, automata – each an “uncanny
accessory” in Robert Irwin’s words (1994: 189) – loom large, literally and
literarily, while a brass lion kills a feckless intruder with his steel teeth,
and brass hands grasp the feet of the treasure seekers. Against these
mechanical impediments, the treasure seekers are helped along their
way by a supernatural who comes to their aid whenever they call out
“Mubashshir!” Like the first three stories, the fourth chronicles
encounters with cultural otherness, such as the pagan idols positioned
to guard immense hoards of underground wealth, a narrative echo, per-
haps, of the long tradition of “marvels of Egypt” books, like that of the
early thirteenth-century Jamâl al-dîn al-Idrîsî (Haarmann, 1980: 59–61).

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 93
The individual stories in Tales of the Marvellous conclude as they
begin, with a formulaic acknowledgement of God’s greatness: “Praise
be to God and may blessings and salvation accrue to Mohammed, his
family, and his friends” (No. 10), or “Let us beg God for forgiveness
and well-being and everlasting health and for his grace, when he takes
our lives from us” (No. 7), or very briefly, “That’s the end of the story.
And God knows it all better” (No. 9). Or even “This is the whole
complete story, and God bless our Lord Mohammad, his family, and
his companions and grant them salvation” (No. 12).
6 No two narrative
closures are precisely the same in Tales of the Marvellous, but all return to
and acknowledge God’s omnipotence, omniscience, and omnipresence.
Religion and magic in Tales of the Marvellous
Before the seventh-century emergence of Islam, pagan idols dotted the
Near Eastern landscape and its inhabitants followed animist rites. Even
though seven or more centuries passed between Muhammad’s day and
the time at which an unknown scribe compiled Tales of the Marvellous,
pagan idols still function narratively by providing a pre-Islamic back-
drop in some tales. In addition to those in “The Four Treasure Troves”
(No. 4), idols are part of “The Story of the Talisman Mountain” (No. 17)
and of “Abu Muhammad the Idle” (No. 11), while there are 10,000
them in a huge temple in “The Story of Sa’îd Son of Hâtim al-Bâhilî”
(No. 14). In the Muslim storytelling context in which this collection
was composed or compiled, such idols can be dangerous, but are meant
to be regarded as impotent relics of the pre-Islamic past. They can be
fooled or gotten around (No. 4), or they all fall down when Sa’id r
aloud from the Qur’an, an instance of the efficacious use of sacred lan-
guage, whose effect parallels that of incantational magic in narratives
conceived within a secular narrative environment. The narrative logic of Tales of the Marvellous also fits neatly within
Islam. Since God is the author of all magic (once pagan deities have
been disposed of), prayer is an effective means of bringing about resti
tution that is otherwise inexplicable according to laws of nature: poor
Prince Kaukab, footless and handless, the rejected son of the King of
Two Rivers, lies thirsting in the desert, until he addresses a lengthy
prayer to God and beats his head bloody against the desert floor. After
his beloved and her mother join him in these fervent acts, a divine
6 These are my translations from the German of Das Buch der Wundersamen
Geschichten, which may therefore differ from the Lyons renderings in Tales of
the Marvellous.

94 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
herald appears and announces that Prince Kaukab’s missing body parts
have been restored (No.1). Is this magic? Or is it a demonstration of
belief in God’s illimitable powers?
Volition and magic in Tales of the Marvellous
In religious terms, humans’ powerlessness stems from their noth-
ingness before an almighty Divinity. If God alone is responsible for
everything that happens, human intention remains of minimal sig-
nificance. And indeed, this assumption underlies all narratives in Tales
of the Marvellous, and consequently its characters’ motivations are not
explored. Furthermore, the basic tenet that God controls all events and
eventualities leads to the expectation that magic cannot be directed
by human beings or even be under human control. Perhaps this is the
reason that magic and enchantment, as it would be implemented in
eighteenth-century additions to the Thousand and One Nights in tales
such as “Aladdin,” remain alien to Tales of the Marvellous. Within a
mindset governed by the premise that magic is not and cannot be under
human control, explorations of human motivations vis-à-vis magic
become irrelevant. Beginning in the first story of Tales of the Marvellous and continuing
through the remaining stories, statements of an individual’s powerless-
ness to direct his own fate abound, and all are variations on the premis
that only God the Powerful has the capacity to direct one’s life. Thus, in
every story God’s singular omnipotence explains the course of events and
is emphasized well beyond anything that can be found in contemporane-
ous European stories. In medieval Christian narratives the Virgin Mary
as well as numberless saints are assumed to have effective intercessory
powers as well as independent spheres of influence, all of which dimin-
ishes the sense of God’s omnipotence. In post-Reformation Protestant
Europe, wherever Rome’s company of saints was abandoned, a mono-
theistic omnipotence similar to that expressed in Tales of the Marvellous
returns, but always tempered by the problematic question of free will.
Within Muslim theology, that conundrum produces a narrative rhetoric
of unquestioning acceptance of God’s will in Muslim magic tales. Situational response is the quintessential opposite of both individual
character and independent volition. Volition expresses character, but
since individual powerlessness permeates the stories in Tales of the
Marvellous, character definition is in short supply. This is also true of
most contemporaneous European brief narratives, but for a different
reason: their brevity results from the excision of everything irrelevant to
the brief plot’s forward motion.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 95
“I hear and obey,” the most common expression of acquiescence and
compliance, is more than an empty formula. Occasional variations,
such as “I hear and perform thousand fold obeisance” or something
similar in “The Story of Julanar of the Sea” (No. 6), alter the formula.
Such phrasing confirms underlying sentiments of acquiescence and
obedience and expresses human powerlessness not only in the face of
divine omniscience, omnipotence, and omnipresence, but also vis-à-vis

anyone higher in a social and political hierarchy. Statements of powerlessness permeate plots, like that of “The Story
of the King of the Two Rivers” (No. 1), whose characters respond to the
threat of an approaching monster by falling on their faces and trying
appeasement by sacrificing one of their group to it. When the men
finally decide to resist, their useless initiative produces carnage, as
monster sinks their ship and eats the floundering sailors. In the third
story told within “The Story of the Four Treasure Troves” (No. 4), the
hero sees a tent in flames with thick smoke pouring out of it and stares

at the scene uncomprehending and unresponsive. He might be excused
for his inaction, except that his lack of volition later becomes painful
evident when he hears a voice tell him to “Go back” and he obeys,
to remain waiting all day to see what the command might have to do
with him. Fantasy turns to abject fear in “The Story of ‘Arûs al-Arâis and her
Deceit” (No. 7), whose tale is one of destructive female rage:
At her birth, it is foretold that she will bring death and destruction
throughout her life. She kills the astrologers who predict disasters, a
youth along with 100 of his friends, 100 virgin daughters of foreign
viziers, her own father, and all of the high officials of his realm . . .
‘Arûs al-Arâis uses sexual attraction to draw one man after ano
into thrall – the catalog is endless.
The story is then retold from her point of view: Captured by a demon, she is freed by a handsome youth, to whom
she remains faithful. But when she finds her lover missing his nose,
ears, lips, penis, and testicles (signs of punishment for sexual mis-
conduct), she sends a demon to kill him. Failing in this, she has him
imprisoned for allegedly raping his mother, telling him that if he ever
leaves prison, she will attack him unmercifully and kill him. After her
death, he goes free, but in a devilishly clever ruse, she posthumously
causes his death.

96 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Magic in Tales of the Marvellous is elusive. Behind, and perhaps steering
its composition, lurks an appetite for magic, but the wished-for magic
expresses itself within confining constraints.
The medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla
The date commonly assigned to the collection that the modern world
knows as The Arabian Nights is as ancient as a few thousand or as recent
as a few hundred years ago, depending on a researcher’s inclination and
approach. What is known as fact is that around 750 CE a collection of
stories called Hazâr Afsân (Thousand Adventures) was translated from
Persian into Arabic, a dating derived from a notation made around
850 CE by ‘Abdallâh Ibn ‘Abdal’aziz (Irwin, 1994: 48–51; Chraïbi, 2008:
24–6; Grotzfeld, 2012: 20). The general surmise that a collection of
ries with “thousand” in its title existed in the early centuries o
f Islam
was turned into a roughly datable fact by a paper fragment found in the
mid-twentieth century. Dated to the 800s CE, it bears parts of the title
page and the first page of a familiar text that continued to open manu-
scripts of Alf Layla for centuries (Abbott, 1949: 133). Not only does this
ancient scrap of paper confirm the early medieval existence of the col-
lection in Arabic, it also suggests that the collection itself was highl
valued, since it had been written on paper, which at that time was more
expensive than papyrus (Abbott, cited in Grotzfeld 2012: 17–19). The collection’s history continues in the mid-900s, when the well-
traveled encyclopedist, Mas’ûdî famously described and characterized
the book that people were calling Alf Layla (Thousand Nights). It was,
in his words, “the story of the king, the vizier, and his daughter and
her servant, and they are Šrizâd and Dinâzad,” and was “like Far
and Šîmâs’s book with its stories about the kings of India and the[ir]
Viziers, or like the book of Sindîbad or other books of this kind”
(Grotzfeld 2012: 20–1). Just 30 years after Mas’ûdî’s death, the book-
seller Muhammad Ibn Ishâq al-Nadîm listed Alf Layla in far-off Baghdad
in his Fihrist (Catalog), classing it as the kind of book that would be
recorded for royal libraries. The tenth-century Fihrist presents the first
account of the daily threat of an impending execution, the frametale
drama that drives Shahrazad’s storytelling. It also adverts to the kinds
of stories Alf Layla contains – adventures, fables with talking animals,
wisdom tales like “Sindibâd the Wise,” but doesn’t list individual tales
by title. Later chroniclers of literary taste would note additional genres
(like romances of unhappy love) to their description of the contents o
the book now called Alf Layla wa-Layla (Thousand Nights and One
Night, or in scholarly parlance, Thousand and One Nights). We do not

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 97
know if such notations mean that the book’s corpus was in the process
of steadily expanding in the medieval period, but it seems likely.
Despite Alf Layla wa-Layla’s apparently wide geographical currency –
from Cairo to Baghdad –only a few notations of its existence have
turned up: those mentioned above and a twelfth-century scrap of
paper recording that an Alf Layla wa-Layla manuscript had been lent
out, serendipitously found in the Cairo Geniza, a Jewish repository for
sacred discards (Goitein, 1958). Since no copy of the collection itsel
survives from that period, an analysis of magic in Alf Layla wa-Layla
effectively begins with the oldest extant text, a three-volume Syrian
manuscript now in the French Bibliothèque Nationale. Although both its
editor Muhsin Mahdi and its translator into English, Husain Haddawy,
dated Alf Layla wa-Layla to the fourteenth century, two dates within the
manuscript itself place it, at the outside, between 1428 and 1536. 1428
CE was the year in which the Egyptian Mamluk ruler Ashraf introduced
a gold coin, the ashrafi dinar, to displace the Venetian ducat as a unit
of currency in the Egyptian Mamluk-governed Levant. The Hunchback
cycle mentions this coin on Night 133, and Heinz Grotzfeld has sug-
gested that the manuscript’s earliest date may fall somewhat later,
because considerable time may have passed before the ashrafi dinar
became familiar enough to have been used to denominate a merchant’s
rent without further explanation, as it is in Night 133. The second date

is 1536 CE, the equivalent of the “943” date of acquisition (or o
ship) penned onto the manuscript itself by its owner (Grotzfeld, 2012:

7 This is not to say that the stories themselves in the Syrian Alf Layla
wa-Layla manuscript date from the period between 1428 and 1536, but
that this manuscript presents renderings of these stories from some point
between 1428 and 1536. In 2013 Jean-Claude Garçín, noting an event
mentioned in a French romance, Pierre de Provence, concluded that the
Syrian manuscript could not have been produced before 1443 (2013:
193–4), a suggestion reminding us that writers and tellers incorpora
their understanding and experience of the world into each (re)writing
or telling of a tale, as, for instance, this manuscript’s scribe did by incor-
porating the previously nonexistent but subsequently dominant ashrafi
dinar to designate the currency with which a young man paid rent
7 A large secondary literature assumes an oral creation and/or transmission of
Alf Layla wa-Layla, for instance El-Shamy, 1990: 63–117. My discussion assumes
a written tradition as demonstrated by Hameed Hawwas in “A Prologue T
as Manifesto Tale: Establishing a Narrative Literary Form and the Formation of
Arabian Nights” (2007: 65–77).

98 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
to live in the house of Sudun ‘Abd al-Rahman in Damascus ( Arabian
Nights, 1990: 291). 8
Beyond the “when” of the late medieval Syrian Alf Layla wa-Layla
manuscript lies a “who,” namely the nationality or ethnicity or id
of the manuscript’s scribe. Garçín conjectures a Damascus identity from
the ways in which locations are characterized in Cairo and Damascus,
supporting a Damascus identity by concluding that the manuscript was
written by someone with a book-based knowledge of Cairo and its archi-
tecture, but with a personal acquaintance with the urban geography of
markets and city gateways in Damascus (2013: 194–8). The fifteenth, sixteenth, and seventeenth centuries saw a prolif-
eration – and survival – of Alf Layla wa-Layla manuscripts (Marzolph,
2006: 179–81), but the manuscript brought to prominence by Antoine
Galland’s use of it for his early eighteenth-century translation (pub-
lished as Mille et Une Nuit in 12 volumes between 1704 and 1717) is
the oldest one. It must be borne in mind that the medieval Alf Layla
wa-Layla differs in fundamental ways from the Arabian Nights. (I again
remind readers that I use “Alf Layla wa-Layla” (Thousand nights and
one night) for the Arabic manuscript discussed here; “ Mille et Une
Nuit” for the translated, edited, and expanded collection composed by
Antoine Galland; “Arabian Nights” for the specifically western tradition
that grew from Galland’s version; and “Thousand and One Nights” for
the corpus as a whole that now exists in canonical Arabic-language
collections.) Not only did Galland adjust occasional raw episodes for
his contemporaries’ sensibilities in Mille et Une Nuit, he also introduced
Sindbad the Sailor’s adventurous voyages, and added seven tales, some
of which were entirely new to Arabic narrative tradition (Bottigheimer,
2014). The new tales came from a Syrian Christian young man in his
twenties named Hannâ Diyâb, who was visiting Paris in 1709, after
having worked for years in the offices of French merchants in Aleppo,
and these tales included the now iconic “Aladdin” and “Ali Baba
the Forty Thieves.” The poverty-stricken urchin Aladdin rubs a brass
lamp, which draws forth a powerful genie, while Hannâ Diyâb’s humble
Ali Baba and the highwaymen robbers use “Open Sesame” and “Clos
Sesame” for their entries into and exits from a gold-filled cave. Tha
t is,
in Hannâ Diyâb’s tales a poor boy and poor men respectively use magic
unwittingly or wittingly and thereby improve their lot in life. Magic
manipulated by the poor was familiar from European fairy tales from
8 Note that Haddawy renders the Arabic as simply “two dinars,” omitt
ing the
word ashrafi, which appears in the Arabic manuscript.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 99
the mid-sixteenth-century onward, but played no role in the magic
evident either in Tales of the Marvellous or in Alf Layla wa-Layla, whose
corpus “Aladdin” and “Ali Baba” wouldn’t join for another two centu-
ries. Indeed, magical or supernatural powers in Alf Layla wa-Layla that
alter the course of a person’s life never emerge at the behest of poor
people, and are, moreover, separate from achieving material wealth or a
happily-ever-after ending. In the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla, both the
terms and the categories of magic differ from those in modern fairy tales
of European origin.
Impossibilities and improbabilities
What characters in the late medieval Syrian Alf Layla wa-Layla seem
to consider magical, what amazes those characters, what affects their
perceptions so powerfully that they swoon, often differs from that which
causes the same kinds of reactions in characters in contemporaneous
western fictions. Medieval European writers subscribed to distinctions
that Giovanni Boccaccio had established with reference to degrees of
truth and these came to characterize broadly acknowledged genre dif-
ferences between novellas and fairy tales, namely “improbable” happen-
stances in novellas versus “impossible” ones in magic tales, and l
ater in
fairy tales (Magnanini, 2012: 15–21). In composing a novella, European
writers might stretch the boundaries of the improbable by creating
theoretically possible situations that were nonetheless unlikely in the
extreme. For instance, siblings separated at birth might be shipwrecked
on separate vessels and be cast up on the same remote island. No natural

law prohibits this course of events, improbable though it is. However,
that two siblings separated at birth and shipwrecked on separate vessels

should escape death by being changed into birds that fly to a desert isl
is impossible. No law of nature enables a transformation of human beings

into animal beings. We have inched into the realm of impossibilities, of which the medi-
eval Alf Layla wa-Layla contains many. In “The Tale of the King’s Son
and the She-Ghoul” (Haddawy, 1990: 56–7) it is patently impossible
that Duban’s severed head can speak. Nonetheless, that episode is not
presented as magic, but as a manifestation of Duban’s great learning and
control over nature. Neither is it possible that a prince could survive the
transformation of the lower half of his body into black stone in the sam
story (ibid.: 67). And it similarly lies beyond the realm of possibility t
a demon should sprinkle a prince with dust to turn him into an ape
possessed of extraordinary calligraphic skills (“The Tale of the Second
Dervish,” ibid.: 126–8). More often than not, impossibilities like t

100 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
are simply accepted within the tale itself as a narrative given, while
gross improbabilities routinely elicit “amazement.” These response
perplexing to a modern reader, suggest theological constraints of the
following sort. If it is axiomatic that magic resides within God’s power
alone, then expressing surprise at magical overturnings of natural law
would imply that the person expressing surprise does not fully accept
God’s omnipotence, assertions of which permeate these magic tales. It
would follow that the doubt connoted by surprise at an impossibility
would taint a character with (heretical) reservations concerning God’s
powers. With reference to the concept of God’s exclusive control over
magic, these Muslim magic tales are at one end of a belief spectrum.
Jewish demon tales are overall ambivalent on this question. In theory,
Christian theology similarly positions God at the apex of wielding
magic powers, but in magic tales themselves, a range of figures (Satan,

demons, sorcerers, witches, angels, saints, Mary, Jesus, and God) can
access and manipulate supernatural powers.
In the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla manuscript, characters’ reactions
within the tales show that “improbable” and “impossible” oft
en bleed
into one another. For instance, improbable abundance “dazzles” the
“astonished” girl who tells the Caliph of Baghdad that she “mar
vels” at
“a crown studded with all kinds of gems, and the apartment . . .
spread with silk tapestries embroidered with gold . . . an ivory bed
plated with burnished gold, set with two bosses of green emeralds,
and draped with a canopylike net strung with pearls . . . a gem as big
as an ostrich egg, with an incandescent glow . . . ” (“The Tale of the
First Lady,” ibid.: 165)
Similarly Abu al-Hasan “marvels” at the abundance of fine food in the
caliph’s palace: “suckling lambs, fatted chickens, and other birds, such
as grouse, quail, and pigeons, the jar full of assorted pickles, and all
candies” (“The Story of Nur al-Din Ali ibn-Bakkar and the Slave-Girl,”
ibid.: 359). And in “The Story of the Two Viziers” Badr al-Din Hasan,
even though he was born and grew up the son of the Vizier of the King
of Egypt and himself became the Vizier of Basra, is “staggered” when he
sees his cousin decked in “robes and jewelry worthy of the Persian kings. She paraded in a
robe embroidered in gold with dazzling figures of all kinds of birds
and beasts, with eyes and bills of precious stones and feet of rubies

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 101
and green beryl. She wore a very rare and precious necklace set with
large, round gems that dazzled the eye and staggered the mind.”
(Ibid.: 209–10)
These are all reactions that modern readers would expect to be reserved
for the magically impossible, but here they greet material splendor. Improbabilities and impossibilities mix in a clever tale about a hus-
band who buys a parrot to report on his wife’s behavior when he leaves
home. After the parrot reveals the wife’s infidelities in persuasive detail,
she orchestrates a son et lumière that makes the parrot undermine his
own credibility by telling the husband about an apparently violent,
but actually nonexistent thunder and lightning storm, thus releasing
(temporarily at least) the wife from suspicion (ibid.: 50). That a p
can report on a merchant’s wife’s infidelity in acceptably grammatical
and comprehensible Arabic is not presented as magic or as an impos-
sibility within the tale itself. Neither is it considered magical that a
chant understands the language of birds and animals in the collection’
“Prologue,” where Shahrazad’s father tells her “The Tale of the Ox and
the Donkey” and “The Tale of the Merchant and His Wife” (ibid.: 15–17,
18–20). Perhaps the long-standing Aesopic, Panchatantra, and Kalila
wa-Dimna animal-told wisdom tales predisposed medieval Alf Layla
wa-Layla readers and listeners to accept speaking animals and talking
birds as natural, or at least, not as unnatural or supernatural. Even th
transformation of evil-doers into animals is not presented as astonishin
in “The Story of the Merchant and the Demon” (ibid.: 21–36). We must
therefore wrestle with the conditions and events that dazzle the eye,
stagger the imagination, amaze, or cause characters to swoon in Alf Layla
wa-Layla, as well as with what is treated as commonplace in its text. “The Story of the Two Viziers” mixes improbabilities with impossibili-
ties on a different level from that in “The Husband and The Parrot.”

A he-demon flying high above the earth meets a she-demon, to whom
he shows the extraordinarily handsome Badr al-Din Hasan al-Basri.
In an improbable coincidence, the she-demon has just witnessed the
beauty of Badr al-Din Hasan’s foreordained wife, his Egyptian cousin
Sit al-Husn. In a further improbability, these two individuals, a male
and a female, have each encountered, in locations far distant from one
another, precisely those two individuals foreordained (since the tale’s
opening pages) to marry one another, and in a third improbability the
two arrive at the same location at precisely the same moment. Expressed
in these terms, such collective improbabilities pass the test for a high
unlikely, but nonetheless possible, event. However, the fact that two

102 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
individuals who encounter one another are demons, and that each is
flying high above the earth when they meet, makes their aerial encoun-
ter an impossibility, which is either the product of magical thinking or
else the product of accepted Alf Layla wa-Layla literary conventions. In
neither case does the mix of improbability and impossibility correspond
to anything in the European imaginary of the same period. Thus we
do well to closely examine both “The Story of the Two Viziers” and its
companion tale, “The Three Apples.” In the latter tale,
Harun al-Rashid has ordered his vizier Ja’fur to find and execute the

person who caused the death of a beautiful and virtuous married
woman. Learning that his own slave had set the fatal events in train,
and seeing “that the caliph was greatly struck by the coincidences
of the story, Ja’far offers to tell a marvelous and even more amazing
story if Harun will pardon his slave. (“The Three Apples,” ibid.: 188
Thus the words that frame the telling of “The Story of the Two Viziers”
lay out the narrative conditions, namely, improbable “coincidences”
meant to “amaze” the caliph, and by extension, readers of and list
to the following story: Two brothers, co-viziers of the king of Egypt, dream about a future
in which they will simultaneously draw up marriage contracts and
conceive children who will marry each other. They fall out irreconcil-
ably when they disagree about the dowry involved for the wedding
of the not yet conceived offspring. The younger brother quits Cairo,
journeys to Basra, meets its vizier, marries his daughter, inherits his
goods and position, and sires a son gifted with perfections of body
and mind. His brother, who remains in Cairo as vizier to the king
of Egypt, likewise marries and has a child of surpassing beauty and
charm, a daughter.At his father’s death, the young Badr al-Din Hasan mourns so
unrelentingly that the King of Basra determines to destroy him, but
forewarned, Badr al-Din Hasan flees to his father’s grave and falls
into a deep and exhausted sleep. The he-demon comes upon him
and is so amazed at his beauty that he and the she-demon carry him
to Cairo to displace the hunchback the king of Egypt has chosen for
Sit al-Husn’s husband. Within moments Badr al-Din Hasan awakens
in Cairo, is sent to the baths, and is instructed to enter the wedding
hall with candlebearers and to shower Sit al-Husn’s women with
gold coins from an inexhaustible supply in his pocket. When the

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 103
hunchback goes to the privy, the he-demon terrifies him first as a
black tomcat, then as a braying ass, and finally as a mammoth buf-
falo, before upending him in the well-filled toilet, thus freeing Badr
al-Din Hasan to take Sit al-Husn’s virginity and make her pregnant.
Before dawn Badr al-Din Hasan is carried to Damascus where he
awakens pantsless and surrounded by a skeptical crowd, to whom
he tries to explain that he was in Basra the day before, went to bed
in Cairo, and now awakens in Damascus. The crowd concludes that
he is “mad” and tells him to “return to his senses,” spellin
g out the
impossibility of the episode he describes. Pursued by the crowd, he
takes refuge in a cookshop, is adopted by its owner, and takes up this
humble trade.
Twelve years later, his uncle the Egyptian vizier, his daughter, and
her (and Badr al-Din Hasan’s) son set out in search of the man who
wedded and left his daughter. In Damascus the son, ‘Ajib, enters the
cookshop, but when Badr al-Din is drawn to him by his blood tie and
follows him back to his encampment, ‘Ajib drives him off. Eventually the vizier realizes that the cookshop cook may be his
nephew, that is, his daughter’s husband, and his grandson’s father.
He sets up an elaborate ruse to test his identity which turns on a
special pomegranate dish that Badr al-Din Hasan prepares. All ends
happily when Badr al-Din Hasan is joyfully reunited with his wife
Sit al-Husn.
Jaf’ar’s story “amazes” the caliph “exceedingly,” who orders it to be
recorded. He not only pardons Jaf’ar’s slave, but rewards him with a
“choice concubine” and a “sufficient income” and makes him “
one of
his companions to the end of his days” (ibid.: 248). “The Story of the Two Viziers” touches on a number of recurrent
Alf Layla wa-Layla themes. Improbability, thematized throughout the
narration, is repeatedly associated with the intrinsically theological
concept of predestination, in the sense of having been foreordained by
an all-powerful all-knowing God. For instance, the text notes that Badr
al-Din Hasan’s son ‘Ajib stopped in front of his father’s cookshop “as if
it had been foreordained” (ibid.: 227). What is foreordained, by de
tion, expresses divine omniscience, rather than the exercise of magic.
Hence, “God” repeatedly recurs in “The Story of the Two Viziers.” On
the other hand, the magic that is experienced in “The Story of the
Two Viziers” – Badr al-Din Hasan’s instantaneous transport from Basra
to Cairo to Damascus and the hunchback’s bodily experience of the
demon’s fearsome animal transformations, both very real to the men

104 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
involved – are marked not as magic but as evidence of madness on the
part of the two men who claim to have experienced these events. The
hunchback feels constrained to deny that he is mad as he reports his
horrendous encounters, and the crowd surrounding Badr al-Din Hasan
accuses him of the same malady. The hunchback’s experience of magic
deprives him of a beautiful wife, while Badr al-Din Hasan’s brings
12 years of hard labor that close with painful physical and intense psy-
chological suffering. Here, and in general in Alf Layla wa-Layla, impos-
sibilities and improbabilities with advantageous outcomes are attributed

to God’s intervention in human affairs, even if they are sometimes
effected by demons, whereas those with dire outcomes are consigned in
the text to demonic malevolence and malicious sorcery.
Magicians and magic in Alf Layla wa-Layla
Of all the tales in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla, “The Story of Jullanar
of the Sea” has the greatest density of instantaneously transformatio
magic and formidably powerful magicians, and as such provides illumi-
nating examples of magic in the Alf Layla wa-Layla imaginary. The tale
begins with a long-awaited-son narrative, continues with the grown
son’s adventures with two enchantresses, and concludes with a happy
A Persian king, admirable in every respect, is not blessed with a son
until he buys a beautiful but silent girl, with whom he falls in love.
A year later she yields to his pleas that she speak, and tells him that
she is with child and that she is Jullanar, daughter of a sea-king. She
wishes her family to visit, both to assist at the birth and to prove
that she is indeed royal. The king assents and she calls them forth.
A month later a boy, Badr, is born.The child grows up learning chivalric skills, becomes king, and rules
justly and wisely until he hears of the perfections of Princess Jauhara.

Her arrogant father, King al-Shamandal, refuses the suit brought on
Badr’s behalf, and his army attacks Badr’s forces. However, his own
army is overwhelmed, and he himself is taken prisoner. Princess Jauhara takes refuge on an island. When Badr arrives at the
same island, they meet and recognize each other, but with opposite
intentions: Badr wishes to marry her; she, wishing to destroy him,
transforms him into a white bird with red legs and beak. Subsequently
snared by a bird-catcher and presented to a king, Badr-as-bird is even-
tually recognized as a human being by the king’s wife, disenchanted,
and provided with ship, sailors and supplies to carry him home.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 105
Homeward bound, the ship founders off the City of Magicians,
Badr alone surviving. A fava bean seller named Abu Abd ‘Allah shel-
ters him and warns him in vain against the wiles of the Magian sor-
ceress, Queen Lab. Bewitched by her beauty, Badr enjoys forty blissful
days of carnal delight before observing her with another lover. He
seeks out the fava bean seller, who provides magic barley meal, by
means of which Badr turns her into a she-mule. Shortly thereafter
Queen Lab’s mother manages to disenchant her daughter, summon
a demon, and carry herself, Queen Lab, and Badr back to the palace
in the City of Magicians, where Badr is transformed into an ugly
bird, caged, and deprived of food and water. His mother Jullanar, his
grandmother Farasha, and his uncle Sayih summon “all the tribes
of demons and the troops of the sea” (515) to destroy the City of
Magicians and its inhabitants and then change Badr back into a man. Badr still wishes to marry Princess Jauhara, who assents when her
father, now humbled, gives his permission. “Then King Badr and his
wife and mother and relatives continued to enjoy life until they were
overtaken by the breaker of ties and destroyer of delights” (518).
A long-ish story, “Jullanar of the Sea” lasts from Night 230 to Night
271 in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla, but even though characters
with supernatural powers abound, the author introduces them as such
only from Night 256 onward, more than halfway through the story.
The first to be explicitly credited with magical powers is a king’s wife,
“the greatest sorceress of her day” (499), who recognizes King Badr in
the guise of the white bird. Soon thereafter the dangerous Queen Lab
appears, an “enchantress who is as enchanting as the moon” (501)
who has a devouring sexual appetite for handsome men (502). One day,
a thousand mounted officers, a thousand Mamluks, and a thousand
moon-beautiful girls herald the arrival of the beguiling queen, behind
whose bewitching beauty, the text tells us, she is “blasphemous” (502,
505), a “cursed witch” (506), a “cursed woman” (510, 513
), a “fire wor-
shiper” (510), and above all, an “infidel” (505, 510, 512).
Badr is ready to relinquish his empire, abandon his mother, and give
up his human form in return for 40 nights in bed with her (506), and
indeed Badr experiences 40 days and nights of delightful “kissing and

playing” (508). Queen Lab’s mother, an old woman whom Badr treats respectfully,
makes only a brief appearance (514–15), unlike Jullanar’s mother
Farasha, who is introduced into the story on Night 236. “[D]escended
from the daughters of the sea” (471), she joins Jullanar a month be

106 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Badr’s birth as “a gray-haired old woman” (473) who subsequently
shows herself to be politically and tactically savvy (487, 488) and mi
tarily prescient (491). Despite her many appearances in the story, only
near the end of the tale does the author tell us that “Jullanar of th
e Sea
and her mother Farasha . . . are the most powerful magicians on the face

of the earth” (515), which they and Jullanar’s brother Sayih explicitly
demonstrate by mobilizing the tribes of demons and the troops of the
sea (515) to release Badr from Queen Lab’s captivity.
Extraordinary powers are attributed to all members of Jullanar’s fam-
ily from the moment that she describes their ability to “walk in wate
just as you people walk on land, without being wetted or hurt by the
water” (472, 473), powers that their subsequent ability to fly and
flaming mouths confirm (474, 475, 476, 478). Princess Jauhara, the
legendary beauty who precipitates Badr into his adventures, also has
magic powers. In her case, however, the tale’s author has nothing to say
about public estimates of her abilities or about her personal qualifica-
tions, but lets someone who dislikes her characterize her, unjustly, as a
“harlot” (499). Named male magicians are few in “Jullanar of the Sea.” Jullanar’
brother Sayih, whose supernatural abilities and characteristics (living

unharmed under the sea and producing flames from his mouth when
angry) express his belonging to a parallel, watery world, but neither
living underwater nor mouthing flames functions narratively. The fava
bean seller Abu ‘Abd-Allah, like Jullanar’s mother, is part of the story
from the time of Badr’s shipwreck. Tasked with catching and delivering
handsome young men to Queen Lab (503–4), he remains an active pres-
ence in “Jullanar of the Sea” until he shares in the story’s happy ending,
but only on Night 266 does he describe himself as someone at the top
of his profession, when he claims there is “none better skilled in ma
than I.” He immediately qualifies his status by adding that he doesn’
use magic “except when I have to” (510), yet he does so without
tion when Badr needs help. Badr himself may be credited with having inherited supernatural abil-
ities from his mother, but in the course of “The Story of Jullanar of the
Sea” he functions more often as a channel for magic provided by other
That is to say, he wears “a seal ring engraved with one of the names of
the Almighty God” that will protect him “from the whales and other

beasts of the sea” (482), and in combatting Queen Lab’s supernatural
powers he protects himself with the barley meal given him by the fava
bean seller (512), although he does manage to produce a conjuration of

his own devising (513).

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 107
The Magians who inhabit the City of Magicians are referred to as
wicked, since they are fire worshipers like Queen Lab (510), but indi-
vidually and as a group they remain unnamed. Angels also form part
of the world of supernaturals in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla, but
their few appearances are often puzzling. For instance, for no apparent
reason one angel uses shooting stars to kill the he-demon in “The Sto
of the Two Viziers,” as he and his companion she-demon are trying to
carry Badr al-Din Hasan back to the cemetery in Basra where his experi-
ence of magic began (217). The only logical function of this episode i
to demonstrate that angels rank higher than demons in the hierarchy
of supernaturals. On the other hand, one demon at least claims to have
frightened and defied the prophet Solomon (41), thus establishing him-
self above the Biblical and Qur’anic paragon of wisdom. Demons are by far the largest number of nameless supernatural beings
in Alf Layla wa-Layla. In the opening story, a demon demands the life of
a merchant, whom he accuses of having killed his son with a thought-
lessly tossed date pit (“The Story of the Merchant and the Demon,” 22).
In succeeding stories like “The Tale of the Envious and the Envied,” a
demon saves an envied man from death in a well (123) and later appears

in the shape of a lion (132). In the same story a king’s daughter who has
been taught by “a wily and treacherous old woman who was a witch”
battles epically against a demon (131, 132–3), and in “The Story of the
Two Viziers,” a helpful he-demon changes himself into a series of ter-
rifying apparitions. Demons in these Muslim magic tales share with demons in Jewish
magic tales a capacity to effect wickedness as well as goodness. Singly
and in troops, they fly through “Jullanar of the Sea,” abetting ev
il when
conjured by Queen Lab’s mother to carry her, her daughter, and King
Badr back to the City of Magicians and combatting evil when they are
summoned to attack and destroy the City of Magicians and its inhabit-
ants (515–16). Demons and their powers are transferrable assets: ma
of the demon troops who follow Jullanar and her mother at the end of
the story had earlier owed allegiance to the now-vanquished King al-
Shamandal (517). The array of positions and powers attributed to “demons” brings
into high relief one consequence of working with a text in translation.
The “demons” of the Haddawy translation obscure differently named

9 This story is an archetypal khurâfa, defined in the late tenth-century Fihrist as
a “pleasant and strange fictitious story” and later as a “ridiculously impossible
stor[y]” (Macdonald, 1924: 371).

108 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
populations of supernaturals in the Syrian manuscript. The black pillar
of smoke emerging from the sea witnessed by Shahriyar and Shahzaman
in the prolog resolves into a “demon” in his English translation,
into an “ifrit” in Ott’s German (17–19), while the monster who threatens
the merchant with death in the opening story (Night 1) is a “demon”
in Haddawy, but a “dschinni” (jinni) in Ott (31), whom the terrified
merchant addresses as “O böser Dämon” (O evil demon, 34). Does the
distinction between the author’s “jinni” and the merchant’s “demon”
tell us that the merchant doesn’t know the difference between the two?
Or is it insignificant, as is the disagreement between a tale’s superscript
and running head “Der Fischer und der Dschinni” (The Fisherman and
the Jinni, 49) and its content, where a gigantic ifrit and not a dschinni
appears (53). Its insignificance lies in the fact that Ott’s tale title ( Jinni)
translates Muhsin Mahdi’s insertion of a tale title into his critical edi-
tion and is thus a piece of information alien to the Syrian manuscript,
where no such tale title exists. Bearing these waylaying clues in mind,
I acknowledge that my effort to untangle characters’ perceptions of
supernaturals in Alf Layla wa-Layla remains incomplete.
Even when demonic powers meet and are vanquished by witch-
taught skills, God remains the ultimate judge, arbiter, and director of
narrative events in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla. Consider the battle
cry, “There is no power and no strength save in God, the Almighty, the
Magnificent,” uttered when a king’s daughter seems to falter in her bat-
tle against a flaming demon. When she follows that article of faith with

“God is great, God is great! He has conquered and triumphed; He has
defeated the infidel,” the demon turns to ashes. A final invocation o
divine powers, “In the name of the Almighty God and His covenant, be
yourself again,” restores stone to human flesh. Social and religious convention provides part or all of these cries,
but repetitive expression seems to endow the formulaically expressed
articles of faith with imagined powers of causation. Thus, here and in
other places in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla simple statements of
faith affect the course of action. As expressions of a shared belief in
God’s omnipresence, omniscience, and omnipotence, they reinforce the
convention that no explanation is required when God’s supernatural
power turns an entire city and its inhabitants to stone for not aban-
doning fire worship in favor of worship of “the Merciful God” (167–8).
A divine omnipotence that supervenes within the arena of magic effects
is a widely shared vision: a divinity’s powers on the field where com-
petitors gain (or prove) their dominance by demonstrating superior
supernatural powers are similar, even much the same, whether derived

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 109
from the Jewish Yahweh (Chapter 3), the Christian Mary (Chapter 4),
or the Muslim God. 10
The magic performed by the supernatural characters in Alf Layla wa-
Layla takes many forms. Some supernaturals can fly, as do demons in
general and Jullanar’s sea people in particular. In a motif that turns up in
accounts by fifteenth-century pilgrims to the Holy Land and that became
widespread in early modern European popular tales, an inexhaustible
source of gold coins is made available to a hero by a friendly demon
(“The Story of the Two Viziers”). However, the single most frequent result
of magicians’, witches’, and sorcerers’ magic is the purposeful transfor-
mation of human beings into and out of animal shapes, therianthropy,
to use the specialist term. The first tale cycle in Alf Layla wa-Layla, “The
Merchant and the Demon,” frames an account of a jealous wife’s trans-
formation of her husband’s son by his mistress into a young bull, in the
expectation that he will shortly be slaughtered. She herself is turned i
a deer by a young soothsayer “in order to control her and guard again
her evil power” (“The First Old Man’s Tale,” 30). The transformation of
perfidious sisters into dogs punishes their apparent misdeeds (“The
of the First Lady,” 170). Their transformation back into human beings
recognizes, acknowledges, and forgives the spells that were cast on them

before their transgressions (181). The he-demon’s transformation into
cat, mule, and buffalo successfully intimidates the hapless hunchback
in “The Story of the Two Viziers” (214); Jauhara transforms Badr into a
bird as punishment for deposing her father (“The Story of Jullanar of the
Sea,” 493); while Queen Lab transforms herself into a white bird to
love with a Mamluk whom she has earlier transformed into a black bird
(ibid., 509) and also transforms Badr into an ugly bird when her love
him turns to hatred (ibid., 510–13). When a character’s identity is disguised by a magical transforma-
tion into an animal, a corresponding magical ability to uncover inward
10 It is important to emphasize that poor people do not manipulate magic in
medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla. There is no Aladdin figure here. In “The Story of the
Fisherman and the Demon,” the poor fisherman counters a demon’s argument
with reason, and quick-wittedly tricks him back into the brass jar from
he has escaped; the fava bean seller in “Jullanar of the Sea,” rep
uted to be the
most powerful of magicians, dispatches a demon to carry messages for him, but
performs no magic on the page. The author’s apparent reticence about showing
the fava bean seller in action may stem from unstated but far-reaching c
constraints on the practice of magic. These observations form part of a larger
argument that will be made elsewhere about caliphs and the conferral of
a characteristic component of happy endings in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla.

110 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
identity usually emerges in another part of the story. Hence, a shepherd’s
daughter “who is fond of soothsaying” recognizes a young bull as t
enchanted son of her father’s master (“The First Old Man’s Tale,” 29),
while the unnamed sorceress wife of a king in “Jullanar” similarly sees
inside the bird before her to recognize King Badr of the Persian ruling
house in Khurasan, whose entire history she relates with no information
about his identity other than his white feathers, red beak, and red legs

(498–9). A princess in “The Tale of the Second Dervish” understands that
the chess-playing ape is “a wise, learned, and well-mannered man, a m
of culture and refinement (131), another feat of magical perception.
The shapeshiftings above are simplicity itself in contrast to the phan-
tasmagorical transformations that follow upon the princess’s recognition
of the ape in “The Tale of the Second Dervish.” In an elemental battle,
the demon who earlier transformed the prince into an ape descends “in

the semblance of a lion as big as a bull” to counter her efforts to r
his human shape. In a synechdotal response (de Blécourt, 1999: 191)
, a
hair from the princess’s head becomes a sword with which she cuts the
lion in two. The lion’s head, however, turns into a scorpion, which she,
as a huge serpent, pursues. They continue to battle, first as vulture an
eagle, and then as piebald tomcat and black wolf, until the tomcat turns

into a worm and creeps into a pomegranate lying beside a fountain
that swells until it bursts, scattering its seeds. As a rooster the prin
pecks up all the seeds except, alas, the one containing the demon’s soul,
which falls into the fountain and becomes a fish. The rooster, as a larger
fish, pursues it, until “the demon came out as a burning flame follow
by the girl, who was also a burning flame.” The fiery battle continues
until all that is left of demon and princess is ash (132–5). The ba
culminates in fire in all its forms: burning flame, sparks, smoke, more
flames and sparks, and the princess’s desperate cries, “The fire! The fire!”
(134–5). The prominence of fire links these transformations to paga
fire worshipers, of whom the wicked Queen Lab, a Magian sorceress, is
the collection’s chief representative, significant because fire worshipers
are the most reviled of all pagans in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla.
In using the magic taught by the old woman and learned by hard
study (131) to disenchant the ape, the princess in “The Tale of the
Second Dervish” violates oaths taken “that neither [the demon nor
the princess] would cross the other” (132). After the ensuing battl
e, as
the princess is expiring, she explains her defeat this way:
“‘Although I am not used to fighting demons, . . . I fought him un
the earth and I fought him in the sky, and every time he initiated

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 111
a domain of magic, I countered with a greater domain and foiled
him until I opened the domain of fire. Few open it and survive, but
I exceeded him in cunning, and with God’s help I killed him’ . . . she
kept crying out, ‘The fire! The fire!’ until all of her body burned to a
heap of ashes.” (134–5)
We may understand the princess’s account as a literary construction
that heightens and intensifies the powers of opposing forces, those
represented by the malevolent demon and those embodied by the
beneficent princess. The literary process takes place before a backdrop of
imputed practical magic. Nonetheless, the “seventy domains of magic”

the princess learned under the old witch do not reflect magic as it migh
have been practiced at the time this story was committed to paper, for
its 70 domains are referred to nowhere else in the literature of the pra
tice of magic. That leaves us with a second literary understanding of the
70 domains, namely as a symbol for finite but extensive learning that
the princess copied and committed to memory (131). The third part of the princess’s account of her defeat parallels Alf
Layla wa-Layla’s descriptions of fire worshipers. A follower of Zoroaster,
the Magian Queen Lab invokes the tenets of her Magian faith – the
fire, the light, the hot wind, and its palpable opposite, the cool shade

(504) – to achieve her ends. Although a related imagery of fire, flames,
sparks, smoke, and ashes fills the epic battle between the demon and
the princess, she is a believing Muslim who cries out, “God is great!
is great! He has conquered and triumphed. He has defeated the infidel!”

After she again cries out, “In the name of the Almighty God and His
covenant, be yourself again,” she sprinkles the ape with water and af
a good shake, he becomes a full-fledged man (134). Several forms of magic practice that appear separately in other tales
are joined together in the densely magical “Tale of the Second Dervish”:
the use of water, synechdotal magic, and the use of objects with inherent
magic powers. Frequently water initiates or completes a conjuration to
transform a human into or out of animal shape. A shepherd’s daughter
fills a bowl with water from which she sprinkles a bull to return him to

human form, and at the other end of the collection, Prince Badr is sprin
kled and spat upon to complete a spell (494, 499). When he can, he doe
the same to Queen Lab (513). Whether water use reflects its treasured
ity in desert lands or whether it suggests a Muslim opposition to Magian

fire, water remains a constant in a large proportion of magic transforma
tions, displacing the dust with which a demon sprinkles the storyteller of
“The Tale of the Second Dervish” early in the collection (126).

112 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Synechdotal magic, as it appears in tales of the medieval Alf Layla
wa-Layla, requires exploration. Words muttered by the well-schooled
princess over a strand of hair from her head turn it into a sword that
pits her powers against the demon-as-lion and cuts him in two (133).
That is, the single hair apparently embodies the powers of her entire
knowledge of 70 domains of magic. Two other instances of synechdotal
magic occur in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla. The Second Lady tells
the listening caliph that a helpful demon serpent gives her a tuft of
hair (presumably from its head, but not explicitly declared to be so)
with directions to burn two of the hairs to summon her when in need
of assistance (“The Tale of the Second Lady,” 179). In a third instance
of synechdotal magic in the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla a pious man
envied by his neighbor overhears benevolent demons explain that a
princess possessed by the demon Maimun ibn-Damdam can be cured by
burning seven hairs from the white spot on the tail of the black cat tha
lives in the pious man’s hermitage. In this case, simple cohabitation
enables the cat to participate in the holiness and the powers conferred
by the man’s religious litanies and recitals of the Qur’an, a condition
that is neither logical nor persuasive to modern readers and possibly
not to readers and listeners five centuries ago. Perhaps that is why the

text’s author includes secular forms and reference points (a black cat,
the number seven) along with an impossibility (white hairs from a blac
cat) that is made credible (by providing the black cat’s tail with a white
tuft of hair the size of a dirham) in order to validate this instance o
magic (“The Tale of the Envious and the Envied,” 123–4). Objects with magic powers, the third category for implementing
supernaturally efficacious acts, are varied. Some objects embody magic
properties in and of themselves, like a bridle that makes Queen Lab
submit to her she-mule condition in “Jullanar of the Sea” (513).
But in
other cases, a magic object’s indwelling powers are enhanced, perhaps
even caused, by inscriptions. All the better, if the script is Hebrew, like
the “knife engraved with names in Hebrew characters” (“The Tale of
the Second Dervish,” 132), with which the princess draws a perfect
circle to initiate the ape’s disenchantment. That she then inscribes (pre-
sumably Arabic) names in Kufic letters (the squarish calligraphic styl
in which the oldest Qur’ans are written) suggests her double approac
to the Divinity through the scripts of two Holy Writs, the Hebrew and
the Arabic. By the end of the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla, Hebrew let-
ters have given way to “the words inscribed on the seal ring of God’
prophet Solomon, son of David” (“The Story of Jullanar of the Sea,” 472),
a formula later repeated without the phrase “God’s prophet” (478).

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 113
Another seal ring in the same story belongs to King Badr’s sea-born
uncle Sayih, this one “engraved with one of the names of the Almighty

God” and conferring protection against sea creatures (487).
God the Omnipotent stands above all workers of magic in the medie-
val Alf Layla wa-Layla, as is also the case in Jewish medieval magic tales.
Archetypal is a shepherd’s daughter’s magic. First she fills a bowl with
water, but before she uses it to sprinkle an ape, she qualifies the water’
inherent powers by making them subject to divine will:
“‘Bull, if you have been created in this image by the All Conqueri
Almighty Lord, stay as you are, but if you have been treacherously
put under a spell, change back to your human form, by the will of
God, Creator of the wide world’”. (“The First Old Man’s Tale,” 30)
We can understand this episode as a portrayal of a pagan ritual practice
(using water to conjure) overlain by an Islamicization of that practic
e to
affirm God’s supremacy. In the subsequent “Tale of the Second Dervish,”
the same affirmation appears as an assumption that divine power is
greater than the powers conferred by even a deep knowledge of the 70
domains of magic: in the moment that the king’s daughter defeats the
demon, she utters the cry of both battle and amazement, “God is great,
God is great! He has conquered and triumphed: He has defeated the infi-
del” (134). In “Jullanar of the Sea,” God’s powers similarly confront pagan
ones. Jullanar’s transformational abilities restore Badr from bird-dom “by
the power of the God of the world” (516), as she sprinkles him with
On the other hand, Queen Lab and her mother never invoke any but
their own powers to work magic on the pages of Alf Layla wa-Layla (511,
512, 514, 515). In other words, Lab’s magical powers are presented as her
own, while Jullanar’s are shown to be God’s, and therefore more power-
ful within the Islamic subtext that accompanies “a narrative structur
e of
belief in the supernatural” (Mahdi, 2009: 258). In “Jullanar of the Sea,” it is a foregone conclusion that God and
legions will vanquish pagan forces. That is not, however, the case in
“The Tale of the Third Dervish,” which depicts a world where a hero is
adjured not to disclose his allegiance to God until after a supernatural

brass oarsman has completed a ten-day journey to bring him to safety.
That this oarsman stands for forces opposed to God emerges on the
ninth day. In an excess of joy at glimpsing land, the Muslim passenger
exclaims, “There is no God but God,” and the boat promptly capsize
casting him into the sea (141) in a display of a non-Muslim power’s

114 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
This discussion does not exhaust the subject of magic in the medieval Tales
of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla, 11 but it addresses the two texts’
major points. In both Tales of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla magic’s
effects on tale heroes and heroines is as often maleficent as it is bene
ficent. Achieving a happy ending within these tales is problematic. A hero’s
marrying, being enriched, and enjoying a high social status occurs in a
few tales, but when it happens, it is not brought about by magic but is
conferred by a caliph, whose role, in the words of Muhsin Mahdi, is that

of “a providential agent on earth” (2009: 259). Even when such a
n end-
ing seems to be imminent, as when a king proposes a marriage between
his daughter and the ape who is an enchanted prince, it ends badly: the
princess dies in her mortal combat with a demon (135). The tales are designed to divert, but they also claim an edifying purpos
as the Foreword added in the later eighteenth century (Ott, 2004: 651)
asserts. A self-advertising trope, its wording is nonetheless revealing:
Thousand and One Nights abounds also with splendid biographies that
teach the reader to detect deception and to protect himself from it, as
as delight and divert him whenever he is burdened with the cares of life

and the ills of this world. It is the Supreme God who is the True Guide” (3). The expectation that delight and diversion should follow presenta-
tions of the plots and worldviews evident in the medieval Alf Layla
wa-Layla as well as in the earlier Tales of the Marvellous implies that its
readers and listeners are at one with the collections’ underlying nar
tive premises. Premises, however, change as society changes, a truism
exemplified in the next chapter’s exploration of the relationship of
content, perceptions of magic, and technological change.
Hundred and One Nights: A Coda
In 2005, a c1235 manuscript composed in Moorish Andalusia was sold
at Sotheby’s, and in 2010 was shown in an exhibit of treasures from
11 For Muhsin Mahdi, magic is “a blend of the verbal and the nonverbal t
transcend and transgress the real” and in Nights tales a problematization of
“the concept of images and icons” (2009: 258, 260). Mahdi’s literary discussions
of magic within the medieval Alf Layla wa-Layla and its modern version The
Arabian Nights build on Tzvetan Todorov’s explorations of the verbal proper-
ties of the fantastic by adding observations about non-verbal components of
magical processes, so that his comments often illuminate and extend Todorov’s
observations, while my efforts here attempt an understanding of magic within
the context of Alf Layla wa-Layla characters who use or are affected by what they
perceive to be magic.

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 115
the Aga-Khan Museum at the Berlin Martin-Gropius-Building. Claudia
Ott, an Arabist and ethnomusicologist performing at the opening
night, immediately recognized the manuscript as Mi’at Layla wa-Layla
(Hundred and One Nights) and received permission to examine it, sub-
sequently translating it as Hundert Eine Nacht (Hundred and One Nights)
in 2012 (Müller, 2010: 11; Mudhoon, 2010). Not only is this manuscript
of Hundred and One Nights earlier than both collections discussed in this
chapter, it is also more than 400 years older than previously available
Hundred and One Nights texts. For instance, until now scholars had at
their disposal the 1911 translation into French by Maurice Gaudefroy-
Demombynes and the critical edition in Arabic published in 1979 by
Mahmûd Tarshûnah, both of which are based on eighteenth- and/or
nineteenth-century sources. Because Hundred and One Nights took shape in the far western reaches
of Islam, Ott’s translation of this early thirteenth-century collection not
only extends the corpus of medieval Muslim magic tales available to
those who cannot read the Arabic original, it also opens a window onto
a differing perspective on the magic in Muslim magic tales. In addition,

the presence in Hundred and One Nights of a fragment of “The Ebony
Horse”, for which a complete version by Adenet le Roi exists from c12
enables a closer scrutiny of one tantalizing question about the flow of
stories across religious and cultural boundaries in the Middle Ages.
Much of the language, imagery, and mindset of Hundred and One
Nights suggests a merchant readership. Merchants and their families
occupy the principal roles in a high proportion of stories, and the sto-
ries themselves use mercantile phrases like “running costs” (laufende
Kosten in Ott, 2012: 16) and “rendering account of his purchases”
( erstattete Bericht über seine Einkäufe, 69). The stories also communicate
market wisdom (“Never do business with borrowed money” [Mache
niemals Geschäfte mit geliehenem Geld, 16) and caravan economy
(“packed up all the treasures that were small in weight but great in

value” [ packte . . . alle Schätze . . . zusammen, die leicht an Gewicht,
aber schwer an Wert waren], 42). That these stories were to be read by
their owners or borrowers rather than to be listened to is suggested
12 I am currently pursuing a 600-year history of “The Flying Horse.” The absence
of the Alf Layla wa-Layla Prologue tale of the woman who cuckolds the demon
who has imprisoned her in a chest is even more fascinating, because it s
that Giovan Sercambi’s 1374 tale is an instance of a subsequently influential tale
not yet shared with its Iberian neighbors.

116 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
by passages in which a character repeats something that was earlier
recounted. In this situation in Alf Layla wa-Layla a complete repetition
occurs, but in Hundred and One Nights a character acknowledges what
has been recently read by saying, “Such and such happened to me”
(Mir ist das und das passiert, 125).
The realism of the caravan economy also marks the stories as a
whole. Muhammed Ibn Abdallah, for instance, finds a metal plate
embedded in the ground with a ring affixed to it, a magic tale trope
for the first stage in entering into an underground chamber. When
nothing happens at his touch, he pulls the ring back and forth and
shakes it, but the text tells us that it doesn’t open until he turns it (28).
Using similarly mechanical rather than magical means, another hero
disables a devouring lion-shaped automaton by “applying a strategy”

( wandte nun einen Kniff an, 48) and then, when he’s asked how he’ll
deal with a second oncoming sword-wielding human-shaped automa-
ton, responds coolly, “Take it easy, first I have to understand the
mechanism” (Gemach, gemach . . . [i]ch muss erst selbst den Mechanismus
verstehen, 49).
Monarchs, too, are different in Hundred and One Nights. They more
often sit on thrones and wear crowns (for example 73 et al.), like the
European counterparts, and they don’t elicit the same abject submission
as do Alf Layla wa-Layla rulers. Only twice in Hundred and One Nights
does a subject kiss the ground before his superior (89, 199). But noth
ing marks the difference between rulers in Tales of the Marvellous and
Alf Layla wa-Layla on the one hand and Hundred and One Nights on the
other hand, more than a doubly unthinkable exchange about Harun
al-Raschid between an old man and a vizier’s son (65):
The old man brought him food and drink, and [the vizier’s son] ate.
Then they conversed for a long time. “How has the new king treated
you?” the old man wanted to know.“He tyrannizes his subjects,” sighed the other. “He has a fickle and
deceitful nature.” Der Scheich brachte ihm zu essen und zu trinken, und jener ass davon.
Dann unterhielten die beiden sich lange. “Wie ist es dir mit dem neuen
König ergangen?” wollte der Scheich wissen.
13 Unlike automata that block the way, mountains and seas can’t be disabled,
and so those topographical obstacles to a merchant’s necessary travel are repeat-
edly adverted to metaphorically (43, 83, 195).

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 117
“Es tyrannisiert seine Untertanen”, seufzte der andere. “Er ist von
wankelmütiger und unaufrichtiger Wesensart” (68).
Criticizing a ruler for tyranny is unheard of in Tales of the Marvellous
and Alf Layla wa-Layla and has profound implications that lie outside
this inquiry. At bottom, characterizing Harun al-Rashid as a fickle and
deceitful tyrant, for he is the character about whom the old man asks
his question, shows how far Seville was from Baghdad, in contrast to the

Levant-based Tales of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla, where Harun
al-Raschid was monarchy’s cynosure and paragon. An altogether differ-
ent historical memory is at work in Hundred and One Nights, one that
credits Alexander the Great with erecting towering idols in the Sea of
Darkness (70) and attributes the iron foundations of a mighty palace t
Amalekites and Byzantine generals (70–1). The mental world of Hundred
and One Nights differs indeed! In some cases, however, the magic of Hundred and One Nights resem-
bles that of its eastern sisters. A door in the ground leads to a subter
ranean chamber that opens onto a field or meadow (28–9, 62). Other
parallel worlds take shape in the guise of a large round tent on the
far bank of a river (53), rather like the one that Lanval encounters i
Chapter 7. And then there are dragons – a fire-breathing dragon with
deadly gaze (39–40), a dragon automaton (192), magic fat that pro
from dragon bites (187) as well as a helpful dragon (184), and a pri
protected by a dragon-skin belt (94). Magic is thematized (41), alth
sometimes it is simply posited, as when we are to understand that magic
has been at work because a palace is constructed of crystal within a
40-mile perimeter of safety (60–3). More arresting, however, are tale and plot similarities between
Hundred and One Nights and European narratives. A three-wishes story –
wish, unwish, restore original condition – mirrors a vulgar European
tale about a penis on the hero’s forehead (175–6). An Andalusian and a
European tale, both about a son’s search for medicine to restore his sick
father to health, bear more than a passing resemblance to one another
(see Hundred and One Nights [187] and Johannes Gobi’s 1323–1330
Scala Coeli tale #538, with discussion of the latter on page 77–9), while
the “Ebony Horse” fragment in Hundred and One Nights (197–202) and
Adenet le Roi’s 1285 Cleomades are nearly identical. These facts under-
line the participation of Andalusian Muslim and Western European
Christian writers in a shared religious, popular, and chivalric narrative

118 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
There are also differences in degree between values and beliefs
expressed in the Eastern and Western Mediterranean tale collections
discussed here. The world of material goods is altogether less astonishi
in Hundred and One Nights. No one is staggered by displays of luxury or
power as in Alf Layla wa-Layla. Instead the scribe of Hundred and One
Nights simply declares the ineffability of a castle “that no description
could encompass” (das keine Beschreibung je erfassen könnte , 25, 35), after
which characters approach the indescribable castles and the stories
proceed. As in Tales of the Marvellous, Alf Layla wa-Layla , and indeed in medieval
Christian and Jewish tales as well, God is acknowledged as the ultimate
power. But the Hundred and One Nights scribe puts God’s supremacy on
the page in a personal light. To be sure, he is praised as the Lord of all
the world’s people (Lob sei Gott, dem Herrn der Weltbewohner!, 97), but
his attributes are described in terms of the human pleasure He brings
about by making the next beautiful day dawn ( Als Gott den nächsten,
schönsten Morgen dämmern liess . . . 95) and of His participation in the
least of human activities, such as splitting grain and seeds ( Ich schwöre
bei Gott, der Spalter von Korn und Kernen!, 117). In this manner the God
of Hundred and One Nights is portrayed more domestically and seems
altogether less fearsome than the omnipotent God of Alf Layla wa-Layla
and Tales of the Marvellous.
The same is true of supernatural creatures, the worst of whom are
devouring sea monsters (66, 67) and a giant bird that claws away an
unfortunate sailor on land (47), while the little devils who speak fro
skulls that cannibals have hung on their walls are obliging fellows who
answer the cannibals’ questions (46–7). When a character inquire
whether an approaching figure is a human or an ifrit (128), the question
seems meant to satisfy curiosity rather than to secure mortally necessar
information, particularly since an ordinary archer can easily bring a fly-
ing ifrit down with a well-aimed arrow (136).
The small corpus of Hundred and One Nights has the same kind, but a
larger share, of happy endings than its eastern sisters. In the presence

of the lords of the realm, the wedding of a deserving young man and
woman is celebrated with a great feast, and the young man lives on at
the royal court, eating and drinking of the finest until overtaken by th
certain end [of all human life] (30, 64). A variation on this example
earthly joy has a girl who weds a prince and shares with him the joys of

eating and drinking the finest dishes and drinks until overtaken by thei
certain fate (42), a vision of shared bliss that presages sixteenth-ce
Italian fairy tale happy endings. Nonetheless Hundred and One Nights

Magic Tales in the Muslim Middle Ages 119
remains a Muslim tale collection, which is brought home by the happy
ending of “The Story of the Young Egyptian and the Girl Gharîbat
al-Husn” (103–12):
Al-Mu’tasim had an appropriate amount of money paid out to them.
In addition, he presented each of them with an animal to ride and
sent someone with them, who was to accompany them to the fur-
thest bounds of his country. And so they left him and traveled back
to Cairo. They entered the city. First he greeted his father and his
family. Then he married the girl, the sister of al-Mu’tasim, arranged
a magnificent wedding feast and lived on happily with both women,
ate and drank his fill of the most delicate food and drink, until the
certain end overtook them. Praise be to God, the Lord of all the
world’s people!Al-Mu’tasim liess ihnen nun so viel Geld auszahlen, wie ihnen angemes-
sen war. Ausserdem übergab er jedem von ihnen ein Reittier und schickte
jemanden mit, der ihnen bis an die äusserste Grenze seines Landes Geleit
geben sollte. So verliessen sie ihn und reisten wieder zurück nach Kairo.
Sie betraten die Stadt. Zuerst begrüsste er seinen Vater und seine Familie.
Dann heiratete er das Mädchen, die Schwester al-Mu’tasims, veranstaltete
ein prachtvolles Hochzeitsmahl und lebte vergnügt mit den beiden Frau
ass und trank sich satt an den köstlichsten Speisen und Getränken,
bis das
sichere Ende sie ereilte. Lob sei Gott, dem Herrn der Weltbewohner! (112)
The issues explored in Hundred and One Nights in this brief coda
have not previously attracted notice. In the relatively small corpus of
secondary literature devoted to the book, its newly translated open-
ing sequence was primary (Godefroy-Demombynes, 1909: 210–18)
and tale provenance loomed large (Ferrand, 1911). D.B. MacDonald’s
closely argued article “The Earlier History of the Arabian Nights”
(1924) incorporated some information about Hundred and One Nights
within the larger history of the Thousand and One Nights, while more
recently a nineteenth-century Tunisian manuscript was compared with
two nineteenth-century Egyptian print editions with reference to the
respective authors’ character focus (Pinault, 1992: 226–7). Most
Ulrich Marzolph and Aboubakr Chraïbi produced a two-part article
“The Hundred and One Nights: A Recently Discovered Old Manuscript”
to introduce it to the scholarly world, while Claudia Ott’s “Afterword”
(2012), which points out its typically Andalusian “kings” and it
s specifi-
cally Andalusian imaginary geography (243–4), set the content analysis
of Hundred and One Nights in motion.

120 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Gender relations and identity in Hundred and One Nights, largely
unrelated to concerns about magic and the supernatural, beg for close
scrutiny because they differ so greatly from those expressed in Tales of
the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla and seem to lie closer to those evi-
dent in medieval Jewish and Christian texts. Whatever tendency toward
shared attitudes one might find in Muslim, Jewish, and Christian medi-
eval magic tales, gender also marks a great divide. The worthy hero of
a medieval Christian tale was rewarded by only one wife or beloved,
her singularity the fundament for much of the action of the narrative
explored in the next chapter.

Magic at Court
and on the Piazza
As the three previous chapters show, oral performances in the medieval
period were infinite in their variety. Some were spontaneous, the out-
bursts of court jesters or village fools, or the witticisms of clever in
als. Others were prepared. The preacher had studied the sermon tale he
told to small or medium-sized crowds outdoors or to larger audiences in
church; the minstrel had closely read the courtly epic that he sang or
chanted for a courtly household and its servants, and he might check
it against a prompt sheet in the course of his performance if he needed
reminders. Coarse and bawdy fabliaux might be told with snickers
and winks to guffawing listeners of either high or low status, or both
together. All of these performance occasions were court-, church-, or
household-related, that is, they took place among people who gathered
together because they governed or served at court, or were addressed by
the church and its functionaries, or were sharing the same roof, either
briefly or for the long term. Among all of the storytelling venues that
existed in the medieval period, court, church, and household venues pre-
dominated into the high Middle Ages, that is, until around 1250–1300.
When towns and cities became increasingly prominent, patterns of
change and continuity in urban culture differed considerably from one
region to another; and even within single regions. But that is not the
brief here. We are interested in how city- and town-dwellers’ experi-
ence of city and town life affected the stories they told. City life in
Europe and the Americas in the twenty-first century offers a pale, much
muted, and highly sanitized version of city life eight centuries earlier
Then, people were packed into a limited space, with a high density on
the ground. Passageways were thronged, streets crowded, and clusters
of individuals would have constantly formed and re-formed in any
open space: apprentices in workplaces, celebrants at festivals, crowds

122 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
in a piazza jostling in the street outside the large open shelf of a coo
or drink shop, or seated on benches inside an inn. Unlike the male-
dominated public spaces depicted in Tales of the Marvellous and Alf
Layla wa-Layla there were equal numbers of women and men, girls and
boys. Renaissance paintings often illustrate this dense traffic, as Patr
Brown’s Art and Life in Renaissance Venice (1997) vividly shows.
In urban environments, commerce underlay daily life and promoted
commerce-dependent publics that sold their labor or the goods they
made for coin of the realm. Barter occasionally survived in cities, just
as inklings of a money economy showed up here and there in villages
in the countryside. But when all urban transactions are weighed in the
balance, it can be fairly said that a consciousness of coin, as ducats a
florins, shillings, and pence, and sous dominated urban laborers’ wor
ing hours. In this respect there is continuity between the Near Eastern
world of Tales of the Marvellous and Alf Layla wa-Layla and this chapter’s
roughly contemporaneous European world of Liom/nbruno. Crucially
important changes in worldview began to enter medieval urban story-
telling and encouraged the creation of new kinds of stories. For the fir
time in narrative history, poor protagonists, like the hero of the 1470
print Lionbruno, interact with a fairy world, rather than simply suffering
the effects of supernaturals’ actions. The narrative weight of past m
traditions was heavy, however, and modern fairy tale magic emerged
gradually through intermediary stages, such as Liom/nbruno. Apprentices, journeymen, artisans, and laborers – boys and girls, men

and women – labored long and hard in medieval towns and cities. Their

employers and paymasters were guild members, business owners, or their
wives or widows. The legal and religious governors of their daily life
were a small elite. This description simplifies the ingenious variations
production and governance that typified lives in late medieval European
cities and towns, but it is adequate for setting the scene for the evolu
ary and revolutionary literary shifts discussed in this chapter. Newly clustered characteristics distinguished late medieval urban
workers from court, church, or household populations and led to the
creation of new kinds of stories and storytelling. With different cultural
reference points, these new, or newly told, stories needed a different
use of language. And constrained by literary, social, and legal traditions
that intruded from the world of courts, churches, and households into
the new stories’ tellings, the new stories and their tellings manifes
recognizable textual tensions with those worlds. This chapter begins with a comparison and contrast between two
rhymed narratives meant for oral performance, the twelfth-century Lai

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 123
of Lanval by Marie de France and a fifteenth-century proto-fairy tale
Liombruno. Striking plot and motif similarities between the two suggest
that Marie de France’s lai is the literary parent of Liombruno, but liter-
ary and narrative changes made by Liombruno’s author Cirino d’Ancona
reflect a changing worldview that preceded and perhaps precipitated
the rise and restoration fairy tales of Giovan Francesco Straparola in the
following century.
The Lai of Lanval and courtly verse
The Lai of Lanval was in all likelihood composed by Marie de France
in England in the 1170s (Burgess, 1987: 1–34) with the following pl
Lanval, a royal prince far from home and family resources, is a knight
at King Arthur’s court. Unrewarded for his service, the dejected hero
one day quits the city (cité) and rides out to a meadow, where he
dismounts and rests. As he lies gazing before him, two transcend-
ently beautiful young women approach with a message: their mistress
wishes him to come to her. He accompanies them to a richly furnished
pavilion, where a young girl (jeune fille), reclining on a sumptuous
bed, tells him of her love for him. He responds in courtly fashion; she
promises him “everything he could desire” (l. 137), but their love must
remain secret, if it is to continue.
1 Lanval fervently agrees, joins her on
the bed, and remains there for hours. She promises to come to him dis-
creetly whenever he wishes, adding that only he will [be able to] see or

hear her. Then her maidens clothe him richly, they dine together, and
he returns to the city, where he finds his retainers unexpectedly richly
attired. Lanval openhandedly distributes his newly available wealth. One day Queen Guinevere draws Lanval aside and confides her
love for him. He demurs, but she persists. His continued disinterest
spurs her to accuse him of preferring men, which he hotly denies,
citing the love between himself and his lady (thus breaking the
prohibition of speaking of her), the least of whose servants, he says,
outstrips Guinevere in beauty. Outraged and humiliated, Guinevere
takes revenge by accusing Lanval of attempted rape. King Arthur,
furious, puts Lanval on trial, with the proviso that he be pardoned
only if he can prove the truth of his boast to the queen about the
beauty of his beloved. Interrupting the trial, his beloved appears and
1 Note that the fairy beloved’s requirement echoes Aphrodite’s instructions to
Anchises not to name her as his lover and the mother of their child Aene

124 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
declares Lanval’s innocence. As she mounts her palfrey to return to
her kingdom, Lanval springs behind her. They ride off, and are never
heard from again.
The Lai of Lanval is thoroughly courtly in its physical descriptions of
the loveliness of his beloved’s ideal body: her neck white as snow on
the branch, her shining eyes, her perfect nose, her beautiful mouth, her

brown eyebrows, her fine forehead, and her curling blond hair. When he
gets in bed with her and stays all afternoon, no forthright fabliaux rib
aldry follows, only an ingenious ambiguity that he was well lodged ( bien
herbergé, l. 153–8). Courtly, too, are the Arthurian court and its characters King Arthur,
Queen Guinevere, Gawain, and Iwein. Lanval himself, the son of a power-
ful king (Fiz a rei fu, de halt parage, l. 27), exemplifies nobility with his valor,
generosity, beauteousness, and prowess (valur . . . largesce . . . bealté . . .
pruësce, ll. 21–2). The fairy court of Lanval’s beloved, on the other hand, not only
exemplifies courtliness, but also incarnates spectacular luxury: sumptu-
ous purple tunics (l. 57–9), a precious cloak of Alexandrian purple
with white ermine (ll. 101–2), and a bodice slit to reveal the wear
flancs (ll. 565–8). Equally splendid are the fairy court’s furnishings:
a marvelously carved basin for washing hands, a sculpted window
frame, fine plates, and palate-tempting dainties. Even the harness of th
fairy beloved’s horse is riche (l. 561). The objects that show their owner’s power bespeak a feudal economy
of exchanging services for goods, an exchange that in the Arthurian
world could also be carnal: as the Lai of Lanval opens King Arthur is
rewarding military service by distributing women and lands to his
counts, barons, and knights (ll. 14–17). Distributing women? Perhap
captives from Arthur’s wars against the Picts and Scots against whom he
was fighting (l. 3)? Pict and Scottish women as Arthurian booty? Lanva
though of royal birth, is far from home and without political support,
and therefore receives nothing. Wealth in the Lai of Lanval’s feudal economy is not measured in money
expended to acquire rarities, because, as Marie de France states, no kin
g in
the world would have enough to buy the fabulously costly accoutrements
of the fairy realm: the value (Old French le pris, l. 87) of her golden eagle
is beyond estimation and her bed coverings have a value equal to that
of a castle (li drap valeient un chastel, l. 98). Thus when the fairy beloved
bestows wealth on Lanval, it is as “whatever he wants,” in the sen
se of
objects desired rather than the money with which to buy them. And

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 125
consistent with a feudal economy of exchange, Lanval uses her gifts of
gold and silver as rich gifts to others, as payments for prisoners’ r
performers’ clothing, the creation of honors, and as largesse for str
gers as well as friends (ll. 209–16). Further expressing a feudal e
Lanval’s anti- or non-commercial disbursal of gold and silver establishes
his reputation for open-handed generosity, so central to courtly ide-
als. Courtliness encompasses essential identity, as becomes clear when
Lanval’s fairy beloved declares not only who the hero is – a courtly
chevalier – but also who he is not – “neither a fool nor a rustic” (n’estait
mie fols ne vileins, l. 177). That is, Lanval knows the rules of courtly life
and he lives his life at court, not on the land, throwing into high reli
ef a
tension between the identity of city- and country-dwellers, which we also
encountered in the roughly contemporary Asinarius.
The rules of courtly life include obedience to one’s mistress in courtly
affairs, and require promises of obedience as part of wooing. Gender
looms large in this game of obedience, with Lanval’s author Marie de
France making it plain that she favors women in control: when the two
lovers ride away to Avalun at the Lai’s conclusion, he is on her palfrey,
mounted behind her (ll. 659–661), denoting Lanval’s devotion to her.
Connotative are the delicate words with which the author Marie dis-
creetly details the first significant change in the relationship between

Lanval and his beloved. At the time they first meet in her pavilion she
is la pucele (l. 93), that is, “the virgin.” But after an hours-long dallian
on her richly caparisoned bed, she calls him her amis (l. 159), code for
physically and sexually beloved, and as the plot unfolds, she remains
correspondingly his amie (l. 187) in the game of courtly love. In the
final scene, however, Marie reverts to pucele in referring to Lanval’s
beloved, possible because Lanval had discreetly never revealed the phys-
ical nature of their union, but had only claimed to love and be loved in

return. As a result, the extent of their relationship’s intimacy remains a
secret shared by the Lai’s readers and listeners but not by Arthur and his
court, so that in this courtly context the author Marie, a sovereign mis
tress of connotative language use, allows her heroine to remain virginal
. The Lai of Lanval fits comfortably within the literary tradition of
courtly epics and makes use of standard devices of time (springtime)
and place (ideal court). Like many high medieval literary works, the Lai
invokes characters from antiquity, with Marie adverting to Semiramus
the legendary embodiment of unparalleled beauty (l. 82), the pagan
goddess Venus, Aeneas’s beloved Dido, and his wife Lavinia (ll. 585–6). Another feature of Lanval’s vaunting the love between himself and
his beautiful beloved constitutes the boast so typical of medieval epic

126 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
heroes’ rhetoric. Marie obviously recognized it as such, for she them
it when Lanval’s supernatural beloved speaks to King Arthur of la vant-
ance (the boast, l. 640). Above all, Marie writes of a fairy world parallel
to the human world: as Lanval reclines on a meadow by the side of a
river he is still within the geography of King Arthur’s court, but when
two beautiful dameiseles (l. 55) accost him and lead him to their mis-
tress’s nearby paveilluns (l. 76), that slight but significant distancing
removes Lanval from the world governed by the Round Table and leads
him into a separate and supernatural realm. As such, the Lai of Lanval
is more a prototype for fairyland fictions than for fairy tales, but it is
analyzed here because it engendered the proto-fairy tale Liom/nbruno
three centuries later. When we consider other narrative building blocks for the Lai of Lanval,
we confront a paradoxical trio of motifs that repeatedly recur in later
literary history. Lanval’s beloved promises that she will come to him,
but be invisible and inaudible to others (nulls huem fors vus ne me verra/
ne ma parole nen orra, ll. 168–9), that she is responsible for his sudden
and unending wealth (ll. 201–16), and that he alone has the capacit
y to
gain entry to her separate and ideal world, whether on his own steed (ll.
39–56) or on her palfrey (ll. 657–60). These narrative actions
functionally to the magical motif trio of the cloak of invisibility, the
ever-full purse, and the seven-league boots in later fairy tale history, but
Marie does not formulate them as specifically magic objects. They remain

fairyland processes.
Liombruno and piazza entertainment
The verse manuscript Liombruno first saw the light of day about 300
years after Marie de France composed the Lai of Lanval. Attributed to
Cirino d’Ancona, it resembles the Lai of Lanval, is commonly held to
have been derived directly from it, is structured in two parts of about
equal length, and shares numerous motifs with the Lai of Lanval:
1. an eagle (a golden legionary eagle in the Lai of Lanval, an eagle who carries Liombruno from an island to Aquilina’s kingdom in Liombruno);
2. barons who plot the hero’s downfall (Lanval, line 332, 397, 418, 428; Liombruno Part I);
3. a superbly beautiful fairy princess, described in courtly and erotic mode in the Lai of Lanval, and rendered in standard late medieval
rhetoric in Liombruno;
4. the trope of never leaving the princess’s side;

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 127
5. a requirement to produce the beautiful princess: in the Lai of Lanval as
proof of his boast that the least of her retinue is more beautiful than
Queen Guinevere and in Liombruno solely as proof of his boast;
6. and two beautiful damsels who precede the hero’s beloved (twice in the Lai of Lanval, once in Liombruno).
Here, then, is the plot of Liombruno: A large demon (uno grande dimonio, stanza 4, l. 6) offers a poor fisherman
money and a rich catch in return for one of his sons. But when deliv-
ered to the demon, the nearly seven-year old boy makes the sign of the
cross, causing the demon to flee. Soon thereafter a bird in the shape
of an eagle-demoiselle carries him to a distant castle, where it becomes

a beautiful ten-year old damsel, Princess Aquilina, to whom the waif
courteously expresses his thanks and into whose service he then enters.
She waits eight years while he studies and masters courtly skills; when
they are 18 and 15 respectively, she is moved by physical desire for him
and they become wife and husband, living together in her impregnable
castle. However, Liombruno falls into melancholy and wishes to visit
his family. Princess Aquilina grants him a year’s leave, giving him a
magic ring that will provide him with everything he needs. Liombruno returns home, bestows rich gifts on his family, and
learns that the King of Granada will award the hand of his daugh-
ter in marriage to the winner of a tournament. He asks the ring for
strong armor and a fine charger and sets off for Grenada, where he
enters the lists, triumphs, and wins the princess. The Saracen barons,
however, doubting Liombruno’s origins and marital status, trick
him into boasting that his lady is the most beautiful in the world,
and require him to produce Princess Aquilina as proof. Acclaimed as
supremely beautiful, she rebukes him as a falso renegato, dispossesses
him of the magic ring’s powers, and leaves him without arms, steed,
or wealth. Abandoned deep in a forest, Liombruno encounters two
dangerous robbers and Part I ends unresolved. Part II opens with a summary of Part I, and then returns to
Liombruno among robbers who are disputing the division of their
booty: a cloak of invisibility, boots that bring swift passage to distant
places, and a pile of gold florins. Liombruno addresses the robbers in
Latin; the robbers ask him to help them divide the spoils. Liombruno
tries on the boots, dons the cloak, scoops up a fistful of florins, and
disappears into the night, leaving behind the dumbfounded robbers
who kill each other in a rage at their loss.

128 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Liombruno begins his search for Madonna Aquilina. At an inn,
he encounters well-traveled merchants, tells them of his quest,
and learns about a place that only the wind knows how to reach.
Perhaps, one merchant suggests, he can be helped along his way by
an old hermit, to whom the winds return each evening. Booted and
invisible, Liombruno soon reaches the hermit, gains his trust, and
explains his plight. One of the 71 winds advises and guides him until
they come within sight of the mountain where Aquilina lives, at
which point Liombruno continues alone. He opens one wing of the
double-doored portal by unspecified magic (per incantamento), finds
six dragons, kills them, and joins his lady at table. Invisible, he eats

from her platter, leaving her astonished that food disappears with-
out her having eaten it. She sighs, audibly praying God to protect
Liombruno. Then he places the formerly magical ring on the meat
tray, a gran meraviglia that induces melancholy in Madonna Aquilina.
She retires, followed closely by the invisible Liombruno, and climbs
into bed, again followed by Liombruno. Sensing a man’s presence,
she shrieks, but on the third occasion, she uncloaks him and asks
how he got there and set her heart on fire. Then he tells her every-
thing; she calls him “my soul” (anima mia) and confesses her misery.
They kiss and make the peace of love. The text says that the great
joy (la gran liticia) that they made together cannot be put into words,
although it provides a reprise of their physical joy in each other in
courtly terms (insieme pur d’amore). The text concludes with a simple
statement: this story has been furnished for your honor ( questa storia è
fornita al vostro onore).
This telling of Liombruno from manuscript MS Antonelli 521 in the
Ariostea Communal Library in Ferrara (published in I Novellieri Italiani
[304–39]), is thought to date from about 1470, that is, three full c
after Marie of France composed the Lai of Lanval. The two works share
the same general plot: love between a man without earthly resources
and a supernatural beloved from a barely accessible magic realm. The
earthly lover offends his beloved, who then distances herself and cuts
him off from the magical benefits she earlier conferred. The hero’s
mortal endangerment (Lai of Lanval) or his daunting quest (Liombruno)
softens the beloved’s anger and leads to their joyful reunion. With her sensuously immediate and corporeally recognizable youth-
ful beauty, Madonna Aquilina is every bit as enchanting as Lanval’s
supernatural beloved. And although Liombruno is but the child of
a poor fisherman, he enters pagehood at the age of seven, at which

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 129
point he is already capable of expressing his thanks “courteously”

(cortesemente, stanza14). This is also the point at which the text tips
away from a populist approach and back toward its chivalric and ruling
class origins, with Liombruno accepting courtly servitude: “Milady, I am
well pleased that I will always be your servant (Madona, io sum bem
content, vostro servente sempre serone” [stanza 14]). He spends eight years
studying to achieve the skills that will admit him to knighthood and
promote him to a socially acceptable marriageability. Liombruno’s step
into a well-established courtly position, that is, into a page’s apprentice-
ship for a hoped-for knighthood, marks a speedy and dramatic change
in his condition. Formerly untutored and ignorant, he now becomes a
pupil in a universe in which his virginal mentor waits eight years for
him, all of which happens in the space of a single stanza.
The courtly part of Liombruno’s performance is brief, and is firmly
anchored in earlier medieval tropes, such as a princess who freely
expresses her desire; the necessity for a man who is to marry a princess
to be her social equal; a “boast” that occurs five times in a sing
le stanza
(as se vanti, il vanto, davanti, se vantasse, il vanto ) to confirm a plot device
that was a routine dramatic turning point in medieval epics (Bonafin,
1993: 575–608); generous dispensation of gifts “with perfect love
” (stanza
29); and above all an insistent characterization of physical love as “
Courtly metaphors such as “he’s a lily, she’s a rose” (stanza 17), and
Liombruno’s lady being a ferma colonna of his heart are also present, as are
motifs from courtly and chivalric literature, like a Saracen tournament,

formulaic transfixing and unhorsing, and a magic ring that resonates
with a lady’s love and fidelity. Earlier medieval literary sensibilities are
clearly present, with Princess Aquilina, a beautiful 18, moved by physic
desire (“Infra mio core non averòmai posa, se io non facio la mia volumptade:
io voglio essere sua legitima sposa” 310: 17, 4–6) nearly equaling the longing
that Asinarius’s princess felt for her donkey prince. (See Chapter 4.)
The composition of social clusters in towns and cities differed from
those in courtly households, where official agenda were set by the rulin
classes, however joyfully or defiantly transgressive occasional behavior

might appear to be. Consequently, other aspects of Liombruno express
the values and experiences of a world far different from that of the Lai of
Lanval, and consequently Liombruno foregrounds different conditions.
For instance, the kind of urban audience usual for a late medieval urban

storysinger would be familiar with the merchants that Liombruno told
his parents he’d been with before returning home. Whether that urban
audience consisted of hard-put apprentices or hardworking artisans,
they would have thought merchants, as their betters, might well be rich.

130 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
And indeed, the idea of merchants is plot-determining in Liombruno,
when, for instance, one of them informs its hero about how to find
Madonna Aquilina’s kingdom. Another aspect of medieval experience is
implicit in the suspicions about Liombruno voiced by the Saracen king’
barons, which we may understand as poor listeners’ understanding
the impossibility of a fisherman’s son marrying a princess or a Saracen
king’s daughter, with or without eight years of knightly training. Hence,
in Liombruno the Saracen king’s barons withdraw to discuss their doubts
about Liombruno’s prior life and current condition. Another hint
about Liombruno’s intended audience lies in the absence of a wedding
ceremony between Madonna Aquilina and Liombruno. Artisans and
shopkeepers wouldn’t have required a church ceremony to enter into
matrimony in the 1400s, and Aquilina and Liombruno’s becoming wife
and husband without benefit of clergy once she has expressed her desire
for him would have been a familiar action in their own lives, although
for a princess like Aquilina marriage without a wedding would have
been historically unthinkable. We even find traces of the visual world
of the 1400s that differ significantly from those in the Lai of Lanval’s
medieval surroundings: the angels in Liombruno seem to be of a piece
with the references to Jesus and God – an integral part of the imager
y of
the fifteenth-century world, attested to by contemporaneous sculptures
and paintings. And finally there are Liombruno’s dragons. By the late
1400s, high medieval chivalric epics had taken to the streets along with

their dragons, which had become courageous heroes’ generic oppo-
nents. Liombruno’s dragons don’t merit one word of description: the
author alludes neither to their color, texture, nor to their temperature,
despite their fiery breath. As familiar narrative figures, they were made
threatening by their number – six in all. They are secular supernatur
unlike the religiously tinged demons in Chapter 5. It is also illuminating to consider what Liombruno’s audience seems to
have been unfamiliar with. They might have known dragons well, but
they needed to have a magic ring explained to them, which is achieved
by having Madonna Aquilina detail precisely what it can do: at his
request, it will provide everything he wants, such as money, clothing,
food, defensive and offensive weaponry, and transportation ( A questo
anello ciò che tu dimandi,/ a tut oil tuo volerre tu l’averai:/ dinari, roba et
ancora vivandi,/ ma queste cosset u non palegiarai;/ se pere tua bocca questo
spandi,/ arme et cavalla tu perderai (stanza 23). Magic that is familiar to modern readers often seems unfamiliar to
the Liombruno audience, as the author specifies that unexpected events
are brought about per arte or per encantamente. The cloak of invisibility

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 131
and the magical boots, he explains, work because of their virtù, their
essential powers, but the expression of those powers such as invisibilit
or speedy travel elicit wonder and amazement, unlike their acceptance
in the fairy tales that would appear in the sixteenth century, by which
time they had become routine.
Liombruno presents abundant evidence of shifts in social ordering
from the courtly Lai of Lanval. In the earlier Lai, readers and listen-
ers were repeatedly reminded of a knight’s unceasing obedience to his
lady, with dire consequences for revealing their secret love. In contrast,
the manuscript Liombruno prohibits the hero from staying away from
Madonna Aquilina for more than a year, with no reference to the hero’s
having broken a prohibition. Laurence Harf-Lancner discusses medieval
prohibitions, their breaking, and their unhappy consequences as part of
the Melusine tradition, and perhaps we must understand the fuzziness
into which Liombruno’s transgression fades in the print version discussed
below as part of an automatic expectation of a prohibition-as-trope on
the part of author and audience. On the other hand, there is much in
Liombruno that suggests that even when a prohibition is incorporated
into a plot, obedience as a male category of behavior toward his lady has
significantly faded in overall narrative importance by 1470, thus markin
yet another change between the Lai of Lanval and Liombruno.
When Liombruno’s behavior is transgressive, Madonna Aquilina’s
response differs from the heroine’s swift punishment of her lover for his
disobedience in the Lai of Lanval. In the late 1400s Madonna Aquilina
both regrets and laments punishing Liombruno for his infidelity, an
instance of a literary diminishing of women’s empowerment that began
to overtake female characters in brief late medieval writings between
1450 and 1550 (Bottigheimer, 2000). Little wonder, then, that obedi-
ence to his lady plays a small role as a category in the 1470 manuscript
romance (Harf-Lancner, 1984: 243–61). The language of Liombruno, largely denotative, also diverges from that
of the Lai of Lanval, which was often connotative. Most of the writing in
Liombruno directly depicts actions. For instance, when Aquilina herself
arrives at the Saracen court, she is acclaimed as supremely beautiful, b
although her presence there reunites her with the man who loves her
desperately, she leaves decisively and abruptly, as the script notes (poi se
parti e non fece dimore, 46, 4). Naming deserves special mention in conjunction with language use,
for it is striking that Lanval’s beloved is never referred to or addressed
by a given name. She remains, instead, an ideal presence whose beauty,
grace, and wealth have no reality here on earth, even in King Arthur’

132 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
court. She and her maidservants are categorically beautiful, preternatu-
rally graceful, and supernaturally wealthy. In that respect they represent
cultural categories, even though Lanval’s beloved is physically real
enough to change from a virgin to a woman on the bed in her pavil-
ion. Liombruno’s beloved, in contrast, bears the name of her aquiline
alter ego. As milady (madonna) Aquilina she first appears as a beautiful
ten-year-old, later as an even more beautiful 18-year-old, and finally –

before she is reunited with Liombruno – as a sorrowing woman.
Religious usage offers yet another set of contrasts between the Lai of
Lanval and Liombruno. A formal invocation to a superna deità (1, 1–2)
opens Part II of Liombruno, and is closely followed by the abandoned
child’s making a ritual sign of the cross to save himself from “the demon,”

as the devil is referred to. Madonna Aquilina’s beauty is cast in language
familiar from foundational religious narrative: “Look at me,” she
as she changes into a damsel, as beautiful as if she had just come from
Paradise (13, 3–4). Liombruno promises to return to his beloved wit
hin a
year “if God doesn’t prevent me” (stanza 22). As far as Christianity is con-
cerned, Liombruno invokes his religion as proof of his reliability when
he appears unannounced on the hermit’s doorstep. The Virgin Mary, who
two centuries earlier had routinely and triumphally delivered suffering
women from their (often male-induced) woes, has changed in Liombruno
into a lady of sorrows. A ministering angel appears in the text (stanza
34–6), which ends with a brief invocation to the divine. Although we in the modern world come to both the Lai of Lanval
and Liombruno by reading their texts, in their own days both could
function as a basis for dramatic performance. Consequently, each may
be understood as a script, because each text preserves ample evidence
of its function as a support for live – and lively – performance.
instance, the first part of Liombruno ends in a cliffhanger, as the hero,
bereft of magical aid, stands defenseless among violent highwaymen.
The palpable suspense is obviously meant to tantalize an audience into
remaining, or returning, for Part II, a conclusion confirmed when the
performer-narrator says – or reads – the words, “I’ll tell y
ou what hap-
pens in the [next] song.” The words we read in the twenty-first century once provided a clever
performer-narrator with an opportunity to play the rough and tough
robbers’ voices against Liombruno’s disingenuously clueless ques-
tions, which the author further says were posed in Latin! Why claim
that Liombruno addressed the robbers in Latin, particularly since the
performer-narrator puts no Latin on the page? Probably because only
typesetters taking an hour off from pressing lead letters into a forme

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 133
for a religious tract would have understood Latin, with the rest of the
piazza auditors recognizing its sounds only from church ritual. After
all, a Latin-speaking knight born the son of a fisherman was a patently
absurd concept. Equally amusing was Liombruno’s question to the
robbers, given their argument about dividing the spoils. “What might
you be doing on these paths?” How the performer-narrator could have
grimaced as he spoke the words, “Nothing we’re going to tell you,
low” (322: 4, 8). With the scene set, the tension mounts, with abundant
opportunity for comic voiceovers. The three robbers accuse one another
of conspiring with Liombruno, they resort to fisticuffs, and they kill
each other, while Liombruno makes off with cloak, boots, and booty.
Against this raucously humorous background the performer-narrator
addresses his audience as “Milords,” even though they were much mo
likely to identify with Liombruno’s introductory words: “I find,” he
declaims, “that poverty impedes many individuals, depriving them of
liberty and bringing them to despair.” The continuing script exemplifies
the introduction: a poor man is brought to such straits that he is ready

to give his son to “the demon.”
The opening summary anticipates listeners’ empathy with the effects
of poverty on a poor man. The stanzas that follow assume a listener’s
intimate knowledge of poverty, but not of courtly habits, which the nar-
rator explains in detail. These contrasting narrative stances suggest th
the performer-narrator prepared a script specifically for an urban audi-
ence with a shared experience of penury. The script has the poor fisher-
man called “the good man” (even though he hands over his youngest

son to a demon in return for fish and money), with the demon’s words
labeled “false counsel,” although the benefits of the fisherman’
s bargain
with the demon are cast as a boon to the fisherman’s family. In addi-
tion, the author points out that the bargain caused the fisherman great
pain, apparently to confirm listeners’ sympathy with the sufferings o
the poor. Humor marks another great shift from the mood of the Lai of Lanval
to Liombruno. Calling Liombruno il baron di bonitade is slyly ironic. The
thieving bandits who set upon one another once Liombruno absconds
with their boots, cloak, and dinars produce pure antic comedy. Some of the Lai of Lanval’s socio-economic characteristics, such as a
barter economy, still exist in Liombruno, where it is written that there
isn’t money enough on earth to buy the boots and cloak (stanza 6):
the cloak itself is worth a royal crown (stanza 8), the boots a thousa
mountains of dinars (stanza 41). There is good reason for the anachro-
nistic language of barter and equivalence within a commercial urban

134 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
environment. Consider, for instance, that the very nature of manuscript
reproduction impeded change, that the fact of a lector facing copyists
meant reading from an existing manuscript, while his words were writ-
ten down. In the normal course of events, a manuscript’s words would
be changed only if the lector were reading from a copy that had been
intentionally altered by purposeful editing – or if he or the scribes

made an error. With its manuscript roots deep in the medieval courtly
tradition, successive Liombruno manuscripts would reasonably continue
to reproduce narrative elements appropriate to that tradition, even as
changes might be made to the script to be performed in public. Or per-
haps the presence of competing worldviews in Liombruno reflects a dual
audience. And because significant change had taken place in people’s
experience of the world between 1170 and 1470, what had been called
“gold and silver” in the Lai of Lanval became “florins” in Liombruno, and
sometimes those florins are spoken of as a means of the hero’s purchase
or acquisition, as was the case in commerce in 1470s Italian towns and
cities. Even as the contents of the manuscript Liombruno were being
declaimed in urban piazzas, the tale it told was being printed and dis-
tributed by the hundreds all over northern Italy, just as was the case
with scores of other popular narratives. Like them, Liombruno was a
bridge from pre-print medieval practice to the world of early modern
Italian popular print and magic tales
Print liberated stories. 2 That simple statement stands for a sea change
between 1450 and 1550 in stories’ availability to the general pub-
lic. Before 1450, religious and secular stories, saints’ lives, chiva
romances, and courtly ones had all been available as manuscripts. But
even the cheapest unillustrated manuscripts were relatively expensive
and hence only buyable by a limited readership. As far as the common
man or woman’s knowledge of such stories in the pre-print era was
2 Elizabeth Eisenstein’s studies, The Printing Press as an Agent of Change (1979)
and The Printing Revolution in Early Modern Europe (1983), initiated widespread
discussion of the power of print. Revisionist views such as those in Jos
eph A.
Dane, The Myth of Print Culture (2003:10–20) expand Eisenstein’s evidence base,
but her underlying position remains valid and illuminating. When the tec
ogy of print was applied to popular literature, its magnitude introduced
new sets
of ideas, and the contents of its printed products confirmed shifts in t

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 135
concerned, it was in public locations, such as a marketplace or a church
that they came to know any story with a sustained plot that was longer
than an anecdote, a fabliau, or a joke.
The technology of movable print and the hundred- and thousand-
fold reproduction of stories that print made possible after the 1450s
enabled the common man and woman to enjoy stories like those
performed by story-singers (Benucci et al., eds., 2002) in private (“in
camera”) as well as in public (“in piazza”), since from the
1450s onward
somebody with a few extra pennies in their pocket could carry a story
home after having heard it in the marketplace. Within a few decades,
that was happening on a daily basis in northern Italy. To judge from
surviving imprints (Passano, 1868; rpt. 1973; Lommatzsch, 1950–51),
both chivalric and courtly romances were among the most popular
publications in the late 1400s. The evident appetite for stories in the languages that people spoke –

not in Latin or Greek, but in Italian, French, English, German, and the
major dialects of those languages – fostered a market in translations

into those vernaculars from Latin authors like Apuleius and Ovid (see
Chapter 2). The Italian language represents a special case. Between 145
and 1550, translations from Latin into Italian were five to ten times
more frequent than from Latin into other European languages, and in
those years stories like Pyramus and Thisbe were adapted wholesale from
their Latin originals for the Italian market in cheap booklets. Of the c
sics, Pyramus and Thisbe was hardly the only example. The 1557 Historia
di Giasone et Medea (Lommatzsch 3: 27–39) told of their bitter marital
strife and Medea’s retributive use of magic. Ovid’s Caccia di Melagro
(Hunt of Melagro) from Book VII of the Metamorphoses, his Orfeo e
Eurydice, Perseus, and Lucretia (Lommatzsch, 3: 52–63; 3:64–73; and 3:
74–83) also formed part of the market in popular print between 1450
and 1550, albeit in Christianized forms that would startle contemporary
readers accustomed to classic versions. The history of another tale, “Beauty and the Beast,” shows how print
and printing presses disseminated medieval plots over long distances,
suddenly and simultaneously. Boccaccio had begun the process: he
discovered “Cupid and Psyche” in the mid-1300s, awakening it from
centuries of slumber. In 1469, little more than a century later, “Cupid
and Psyche” was printed for the first time, in Latin, and sold throug
Europe. (Copies of this editio princeps survive in major libraries.) Within
about a decade printed books thus spread far and wide the story of a
beautiful princess who was under the impression that she had married
a monstrous serpent. In country after country, printers and publishers

136 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
recognized Apuleius’s Latin novella as a good story with broad sales
potential, and so they translated it from Latin into local languages. Ea
translation produced slightly differing local versions, which over the
centuries became ever more individual (Bottigheimer 1989a, 1989b).
The same popular printing process also disseminated identical accounts
of the magic in Ovid’s and Apuleius’s narratives simultaneously and
instantaneously throughout western Europe.
Until now I’ve used the term “popular print” without defining i
Popular print denotes books, pamphlets, and broadsheets printed in
the languages spoken by ordinary people rather than in elite, learned,
scholarly, or liturgical languages such as Latin, ancient Greek, or
Hebrew. Furthermore, in the earliest period of print, a “book” could be
as insubstantial as a single sheet of paper folded three times to make a

16-page pamphlet, or a fourth time to make a smaller sized 32-page one.
If a story were lengthy, its telling might require several sheets, which,
when folded, were stitched together to make a thicker book of some
multiple of 8, 12, 16, or 32 pages. Long books, however, were a rarity
in early popular print. Hundreds upon hundreds of cheap books printed for a broad market
have survived from the years between 1450 and 1500 from the Italian
peninsula and from other parts of Europe. Even more are available
from the 50-year period from 1500 to 1550. In their popular print form
from the fifteenth and sixteenth centuries, the surviving tales, includ-
ing Lionbruno (Levi, 1914: 344–8), give a lively picture of the stories
that ordinary people were exposed to. They also demonstrate that the
components for early modern fairy tales were growing in number and
density, and that secular magic was in the process of being reoriented
vis-à-vis religion.
Public storytelling in Northern Italy
Italy had long been home to public storytelling, and – as indicated in
the early part of this chapter – it principally took place in the pia
zzas at
the heart of Italian towns and cities. Public storytelling reached all lev-
els of society, because it was openly available to whoever had the time,
or to whoever took the time, to pause in their daily rounds to listen to

storytellers or storysingers.
3 Stories and the time taken to read them is a central question that few s
lars have considered. An important essay that does so is Stephanie West’s
“KEPKIΔΣΠAPAMYΘIA? For whom did Chariton Write?” (2003).

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 137
Once heard, a storyteller’s or storysinger’s stories could be told again
at home, because they could be retained. “Retained” has a special,

and palpable, meaning. Before the age of print, story retention had
depended on an individual’s personal memory of an oral telling or of a
public reading or else had depended on their personal possession of a
manuscript copy of the story that had been performed or presented. The
manuscript copy used by a storysinger, on the other hand, could – to
judge from surviving copies – be either a finished piece of literature or a
prompt book that was open to improvisation (Everson, 2001: 118). But
with the advent of the printing press, storytellers and storysingers were
not only paid for the stories they performed – the words “narrare”
“contare” often appear in the printed texts – they could also sell copies
of the stories they told. Thus a performed story that was heard in the
marketplace could be carried home by the listener, could be re-read, and
could be re-told in virtually the same words that the public storyteller
or storysinger had used in reading from his own printed copy of a tale. The fact that storytelling in public performances was a common
practice in northern Italy is enormously important for the history of
European storytelling, because the short works performed by storytellers
and storysingers provide direct evidence both of the content of public
performances of printed tales for a popular listenership and of their sub-
sequent use by a popular readership. Legions of these little booklets have
survived. Hernando Colon (1488–1539), son of Christopher Columbus
(Colon), was fascinated by them, collected them, and bequeathed his
50,000 early sixteenth-century popular imprints to his native Seville,
where they now rest in the Biblioteca Colombina (Rubini, 2003: 35).
The Spanish-born Colon was one of several collectors of Italian popular
print in early modern Europe. Avid Italian, French, and English aficio-
nados also bought and kept large numbers of fifteenth- and sixteenth-
century storie and canzonette.
4 In northern Europe, the Ducal Library at
Wolffenbüttel houses an extensive collection of popular Italian print
from the period 1450–1550. Lesser European court libraries also once
had and often still have collections of early print. In the late 1800s a
early 1900s, research into early popular print generated a lively interest
that then lapsed until the late 1970s, from which point it has steadily
4 For a hint of some now-dispersed collections, see Novati, 1913:18–19
and the
library citations in Passano’s 1868 listings. Private collections that included nar-
ratives (storie e canzonetti) noted here include the Italian Strozzi (11); the English
Grenville (16); and the French La Vallière (11).

138 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Catalogs of original library holdings together with later reprints of
individual texts demonstrate the kinds of tales being performed before l
medieval publics. The romance of Pyramus and Thisbe’s star-crossed love
was known in medieval France thanks to copies of the French-language
Ovide moralisé and its Latin successor Ovidius moralizatus, the version used
in schools. The Italian Una bella istoria di nobili amanti Pirrame e Tisbe
probably owed its existence to translations of this Ovidian tale from
Latin, since Ovid’s Metamorphoses was readily available to every printer
who wanted to draw on it to produce a “new” popular narrative for
non-Latin-reading book-buyers. Romances of love and marriage among
royal couples with a happy outcome – unlike poor Pyramus and Thisbe’
tragic end – were frequent (Everson, 2001). In La Elegante et Bella Historia
degli nobilissimi amanti Paris et Viera (Venice: Ioanne da Trino, 1492),
a royal couple remained childless until – an instance of miraculous m
cal intervention – God took pity on them and they were able to produce
their beautiful daughter Viera, who eventually married Paris. The story’s
international genealogy followed late medieval and early modern cultural

and literary pathways: a fourteenth-century Catalan manuscript was trans-
lated into French (1432), English (1485, by Caxton), and Italian (1
525). It
was printed in Florence (1476), Treviso (1482), and Venice (Joh. da Trino
1492), and remained in print in Italy until the mid-1600s (Lommatzsch
36–7). Authors of popular print were multifarious: Pope Pius II (14
composed another such romance, published as Historia di due amanti
(Milan: Lionardi Vegio, 1510), now in Harvard’s Houghton Library. Chivalric romances also existed beyond Italy in western Europe as
a whole. They represented for the most part the martial exploits of
Merovingian and Carolingian heroes, such as Charlemagne, Roland,
and their companions (Thomas, 1920/1969: 31; Lucía Megías, 2000;
Everson, 2000). By the time print democratized chivalric romances,
tales like the Italian Buovo d’Antona already existed in France as Beuve
d’Anton and were being translated into English as Bevis of Southampton.
In Spain chivalric romances were well established in the world of print
by the 1490s and flourished in the 1500s (Lucía Megias, 2000). Ther
was much back and forth borrowing as printers imported foreign
chapbook romances and nativized them. One instance among many
is the Spanish Tirant lo Blanch, the first 27 chapters of which were
based on the English Guy of Warwick Part II (Thomas, 1920/1969:34).
Venice, with its scores, even hundreds of printing presses, produced
chivalric romances not only for home consumption, but also for audi-
ences abroad. The Spanish El libro de santo Iusto Paladino de Franza, for
example, was printed there in 1490 and was only one of many such
Spanish-language Venetian imprints (Lommatzsch vol. 2). Chivalric

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 139
romances’ widespread popularity also made them good material for
spoofs. Imagine La Polenta (1530), which tells a tragic history in comic
verse of how Charlemagne’s noble paladin Roland died from eating too
much polenta (Lommatzsch 1: 171–4)!
Magic contrasted starkly with daily life, and there was plenty of magic
in popular print. A magic sack that produced in abundance whatever
its poor owner needed was circulating in the late 1400s and early 1500s
(Rubini, 2003: 31), with incunabula appearances in (putative or real)
grims’ accounts of travels to the Levant. As a freestanding brief nar
it was published as the Historia di tre Giouani: et di tre Fate (Tale of the
Three Youths and of the Three Fairies) in Venice, Brescia, and Florence
(Rubini, 2003: 27–8). (One early copy remains in Seville’s Biblioteca
Colombina.) This tale flourished and spread in the following centuries,

going to Augsburg for its first German printing and ultimately becoming
the beloved German-language Fortunati Glücksäckel, in which a poor boy
gets possession of a magic purse that produces everything he desires.
Storytellers and storysingers at work
Let us try to recreate the situation of a storyteller’s or storysinger’s
public performance in a public square somewhere in northern Italy. As
the storyteller began his tale, the piazza would have been a busy place:
hawkers cried and shouted their wares; wagons and perhaps carriages
rumbled loudly across the cobbled square on iron-clad wooden wheels;
people clacked past on wooden clogs; one or two prostitutes might have
ambled by and mocked gawping listeners; passersby speaking above
the hubbub continued on their way without stopping, interrupting or
interfering with the performance; children not in one of the town’s
communal schools for reading and arithmetic would have run about
squealing and shouting. All in all, storytelling and storytellers had to
compete with noisy surroundings for their listeners’ attention. Stories told in a piazza also shared mental space, with the result that
storytellers aligned the style of their tales with that of stories people ha
heard in church. In consequence, in the transitional era between 1450
and 1550, stories typically began with an invocation to “Our Lord,”

that is, nostro signore. The printed text of Octinello e Julia provides but one
example among scores of such opening words (Lommatzsch 1: 29). Brevity characterizes Italian stories in popular print in this period,
with performance time rarely exceeding an hour from beginning to end.
The time required for a story’s telling can be viewed as a general indica-
tor for the audience a storyteller addressed. Lengthy romances lasting
several hours could only be presented for leisured listeners, for whose
identity surviving texts often provide clues in the form of references to

140 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
household or knightly objects that were a part of the leisured listeners

lives or to concepts that inhered in their expectations and worldview
(Picone, 1984: 90; Zumthor, 1975: 219–36).
The textual structure of a popular print narrative was simplicity itself
It had a small and repetitive vocabulary and an equally simple syntax. Its
forward moving plot, unencumbered by subplots, facilitated aural com-
prehension. Generalities rather than specific descriptions were common.
Characters often remained unnamed well into the stories; towns and
countries were similarly nameless or else so distant as to be unknowable

or unrecognizable. Plots began and ended without dates, with the passage

of time impossible to calculate on any standard calendar. The heroes’
personae were, in effect, a simple exhibition space for spectacular events.
A look at the books produced by Venetian printer-publishers makes it
clear that in the 80 years between 1470 and 1550 all kinds of books from

the Christianized Roman plots of Ovid’s Metamor phoses and Apulei us’s
Golden Ass to the then ultra-modern contin uations of Boiardo’s and
Ariosto’s Orlando romances were available, and repeatedly reprinted.
In the commercial and independent-minded city-state of Venice,
popular print was good business, and there were few strictures on its
publication. Spain’s more prescriptive governmental authorities, on the
other hand, regulated vain and profane little books among their own
population (but see Chapter 8) and kept them out of the hands (and
minds) of the New World’s local readers altogether. A royal Spanish
decree of 1531 declared that Indians and other inhabitants of the Indies

should only be presented with stories that touched on the Christian
religion and on the virtue manifest in them, while adventures such as
Amadis of Gaul along with its magic should be prohibited.
5 This is Michelangelo Picone’s apt description of heroes in romances performed
by contari. He continues, “disgiunta da qualsiasi motivazione psicologica o
spirituale. Il personnagio-mistero del lai, sconosciuto a sé stesso prima che agli
altri, diventa nel cantare personaggtio-formula: gli elementi fondamenta
li che
costituiscono la sua personalità sono “dati” non “spiegati”
(Picone, 1984: 95).
See also Delcorno Branca, 1984: “Il cavaliere dalle Armi Incantate”
for detailed
descriptions of chivalric epics performed by storysingers.
6 “… me han informado que alas Indias pasan muchos libros de histori
as vanas y
profanas como son El Amadís y otros de esa calidad. Por ser mal ejercicio para los
indios el que se ocupen de leer cosas que no deben, yo os mando que, de
aquí en
adelante, no consintais ni deislugar a persona alguna a pasar a las Indi
as ninguno de
estos libros de historias y cosas profanas. Sólo puede pasar lo tocan
te a la religión cris-
tiana y de virtud donde se ejerciten y ocupen los indios y los otros pobladores de las
Indias.” (From Geoffrey Fox, National Writers Union, Authors Guild, Latin American
Studies Assn, 14 East 4th St, Room 812, New York NY 10012 212–505–1553.)

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 141
For newly composed stories, there were countless available models
for tales of restoration in which princes or prin cesses, sometimes kings
or queens, expelled from their royal home, experienced adventures and
suffered hardships, and then through a magical intervention of the
artificial deus ex machina sort, married a royal spouse, after which they
were restored to their just social (and economic) position. In practic
terms, tales of restoration offered profitable possibilities for the pop
press, because adventures and hardships could be expanded, added, or
deleted as required. That is, prequels, sequels, extensions to, and abbr
viations of known tales such as those in Boiardo’s and Ariosto’s Orlando
romances could be, and were, produced for continuing sales of a proven
and marketable product. The foregoing paragraphs make it clear that the printing press played
a central role in disseminating old narratives such as medieval romances

and creating new episodes for them. Moreover, print expanded the mar-
ket for stories into lower economic classes by making individual tales
cheaper to buy. Thus, potential buyers of popular print might come from
increasingly modest social and economic circumstances, and it would
have been a prudent course of action for a printer-publisher to commis-
sion a story that incorporated humble men and women as protagonists
into existing literary forms, such as romances. Whatever caused this sea
change, it obviously came about and resulted in a new knowledge of
those tales’ magic among an ever larger European population.
Lionbruno in print: magic in an almost modern fairy tale
Early attempts to depict a poor protagonist in a magic tale that ended
with a royal wedding stayed close to plot lines that already existed.
Just such an innovative melding of traditional plots about royalty with
a non-traditional cast of poor characters is evident in an early Italian

imprint, Lionbruno, which is a revealing source for late fifteenth-century
popular taste, values, and worldview, as perceived by those who com-
posed for public performance among their contemporaries. The printed book Lionbruno recapitulates its manuscript precursor
Liombruno in its plot, which put a poor boy, rather than a prince, into
the leading romantic role.
7 It maintained close connections with exist-
ing religious exempla and romances, while incorporating elements that
7 Manetti describes the hero as a “cavaliere” and its plot as an int
ermingling of
“conte mélusinien” and “conte morganien,” drawing on Harf
-Lancner (1984) for
these terms (2002: 303).

142 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
later became staples of modern fairy tales, such as a prominent use
of the number three, a youngest son, a transformation (a bird into a
beautiful damsel), a 400-day journey accomplished in a matter of min-
utes, tasks and trials, and a wedding that unites the story’s poor boy to
a girl in a castle. Nonetheless, several aspects of Lionbruno distinguish
it from early modern and modern rise fairy tales whose poor heroes
marry princesses. In the first place, it was not magic that made
Lionbruno acceptable in the heroine’s eyes, as would always be the case
in fairy tale plots as they emerged in the following century. Instead, it
was courtly accomplishments that the humble hero achieved through
eight years of careful study and practice that made him an acceptable
suitor. In the second place, Lionbruno and Aquilina’s wedding occurs
early in the tale and is separated from its happily-ever-after conclusio
by the remainder of the first half and by the entire second half of the
tale, whereas in early modern and modern fairy tales that unite an
impoverished hero or heroine to a royal consort, a wedding normally
marks a story’s culmi nation. (There are one or two exceptions among
composite fairy tales.) On the other hand, the tasks and trials that
constitute the bulk of Lionbruno have remained the stock in trade of
modern fairy tales, whether they tell of social rise or royal restor ation:
enchanted doors, a magic ring, a time-limited journey home, a prohi-
bition, an instan taneous passage to a distant destination, a crossing
over into an alien culture (Lionbruno’s visit to Saracen Granada), and
a forgotten bride.
Although Part I of the print-produced Lionbruno incorporates many
elements that would characterize early modern fairy tales from the
1550s onward, it – like the manuscript Liombruno – essentially looks
backward and reminds us of the tenacity of medieval chivalric and
courtly romance plot and content. Nothing essential changes in the
plot of the print version, and it incorporates all of the manuscript’
markers for a performative presentation, including the two-part divi-
sion characteristic of the cantare fiabesco that allowed for an inter-
mission in storysingers’ and storytellers’ performances (Bendinelli
Predelli, 1984: 130). Part II of Lionbruno opens with the hero cannily trying on the cloak of
invisibility and the seven-league boots and then picking up the money
8 Bendinelli Predelli repeatedly notes aspects of Lionbruno that depart from the
general rules of contare (1984: 135, 136, 137), but does not go as far as seeing it
as a newly diverging genre, that is, a proto-fairy tale, as I do.

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 143
and disappearing. His quest for Madonna Aquilina continues until the
resolution, when “they threw their arms about each other with the tru
est love, and upon that bed they made their peace,” a scene of connub
bliss that ends the story of Lionbruno and Madonna Aquilina (Cirino
d’Ancona, 1976: 36).
As it was told and read in the late 1400s and for decades afterward,
Lionbruno was still a medieval romance, stripped down to its bare bones
so that it could be presented in an hour or so to an audience that was
in all likelihood principally composed of laborers and artisans, men and

women who were probably taking their ease during a break from work
(Picone, 1984: 90). In this respect, both Liombruno the manuscript and
Lionbruno the printed book bore the same kind of almost-but-not-quite
relationship to modern rise fairy tales that the medieval Asinarius bears
to restoration tales. With its poor protagonist (the son of a poor fish-
erman, who marries a princess) Lionbruno was a rise fairy tale in the
making. But with the incorporation of real-world social qualifications
(training Lionbruno to be a suitable marriage partner, the king’s cau-
tion, and the barons’ realistic objections), the story did not achieve the
unquestioned (except by evil antagonists) magical transformation of
beggar boy (or girl) to royal consort that Giovan Francesco Straparola

would make a standard part of his 1550s rise fairy tale creations, where
an impoverished protagonist’s suffering was relieved when magical
intervention led to a royal wedding. A woman like Madonna Aquilina tellingly reveals some of the major
differ ences between a tale with its roots in the Middle Ages and one
with an early modern urban overlay. In brief medieval narratives, girls
and women behaved with far greater independence than was the case
in brief tales formulated after the middle of the 1500s. This was true a
over Europe, not just in Venice (Bottigheimer, 2000). In medieval brief
narratives, a noble woman often sought out a suitor, as Madonnna
Aquilina did. It was often she who determined the course of the court-
ship and the timing of the marriage, as Madonna Aquilina did. And
it was she who participated just as enthusiastically and joyfully in
sexual union, as Madonna Aquilina also did. In pre-print romances a
woman’s actions took place in conjunction with a social equal, hence
the impor tance placed on Lionbruno’s eight years of training in chiv-
alry. Only after thoroughly learning the courtly skills that Madonna
Aquilina specifies is Lionbruno asked to marry her. And we note that
she asks him. With seven documented Italian printings before 1500, the print ver-
sion of Lionbruno clearly offered a plot that hundreds, perhaps thousands,

144 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
of people bought and that many more read. Those reprints indicate that
each successive print run sold out. Unlike nearly all other popular prin
in the period, Lionbruno was the only tale in which a poor boy mar-
ried royalty in combination with (lots of) magic. It remained the sole

example of this kind of plot until the 1550s. That is, magic did not
gene rally help a poor boy or girl marry royalty in any of the decades
before Straparola published the first of his rise fairy tales in Le Piacevoli
Notti (The Pleasant Nights) in 1551. The century in which Lionbruno first appeared and continued to be
printed was a period in which the position of girls and women was
changing in brief narratives all over Europe. During the 1450–1550
literary transition, girls and women in brief narratives were losing their
narrative independence. In addition, when a poor person married roy-
alty in this period, that person’s social rise does not seem to have been a
wish-fulfilling device; instead, such an atypical and extraordinary social
rise was attenuated by what often seems to be a didactically charged
constraint. One example occurs in the 1490s Florindo e Chiarastella,
where a poor peasant boy Florindo marries Princess Chiarastella and
becomes King of Spain. It wasn’t magic that brought about this atypi-
cal union, but the necessity to demonstrate the power of a prophecy
(Lommatzsch, 1950: 1: 88). The same narrative motor drove the medieval
Jewish tale, “Solomon’s Daughter” (see Chapter 3), which is embedded
in the frame story that allows Solomon pre-eminence in earthly matters,
but emphasizes the religious message that God’s will still takes precedence
(Elstein and Lipsker, 2004; Bin-Gorion, 1976: 170–1; Bin-Gorion, 1990:
70–2). The very same message is conveyed by Henry of Huntington’s leg-
end about King Canute, in which the ocean’s incoming tide demonstrates
the limits of earthly royal power. The message that God’s limitless power
subsumes the intentions of even the most powerful earthly ruler underlie
and encloses every version of “Solomon’s Daughter” (Bottigheimer, 2010:
472–4), and thus demonstrates a commonalty among Jewish, Christian,
and Muslim perceptions of the relationship between the Divinity and
secular magic. As far as magic tales of restoration are concerned, their plots of suf-
fering princes and princesses restored with magic help to their right-
ful place remained as popular as they had been in the Middle Ages.
In response to the new market for stories among humble readers,
some got shorter, but most remained as long as the seemingly endless
Orlando books by Boiardo, Ariosto, and their continuators. Fairy tales,
whether restoration or rise, with the characteristics of modern fairy

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 145
tales, including brevity, had yet to appear, for magic effective for earthly
improvements in one’s life still belonged to divinities. 9
The effect of print
Both stylistic and structural continuity and content change mark the
history of Lionbruno. The print tale retains the manuscript version’s
iconic boasts, magic ring, boots, and cloak, and incorporates several of

its stanzas verbatim. But a number of apparently subtle but significant
changes characterize the shift into print that produced Lionbruno. From
the point of view of the slow emergence of fairy tales and their charac-
teristic forms of magic, the most thoroughgoing changes involve God,
money, and women. Popular attitudes toward divinities and supernatural powers, judging
from changes made to the print Lionbruno, were in flux. The manuscript
“demon” regularly becomes the “devil” (diavolo) in the print telling. The
manuscript is theocentric: Liombruno qualified the date of his return
by making it divinity-dependent, that is, “if God wills.” But in t
he print
version, theocentricity diminishes as men move toward center stage,
and Lionbruno himself confidently takes responsibility for his return,
saying, “That can easily be done” (Cirino d’Ancona, 1976: 22)
. The same
dilution of divine powers occurs when the print Lionbruno prepares to
go to the Saracen court: he thanks God, but asks the magic ring to equip

him for the tournament (ibid.: 26), a significant tipping toward the p
macy of secular magic, as it emerges in the following century. The change in God’s status on the pages of Lionbruno is accompanied
by an apparent paradox: the less God actually steers the world on the
pages of Lionbruno, the more rhetorical appeal there is to liturgy and
9 Jurjen van der Kooi alludes to the distinction between fairy tale elements and
fairy tales themselves in discussing structural and motivic elements of thir
century Dutch romances and a fourteenth-century play. With reference to rise
and restoration fairy tales, van der Kooi writes: “Seit dem 13. J[ahrhundert] in
den mitteln[iderländischen] lit[erarischen] Texten, die sich Erzähltypen zuord-
nen lassen, nachweisbar. Wenn sie auch noch nicht eigentliche Märchentexte
darbieten, so weisen doch bereits die Romane Karel ende Elegast (13. Jh
. … ,
Ferguut (13. Jh.) … und Walewein (ca. 1260) … strukturelle oder motivische
Verwandtschaft mit bestimmten Erzähltypen auf. In einer Episode des Torec
von Jacob von Merlant (ca. 1260) lässt sich AaTh 301: Die drei gera
Prinzessinnen erkennen, und das weltliche Spiel Esmoreit (14. J[ahrhund
zeigt auffallende U ˝
bereinstimmungen mit AaTh 652 … Inwieweit es sich hier
um Vor- oder Frühformen dieser Märchentypen handelt, ist jedoch eine offene
Frage” (2002: vol. 10: col. 25).

146 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Christian identity. The invocations that open and close, and thus frame,
Parts I and II, are longer and more detailed in the printed books than
in the manuscript versions. Moreover, the number of times that God,
Jesus, and Mary are named notably increases throughout Parts I and II
in the print version. Even the hermit becomes more religiously obser-
vant, crossing himself when Lionbruno arrives and calling on christo
and maria for protection, and being reassured when he hears Lionbruno
declare his Christian identity and call on the immaculate virgin ( verzene
pura, 22). Such rhetorical intensifications of Christian identity suggest
a range of historical possibilities. They may represent a state effort
to intensify Christian identity among listeners via their readings of
books submitted for permission to be published. Alternatively they
may hint at the printer-publisher-author’s expectation that listeners to
the performance or buyers of the printed sheets had a more self-aware
Christian identity than had been the case in earlier generations when
the manuscript version of the tale had been composed. But it might
also be the case that rhetoric was beginning to fill in a blank space le
by an increasingly secular approach to daily life. Most likely of all is
existence of multiple levels of belief in individuals and in the popula-
tion as a whole in the late 1400s, within which commercial interests led
printer-publishers to adopt a politically unexceptionable and therefore
safe position. Money offers a second point of contrast. In the manuscript Liombruno
the robbers of Part II squabble over a pile of money that is indiscrimi-
nately referred to as fiorini (in stanzas 10, 14, 23) or dinari (in stanzas 12,
23, 24). Moreover, these heaps of money are never counted up. In the
print Lionbruno, on the other hand, money routinely consists of florins,
the coin that then commonly circulated commercially. And even more
significantly, Lionbruno doesn’t steal generalized plural florins (fiorini)
from the robbers, he carries off 3,700 florins. The gold content of flor
was a then legally determined amount, 54 grains of pure gold per coin,
hence those 3,700 florins were worth at least a princely several hundred

thousand dollars. Madonna Aquilina’s authority diminishes in the print Lionbruno. This
contrasts sharply with the power wielded by the unnamed supernatural
beloved in the Lai of Lanval as well as with the manuscript Liombruno.
Her diminishment is centrally significant for early modern brief magic
tales, including fairy tales. Consider the ways in which her autonomy
lessens. In the manuscript story, marriage to Liombruno is the culmi-
nation of her physical desire (volumptade, stanza 17) for him, but in
print she circumspectly offers marriage: “May it please you to become

Magic at Court and on the Piazza 147
my husband” (ora te piazia de esser mio marito, 17). When Lionbruno
becomes melancholy, Madonna Aquilina submissively asks him why he
seems angry at her (21).
Just as girls and women are being shorn of the protection offered by
female companions in other brief narratives in the period between 1450
and 1550 (Bottigheimer, 2000), so too are Madonna Aquilina’s super-
naturally beautiful attendants deprived of their supreme and validating
beauty, leaving solely her beauty to prove the truth of Lionbruno’s boast
after the tournament and also reducing any sense of her independ-
ent separateness. In much the same way, the Virgin Mary in the print
Lionbruno has none of the power so evident in earlier Marian tales (see
Chapter 4), but is restricted to being Jesus’s mother (Part II, stanza 1). The literary character Madonna Aquilina internalizes her diminished
status in the print version by turning her regret into a self-accusation

of wrongdoing, when she laments that she committed a great sin (gran
peccata) in having deprived Lionbruno of arms and a horse; whereas
in the manuscript she had felt sad about their long separation, but
had expressed nothing but a feeling of justification in her reaction to
his betrayal. The heroine’s diminution in the print version extends
to imputing physical weakness to her body: in her sorrow she loses
consciousness and is carried to her bed (Cirino d’Ancona, 1976: 43)
Aquilina was on a slippery slope, and with her were the heroines in brief
narratives all over Europe between 1450 and 1550. It was a process that
set the scene for the harrowing dangers experienced by girls and women
who would be magically rescued by poor boys, youngest sons, fools, or
the occasional prince, as the next chapter details.

The Problematics of Magic
on the Threshold of Fairy Tale
Magic: Straparola’s Early Modern
Pleasant Nights
Giovan Francesco Straparola’s Piacevoli Notti (The Pleasant Nights) holds
surprises when it comes to magic. The kinds of magic that Straparola
introduced into his 1550s tale collection, the ways in which he did so,
and his apparent attitudes toward magic are unanticipated, as is the
disjunction between Straparola’s magic and that documented in studies
of contemporary popular magic.
The stakes were high when an author introduced magic into a tale col-
lection in the 1550s. For the previous 200 years, Boccaccio’s Decameron
had provided the primary model for tale collection style and content, a
primacy that Straparola acknowledged when he incorporated phrases as
well as whole stories from the Decameron into the Pleasant Nights. And
beyond the brilliance of Boccaccio’s stories lay Boccaccio’s Genealogy
of the Pagan Gods, with its detailed discussions of truth and magic in
fiction. Of the four types of fiction distinguished there, the fourth wa
declared to have no “truth in itself, neither in outward appearance o
hidden, as it is the invention of crazy old women” (Magnanini, 2012:

16–17). In this fiction there was no redeeming figurative or exempla
truth, only “tales about the Ogre, the Fairies, and Witches” told “around
the hearth with the young serving girls” (ibid.: 17–21). This was where
Straparola was headed with his newly composed fairy tales of restora-
tion and rise. Even though there was magic aplenty in fifteenth- and
1 In the introduction to his critical edition, Donato Pirovano discusses
the ways
in which Straparola’s fiabe in general, and his fiabe di magia in particular exem-
plify fairy tale categories as Max Lüthi describes them (2000: xxiii–xxx).
He also
focuses on the hybridity resulting from merging the traditional novella with the
fiaba di magia (ibid.: xxx). Studies of magic per se in the Italian Renaissance are
legion and are referred to in the notes below.

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 149
sixteenth-century romances, the authors of tale collections had avoided
treating the practice of magic as anything other than tomfoolery, for
the two centuries after Boccaccio’s Genealogy set out the overriding
requirements for implausibility but not impossibility (verisimilitude)
novellas. Straparola’s insertion of magic as an essential part of the plots
of his newly frametaled tales in The Pleasant Nights was thus both bold
and unprecedented. An exploration of literary magic in the context of Renaissance Venice
necessarily implicates past uses of magic in Italian romances, everyday
practices in popular culture, judicial responses by secular and religiou
institutions, and individual attitudes toward divine and satanic effi-
cacy. Further afield lie tantalizing issues about relationships between
Straparola’s magic tales and the magic in Middle Eastern tales such as
those in Thousand and One Nights (Bottigheimer, 2014). Here, however,
I will concentrate on magic within Straparola’s Pleasant Nights.
Magic manifested in Straparola’s Pleasant Nights
Straparola’s magic objects contrast sharply to daily reality: an apple
sings sweetly, water dances, birds and horses speak, and grateful animals
give helpful advice. Similarly, supernaturals like witches, fairies, a nixie,
and a necromancer – part of a dramatis personae “system,” in the words
of Donato Pirovano (2000: xxiii) – perform magic that moves the tal
heroes and heroines toward the goals they pursue. But along with his
revolutionary introduction of magic into a book that included verisimi-
lar novellas, Straparola evinces a vexed acknowledgment of the often sly

trickiness of performing magic.
The magic in Straparola’s fairy tales initially draws little attention
to itself, precisely because it is the sort of magic with which modern
readers are so familiar. But that same familiarity obscures the fact that
Straparola’s fairy tale magic differs substantially from the principal uses
to which magic was put in late Renaissance Venice, namely securing
carnal love and discovering buried treasure. Records of the sixteenth-
century Venetian Inquisition memorialize those pursuits and further detail
now alien practices, such as utilizing liturgical objects, concocting lo
potions, and counting beans (Martin, 1989; Ruggiero, 1993; Briggs, 2006).
2 In three tales characters pretend to perform magic in order to fool the
credulous –
V.4, VI.1, X.1. In each a charlatan gains advantage by making it appear t
hat he or
she has magical powers. (NB The Roman and Arabic numerals refer to the
and the story number respectively in Straparola’s tale collection.)

150 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
But instead of corresponding to those, and other popular practices
(Martin, 1989: 38–43, 192–7, 204–13), Straparola’s magic is aligned with
modern-day concepts of magic as it appears in fairy tales both south
and north of the Alps. For instance, Adamantina’s doll fills its diaper
with piles of gold coins to benefit her poor but affectionate mistress
(V.2), an act that fits comfortably within modern instances of inanimate
or non-human beings’ magical enrichment of the deserving poor. As
in modern fairy tales, Straparola’s doll has both affect and intention,
and when angered, bites into an offender’s nether parts, remaining
tightly attached until her mistress persuades her to relent. Similarly s
motivated inanimate creatures like the singing apple and dancing water
in the story of Ancilotto and Chiaretta’s three wondrously gold-adorned
children demonstrate an indwelling magic by performing like living,
witting creatures, judging morality and bringing a wicked perpetrator
to justice (IV.3).
Straparola’s love magic is equally alien to the Renaissance inventory
of magic objects and practices (Ruggiero, 1993; Duni, 2007: 54–5, 61
Neither do healing conjurations by parallels, signing the cross, or bor-
rowing stories from saints’ lives (Duni, 2007: 64, 68; Martin, 1989:

144–7) appear in The Pleasant Nights, nor do magic rings, seven-league
boots, and invincible swords have any place in his tales, even though
they are hallmarks of the medieval romances still popular in his day.
On occasion, Straparola even seems to avoid magic altogether, insert-
ing a no-nonsense cloak covered with real-world mirrors
3 instead of
the hallowed and more magical cloak of invisibility, grounding the
mirror-laden cloak more firmly in the real world by having an ordinary
innkeeper give precise directions for its use. Of Straparola’s magically speaking animals, some communicate
worldly wisdom, as in the world of traditional wisdom literature. For
the third tale told on the twelfth night, he borrowed “De puteolano
qui animalium loquelam intelligebat” ( Tale No. 62 ) from Girolamo
Morlini’s 1520 Novellae. Its hero learns from a rooster’s words how to
bring his fractious wife into submission and thereby save his own life.
This kind of animal speech exemplifies not magic, but as Boccaccio
put it in his Genealogy of the Pagan Gods, the “outer bark” of ordinary
instruction in worldly experience (Magnanini, 2012: 16). On the other
hand, Straparola also introduces magical animal helpers who are fully
3 The motif itself recalls and dimly reflects the polished shield that Per
seus used
to approach Medusa as well as the mythical shield’s function, namely, saving the
life of its bearer.

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 151
aware of their ability to assist struggling heroes and heroines: they
include an intentionally helpful white dove who fetches a vial of danc-
ing water for Fluvio and Acquirino (IV.3) and a white snake who confers
beauty, grace, perfection, and the ability to produce precious jewels and
sweet flowers from hair and hands (III.3), as well as an enchanted hor
who, with conscious awareness of the importance of his help, not only
transports a hero from Tunis to Cairo, but gives detailed advice about
his further journey to Damascus:
“‘Go back to the sultan and beg him to give you a letter patent
addressed to the captain-general of his army who is now laying siege
to Damascus, in which letter he shall write to the general an express
command that, as soon as he shall have seen and read the letter pat-
ent sealed with the sultan’s great seal, he shall forthwith raise the
siege of the city, and give to you money and fine clothing and arms
in order that you may be able to prosecute with vigor and spirit the
great enterprise which lies before you. And if peradventure it should
happen, during your voyage thitherward, that any person or any
animal of whatever sort or condition should entreat you to do them
service of any kind, take heed that you perform the favor which may
be required of you, nor, as you hold your life dear to you, refuse to
do the service asked for.’” (Straparola, 1898: 2: 277–8)
A lengthy address like this reminds readers of the central importance in

Straparolean magic tales, as in many medieval magic tales, of the neces-
sity for heroes to remember and carry out detailed instructions on the
way to gaining a reward. Other animals’ magical assistance involves an exchange of services, as
is typified by the bargain reached between a talking tuna and Peter, the
foolish fisherman who catches him (III.1):
“‘Ah! My dear brother, I pray you of your courtesy to give me my life.
When once you have eaten me, what farther benefit do you think
you will get from me? But if you will let me live there is no telling
what service I may not render you.’” (Ibid.: 1: 245)
When the hungry Peter pays little attention, the tuna continues, beseeching his captor to spare his life, promising him first as many
fish as he could want, and finally to do him any favour he might
demand. Peter [ . . . ] though a fool, fancied he might profit by

152 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
sparing the fish, so he listened to the tunny’s petition and threw him
back into the sea. (Ibid.)
The fish repays Peter’s canny decision by granting him one wish after
another, ultimately constructing for him a “rich and sumptuous palace”
with gardens and fountains. In sharp contrast, and with a more modern
feel altogether, the beneficent cat in “Costantino Fortunato” (XI.1) is
prompted not by self interest, as is the tuna fish, but by a disinterest
and praiseworthy desire to help her poor master: Now it chanced that this cat of Costantino’s was [enchanted
4], and
the cat, feeling much compassion for him and anger at his two broth-
ers on account of their cruel treatment of him, one day said to him,
“Costantino, do not be cast down, for I will provide for your well-be
and sustenance, and for my own as well.” (1553; 1898 4: 8)
The rest of the story bears out the cat’s benevolent intention as she bags
game and presents it to a king as gifts from his purportedly wealthy
admirer “Messer Costantino.” By far the most frequently appearing magic animals in The Pleasant
Nights are creatures moved by gratitude for a kindly act. Livoretto
(III.2), having been instructed by his horse to perform whatever ser-
vice any animal entreats of him, saves a fish stranded in foul waters
and later frees a falcon frozen into ice. Both grateful animals give the

hero a token with which he may gain their assistance in the future,
a pragmatic exchange that requires exactly one good deed in return
for another: once the grateful animal has responded to his call,
Livoretto must return the token.
5 A similar ethic of exchange underlies
“Guerrino” (V.1), whose hero, having won the gratitude of a hornet by
freeing it from a jug of honey, is rewarded by the hornet’s help in distin-
guishing between two veiled princesses. In another instance, Fortunio
is rewarded with the ability to take on the shape of the wolf, eagle, an
ant whose division of spoils he adjudicates to their satisfaction (III.
In like manner, Cesarino earns the gratitude of a wolf, a lion, and a bear
by caring for them in their infancy (X.3). For the history of magic tales,
4 I have here corrected W.G. Waters’ translation (“the cat which was a fairy....”
It should read “the cat which was enchanted” (fatata: Straparola, 2000: 669).
5 See also Eichel-Lojkine, Contes en réseaux (2013: 12), a comprehensive explora-
tion of narrative interrelationships in the medieval and early modern pe
We were long unaware of each other’s research on R. Yohanan.

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 153
it is noteworthy that the grateful animals in “Livoretto” are text
continuations of the grateful animals in the medieval Jewish magic tale
“R. Yohanan and the Scorpion” discussed in Chapter 5.
Like the romances circulating in sixteenth-century Venice, Straparola’s
Pleasant Nights also houses human-shaped supernaturals. In “Prince Pig”
(II.1) fairies appear as a trio who cast a three-part spell on Queen E
that includes a son’s birth with the appearance and manners of a pig.
Having set the plot in motion, the fairies simply disappear. The fairy
who makes a cameo appearance in “Guerrino” (V.1) laughs so heart-
ily at the sight of a hairy wild man that a coronary impostume bursts
and she is healed, in gratitude for which, she restores the wild man to
the handsomeness he had earlier enjoyed as Prince Rubinetto. Beyond
these fairy supernaturals, there is also a nixie in “Fortunio” (III.4) and
sorcerer in “The Sorcerer’s Apprentice” (VIII.5). Straparola also introduces humans with supernatural powers into The
Pleasant Nights, one of whom is Princess Bellisandra (III.2), who deals in
extreme healings. To demonstrate her powers, she beheads her beloved,
minces his flesh, grinds his bones, kneads and shapes the resulting doug
into a more handsome and graceful version, and then revives him with
the water of life, reminding us of Medea’s use of rejuvenating cookery
in Chapter 2 and once again of “R. Yohanan and the Scorpion.” In “The
Sorcerer’s Apprentice” (VIII.5) Lattantio practices necromancy (Martin,
1989: 86–101), a craft at which he is quickly surpassed by his appre
Dionigio, who learns to work “wonders which were even far beyond
[his] powers” (Straparola,1898: 3: 152). Lattantio’s necromancy, notably,
makes no use of liturgical paraphernalia, such as the priestly garments
and consecrated water, oil, or communion wafers with which sixteenth-
century practitioners frequently drove their conjurations forward.
6 This statement is an adjustment to the article, “Dankbare (hilfreich
e) Tiere,”
in the Enzyklopädie des Märchens 3: col, 290. There it is stated, “Die erste europ.
Version erscheint in Georg Messerschmidts Gedicht Vom edlen Ritter Brisonetto
(1559), wo Ameise, Ente und Bienenkönigin einem Genueser Ritter hel
(die gleiche Kombination wie in KHM 62)” which is footnoted to “
Spiegel, F.:
Anecdota pâlica 1, Lpz.1845, 53–58; cf. Benfey, 1, 194 sq.” Grateful or helpful animals have been categorized in a dedicated tale ty
ATU 554 The Grateful Animals, closely related to ATU 505 The Grateful Dead.
Grateful animal plotlines regularly appear in conjunction with ATU 303 The
Twins or Blood-Brothers, ATU 313 The Magic Flight, ATU 531 The Clever Horse, 550
Bird, Horse, and Princess, 551 Water of Life, 561 Aladdin. In eastern Europe ATU
156 Androcles and the Lion, a helpful animal of a different sort and from a dif-
ferent tradition, is widespread. See Carl Lindahl, “Dankbare (hilfre
iche) Tiere,”
Enzyklopädie des Märchens 3 (1981) cols. 287–99.

154 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
In the world of Renaissance magic practiced by ordinary citizens,
documented in Inquisition records, and analyzed in historical studies,
two additional forms of magic – white and black – loom large. Whit
magic, which focused on healing, was broadly tolerated. Black magic,
on the other hand, addressed satanic forces, was forbidden as mortally
sinful, and was punished as witchcraft. It is significant that of these
three historically documented popular magical practices only black
magic is paralleled in Straparola’s Pleasant Nights. (See below.) Literary inventories of magic from classical antiquity, the Middle Ages,
and the early modern world were readily available to readers and writers

in Renaissance Venice. Greek myths that hinged on transformations from
human into animal, vegetable, or mineral existences were for sale as Ovi
Metamorphoses (see Chapter 2), either in Latin or in Italian translation.
There Olympian gods’ actions explain the origins of elements in the n
ral world, as they change mortals into natural features, plants, or anim
as when Zeus transforms the notoriously savage Lycaon into a wolf.
7 The
reverse process also existed, with non-human objects like rocks becoming

human beings. Greek gods also exploit the possibilities of shapeshifting

to gain carnal pleasure, as when Zeus, as a shower of gold, enters the
underground chamber in which King Acrisius sequesters his daughter
7 Of course, the story could also be understood as an etiology, but Ovid repeatedly
uses the word “punishment” in his telling. See Ovid, Metamorphoses (Book I), or
trans. Mary Innes, 1955; 34–5.
8 It was Horace who changed Danaë’s imprisonment from an underground cham-
ber to a tower of bronze: “Inclusam Danaën turris aënea …”
(Odes 3.16), a change
taken up by Ovid in Book IV of the Metamorphoses: “My name is Perseus, son of
Jupiter and of Danaë, whom Jupiter made pregnant with his fertile gol
d, and that
though she was imprisoned in a tower” (Book IV; trans. Innes, 1955; 112. Details
and episodes of the Greek narrative appear in Pindar’s Pythian Odes and Nemean
Odes, in Simonides’s Fragment 38, and in images on Greek pottery. Significant for
understanding the literary background for Straparola’s tales, the elaborated tale
states that it was prophesied that Acrisius’s daughter Danaë will bear a son who
will kill him. He therefore shuts her into a bronze underground chamber
to secure
her from impregnation. But Zeus comes to her in a shower of gold and she
Perseus, whom she keeps secretly. At a young age, however, he is discovered.
Unwilling to anger the gods by killing his own flesh and blood, Acrisius
mother and child into a wooden chest and casts them into the sea. On the
of Seryphos they are netted by the fisherman Dictys (=“net”) who pulls
from the water and rears the child Perseus to adulthood on the island wh
ere his
brother is king. The congruence between these details (fisherman, myste
impregnated girl, mother and child cast into the sea in a wooden cask, l
on an island, king) and those in Straparola’s “Pietro the Fool” (III.1), the first rise
fairy tale in Straparola’s Pleasant Nights, are unmistakable and suggest that he
or someone close to him, was well acquainted with this version of Danaë
’s tale.

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 155
or as a swan achieves sexual union with Leda. 9 Athena, to pursue an
advantage for her Olympian allies and their (and her) earthly favorite
regularly disguises herself as a character unrecognizable to any but her

protégés. The ancient mythic Greek Tiresias experiences a different kind
of shapeshifting, dramatically real gender shifts, in which he lives as
woman and bears children before being returned to maleness. Straparola adopts none of the etiological, strategic, punitive, or
enabling categories of magical metamorphoses employed in Greek
mythology. Instead, his Costanza, in search of a husband in far off
lands, changes her appearance only superficially, when she dons
men’s clothing (IV.1). Equally superficial is Prince Rubinetto’s appear-
ance as a wild man, which results not from a magical transformation,
but from a radical change in his looks resulting from poor hygiene
and a green diet (V.1). When shapeshifting takes place in Straparola’s
Pleasant Nights, it simply happens and it happens simply. Perhaps a
contemporary animal anxiety, as Suzanne Magnanini argues (2008:
93–102, 112–16), determined the shape into which a hero shifted,
the shift itself takes place with relatively little fanfare, as is custo
ary in modern fairy tales. The prince-born-as-a-pig and his mother
neither transgress a prohibition nor offend a fairy to merit the gross
shift from anticipated baby to a born-as-a-pig appearance (II.1).
Nor do the pig’s swinish habits function as a task or trial to test his
mettle, for his swinishness does not distress him, only those whose
royal dress he rudely soils or whose life he casually ends. Much the
same is true of Samaritana, who appears without explanation as a
small white snake and keeps that shape until it suits her to change it
(III.3). Nor are Serena’s brothers Fluvio and Acquirino changed into
marble statues because they fail to perform a requirement; they are
petrified when they approach and touch the statues they see before
them (IV.3). Other instances of shapeshifting in The Pleasant Nights point toward
a decentering of magic from divine intentions and its relocation among
human aspirations. Isabella pays a practicing witch for the services that
give her the appearance of her husband’s mistress for a night. She wants
the magic, and so she hires an expert to provide it (VII.1). Similarly

Fortunio makes use of the shapeshifting powers conferred on him by
his three animal companions when he needs or wants them (III.4). In
an intensification of human-centered shapeshifting, Dionigi learns how
to change himself into guises that enrich his poor father, that gain him
9 Ovid, in Book VI, reports the scene as depicted by Arachne in a tapestry.

156 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
entrance to Princess Violante’s chamber, and that propel him to victory
over his necromancer opponent (VIII.5).
Black magic
The general rule in Straparola’s Pleasant Nights is that depictions of the
practice of magic do not correspond to contemporary Venetian prac-
tices, to which Straparola’s story “Ortodosio and Isabella” (VII.1) is a
notable exception. It represents a magicking of Giovanni Boccaccio’s
improbable but entirely possible ninth story on the third day, in which
a wife wins back her husband by becoming pregnant by him and show-
ing him tokens he gave her, even though he believed he slept with
an altogether different woman. Straparola’s reconfiguration of this
tale shows Isabella using three passion-binding practices common in
contemporary Venice: as she undertakes to regain her husband’s affec-
tions, she is naked during a conjuration, stands in a circle, and calls
upon Satan (Ruggiero, 1993; Duni, 2007: 53, 54, 60, 61). Did Straparola
know the contents of the infamous Latin-language Malleus Maleficarum,
which detailed connections between Satan, witches, and sexuality? Had
Straparola read the ancient Clavicula Salomonis, the most popular book
of magic circulating in the 1500s, with its instructions for conjuring
the devil by drawing a circle on the ground, invoking satanic pow-
ers, and offering sacrifices (Duni, 2007: 47)? Or had Straparola simpl
read Canto XXV in Morgante by Luigi Pulgi (1432–84), where Astaroth
is similarly conjured up and Farfarello similarly turns into a horse
for purposes of magical transport in Canto XXV of Pulci’s Morgante
(Bonomo, 1958: 368, 368n9). Whatever his source, Straparola’s witch
Gabrina Fureta uses historically documented forms of black magic to
help Isabella regain her husband:
“When the appointed hour for the meeting had come, the witch
took her little book in hand and drew a small circle on the ground;
then having surrounded the same with certain magic signs and
figures, she poured out some subtle liquor from a flask and drank
a drop of it and gave as much to Isabella. [ . . . ] ‘Undress yoursel
then,’ said the witch, ‘and enter the circle.’ Isabella, therefore, hav-
ing stripped herself, stood naked as on the day when she was born,
and boldly entered the circle, whereupon Gabrina opened her book
and likewise entered the circle, and thus spake: ‘Powers of hell, by
the authority which I hold over you, I conjure that you instantly
appear before me!’ Astaroth, Fafarello, and the other demon princes,
compelled by the conjurations of Gabrina, immediately presented

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 157
themselves before her with loud shrieks, and cried, ‘Command us to
do thy will.’” (Straparola, 1898: 3: 9–10)
With the information she demands, Gabrina sets in motion the magic-
mediated recovery of Isabella’s husband. By the 1550s practices of
black magic like these were broadly known, categorized, and codified
– and carried heavy penalties for their use. A historical witch named

Gabrina degli Abeti was branded with a red-hot iron and her tongue
cut out in Reggio Emilia in 1375, an event that might have been lost
to literary memory, except that Lodovico Ariosto incorporated her into
his Orlando furioso (1516–32) as Gabrina Fureta, the name Straparola
adopted (Pirovano, 2000: 477 n 2). Did Straparola’s readers know that
a real Gabrina had lost her tongue for her magic? If so, they might
have experienced a higher level of suspense about how Straparola’s tale
would end. Because either the practice or the advocacy of black magic was
dangerous, it is hardly surprising that Straparola treated the subject
circumspectly. The two serpents of “Biancabella” (III.3), the one that
impregnates her unnamed mother and the one wrapped around
Biancabella’s neck at birth, might be linked to Satan by the popular
traditions surrounding the Biblical story of Adam and Eve, but in
Biancabella’s tale no one calls on hellish powers. Despite that, the magic
of “Biancabella” shares in the implied sexual availability of the
magicked Isabella, for Biancabella, too, strips naked and stands within
ring, in her case, a circular basin of milk. In Isabella’s case, it is eroticism
rather than sexuality that drives the episode:
Almost as soon as she had sat down the serpent appeared and came
near her, and straightway commanded her to strip off all her clothes,
and then, naked as she was, to step into the vessel which was filled
with milk. When she had done this, the serpent twined itself about
her, thus bathing her body in every part with the white milk and
licking her all over with his tongue, rendering her pure and perfect in
every part where, peradventure, aught that was faulty might have been
found. Next, having bid her come out of the vessel of milk, the serpent
made her enter the one which was filled with rose water, whereupon
all her limbs were scented with odours so sweet and restorative that
she felt as if she were filled with fresh life. (Straparola, 1898: 1: 3
The drink that Doralice (I.4) takes to survive weeks in a trunk as she
flees her father’s incestuous lust may belong to the world of black

158 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
magic, for it is “a certain liquor which had such great virtue, that
whosoever took a spoonful of it, or even less, could live for a long tim
without nourishment” (ibid.: 1: 84). A parallel uncertainty surroun
the drugged wine that Doralice’s ladies-in-waiting try fruitlessly to give
her father. The narrators of these stories in Straparola’s frametale don’t
tell their listeners anything about their potions’ origins, whether i
might be a witch in touch with satanic powers or a wise woman who
knows her way around medieval herbals. The potions are simply part
of a background availability of liquids with extraordinary physiological
White magic is an entirely different matter. It draws on “divers medi-
cal herbs of wonderful powers and virtue” (ibid.: 1: 327), herbal p
ciples that enable Samaritana to heal Biancabella’s eyes and to rejoin
her severed hands to her body. An equally adept old woman reattaches
Flamminio’s head to his body with an ointment and a plaster (IV.5).
The successful practice of white magic grew from study and experience,
often passed from an experienced practitioner to an initiate. Unlike
black magic, white magic was overwhelmingly in the hands of women,
as is here the case. Pre-pregnancy, pregnancy, and birth typically precipitate magic prac-
tices, and Straparola’s Pleasant Nights maintains that link. Chiaretta,
indulging in an adolescent dream future, imagines a life as the king’
wife, while her sisters muse about marrying his chamberlain and his
majordomo (IV.3). Only Chiaretta invokes a very special pregnancy as
her gift to the king, should he marry her:
Then said Chiaretta, “And I, if I had the king himself for my hus-
band, I flatter myself that I would give him three children at one
birth, two sons and a daughter. And each of these should have long
hair braided below the shoulders, and intermingled with threads of
the finest gold, and a golden necklace round the throat, and a star
on the forehead of each”. (Ibid.: 2: 58)
Since their father is a baker, such a wedding is unlikely, and yet the king
overhears Chiaretta’s words, is intrigued, and weds her on the spot. In
due time, attended by her sisters and a midwife, the announced triplets
appear, two boys and a girl [ . . . ]. Likewise their hair was braided below the
shoulders, and they bore golden chains on their necks and golden
stars on their foreheads. (Ibid.: 2: 61)

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 159
The babies’ number and appearance having been predicted before her
wedding, when Chiaretta was still a virgin, it is clear that it is not K
Ancilotto who supplies their magical golden hair, necklaces, and fore-
head stars. Neither is it a fairy that brings about the marvels attending
Chiaretta’s triplets. The magic to do so resides wholly within her own
body and her own spirit, yet another instance of the frequent reloca-
tion of magic in Straparola’s Renaissance tales into ordinary people, a
remarkable novum in the European history of brief narratives that would
be much imitated in the following centuries. On the other hand, initiating a pregnancy in The Pleasant Nights
provides counter examples to otherwise increasingly human-centered
magic in these stories. Peter the Fool (III.1) gets the help of a magi
c tuna
to impregnate Princess Luciana at a distance (Stanzel, 2000: 69–81)
. A
snake crawls into the womb of the Marchioness of Monferrato, from
which union Biancabella and Samaritana are born (III.3). It is notewor
thy that Straparola invites fairy participation only in the pregnancy of
Queen Ersilia (II.1), where the three fairies’ intervention results in a
long-awaited conception, whose product, however, is a piglet with a lit-
tle snout, genuine pigskin, a bristly back, sharp hooves, a wagging tail
and a penchant for rolling in urban muck. The fairies of this tale recal
and recover the medieval moment of transition in which the mythic trio
Juno, Athena, and Venus merged with the three Fates Clotho, Lachesis,
and Atropos to produce now-classic birth-attending fairy threesomes,
as Laurence Harf-Lancner, Maren Clausen-Stolzenburg, and Martine
Hennard Dutheil de la Rochère have persuasively argued, while the
claimed or real animalness of the baby to whom Queen Ersilia gives birth

gains its credibility from sixteenth-century readers’ exposure to numer-
ous popular and learned accounts of monstrous births (Magnanini,
2008). In other words, Straparola does not favor an association of fair
with pregnancy and birth but tends rather toward non- or anti-fairy-
caused magic pregnancies in the cases of Chiaretta’s supernaturally
gold-bearing triplets and Biancabella’s own body that is embedded with
gold at her birth. One narrative problem in Straparola’s collection comes straight from
classical antiquity. The impossible task of acquiring a vial of heavily
guarded water of life in “Livoretto” (III.2) is paralleled by Ap
Pysche, who is charged to carry out that same task by her fiercely antag-
onistic mother-in-law Venus. Straparola adds two lions to the corps of
dragons defending the water of life, omits Apuleius’s detailed descrip-
tion of a wild mountain torrent, substitutes a falcon for Apuleius’s
eagle as supernatural assistant and a simple vial for the classical crystal

160 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
container, and reverses the genders of the performers of the impossible
task. The details differ, but the episode is structurally identical.
Straparola also formulates impossible tasks from situations known to
be physiologically impossible. Whatever an individual’s level of belief in
the efficacy of potions and incantations, it is unlikely that in the 155
any Venetian man or woman, girl or boy would believe that pearls
and precious stones could fall from a woman’s hair as it was combed
or that blossoms would spring up around any woman’s hands, or that
worms and filth would fall from the hair of her wicked usurper (III.3)
It is equally improbable, in an era that saw immense amounts of public
construction, that anyone could, or did, believe it possible to construc
a palace by thrice striking the ground with a laurel twig and pronounc-
ing mystic words (Straparola, 1898: 1: 319). Such an act contradicted
observed phenomena in the material world. And yet this mechanical
impossibility also provides Straparola with a formulation for an impos-
sible task in “Biancabella” (III.3). As for transformations, Straparola dipped into the long European
tradition of men who –in seeking woodland refuge – become hairy in
the process of forsaking civilized habits and green from eating grass
and leaves (Bartra, 1994; Basford, 2004; Bernheimer, 1979). Prince
Rubinetto’s transformation into a wild man follows just this purport-
edly natural process. Suffering a disappointment, he
“let go all dreams of love and urbane pursuits, and took up his dwell
ing amongst beasts of the forest, abiding always in the gloomy woods
and bosky thickets, eating grass and drinking water after the fashion
of a brute. On this account the wretched man had become covered
with a great fell of hair; his skin was hard, his beard thick and tangle
and very long, and through eating herbs and grass, his beard, his
hairy covering, and the hair of his head had become so green that
they were quite monstrous to behold.” (Ibid.: 2: 144)
Once wild, always wild was the traditional view of such transformed
creatures. Hence, to return the wild man to his former appearance,
Straparola engages magic in the form of an ailing fairy healed by her
own laughter (a magicking of a Boccaccian precursor in the Decameron
III.9 novella in which a physician’s daughter heals the French king’s ven-
tral fistula with God’s help, her father’s knowledge, and nature’s herbs),
in gratitude for which she makes him the fairest, wisest, and most grace
ful youth in the world. Straparola seals the importance of the fairy’s
supernatural power by having her decree that Rubinetto will also share

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 161
“all of the power and authority conferred upon [her] by nature, where
you will be able to do and to undo whatsoever you will according to
your desire,” and for good measure, she presents him with “a noble

horse endowed with magic powers” (ibid.: 2:152). After Straparola’
careful explanation of the natural processes by which Rubinetto became
both hairy and green, his instantaneous transformation and generous
fairy gifting seem an arbitrarily magical addition. One must entertain
the possibility that Straparola’s insertion of magic here, as elsewhere, was
part of a conscious plan to do so in The Pleasant Nights.
Straparola makes open use of the fairy world to make Rubinetto hand-
some, but paradoxically he seems to go out of his way to avoid using
the word “fairy” on other occasions. This aspect of Straparola’s attitude
toward magic often remains invisible in English translations, where
fairies are so often written into the text. For instance, the word “f
is inscribed onto Livoretto’s and Guerrino’s horses (III.2 and V.1) with
a “fairy” cat similarly written into “Costantino Fortunato” (XI.1),
though no corresponding word exists in Straparola’s Italian. Definitively
enchanted (fatato) beings certainly exist in The Pleasant Nights , such as
the enchanted horse that defeats the equine monsters afflicting King
Zifroi’s kingdom (Straparola, 2000: 330, 336, 337). But in the many
cases in which it would be natural to describe a being as a “fairy” or as
“enchanted,” Straparola often chooses words from altogether differ
semantic fields. For instance, the impossible-task-performing, wish-
granting, talking tuna is a “very wise fish” (tonno sapientissimo [ibid.:
176]). In like manner Serena’s brothers – who have been changed from
marble statues into human form and who before that had sought and
found an apple that sings and water that dances – avoid explaining
any of these events as magical, referring to them instead as “strange

events” (strani accidente [ibid.: 290]). And when it comes to describing
Bellisandra’s resurrection of Livoretto from the dough to which she
reduced his body (III.2), Straparola writes of her “astonishing dee
ds” (la
maravigliosa opera [ibid.: 196]). Straparola also foregoes magic powers
altogether when he sends Rubinetto’s “enchanted” horse into battle
against the wild horses ravaging King Zifroi’s kingdom (V.1) by having
him order special horseshoes from a master smithy. Rubinetto leaves
little to chance and nothing to magic, as he requests
“four horseshoes, which must be thicker and broader by the breadth
of two fingers than the ordinary measure of horseshoes, well roughed,
and each one to be fitted behind with two spikes of a finger’s length
and sharpened to a point.” (Straparola, 1898: 4: 160)

162 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
for his enchanted (fatato [Straparola, 2000: 335]) horse. These horseshoes’
pointed fabrication for lethal combat confers a greater advantage than
any indwelling enchantment.
Another aspect of Straparola’s attitudes toward magic emerges from
episodes in The Pleasant Nights in which he engages in strategies of
avoidance. When Chiaretta’s envious sisters Brunora and Lionella sub-
stitute three puppies for the gold-bedecked triplets she has just borne
(IV.3), their act is intrinsically verisimilitudinous, that is, improbable

but far from impossible. In the same tale the three children’s quest
for magic objects is supported by helpers, one of whom is an ordinary
innkeeper with real-world information about protecting themselves
from the poisonous beast guarding the apple they seek. Magic is simi-
larly bypassed in the wily wild man’s escape from imprisonment: he
snatches Guerrino’s prized arrow, offering to return it in exchange for
his release (V.1). Neither is it a fairy curse but a spirit of discord that
drives Valentino and Fortunio apart (III.4). In “Costanza-Costanzo”
(IV.1) Straparola speaks through the queen as she plots to seduce the
king’s new courtier. A realist, she does not turn to magic, but uses
cunning and artifice to gain her end, knowing “that men do not fell
to earth a hard oak-tree with a single stroke” (Straparola,1898: 2:
When, in the same tale, the king sets what seems to be an impossible
task in getting a satyr to speak, the cross-dressed Costanza/o, invokes
the ordinary laws of nature:
“Sire,” Costanzo replied, “that the satyr is dumb is no fault o
f mine; it is
not the office of a mortal, like me, to make him speak, but of a god. Bu
if the reason of his muteness comes not from any natural or accidental
defect, but from stubborn resolve to keep silence, I will do all that li
in my power to make him open his mouth in speech.” (Ibid.: 2: 29)
Straparola likewise eschews magic in bringing about Bertuccio’s wed-
ding to a princess (XI.2). Instead of occult magic, Straparola adopts
the longstanding literary trope of the grateful dead: Bertuccio has safe-
guarded and has honorably buried a corpse whose spirit intervenes to
help him. Since Bertuccio’s tale directly follows the fairy tale wedding
brought about by the enchanted cat in “Costantino Fortunato” (XI.
Straparola may have positioned “Bertuccio” to covertly comment on
the previous tale’s reliance on magic. In Straparola’s tales magic manifests itself far away from Venice – in
Genoa, Bohemia, Tunis, Cairo, Sicily, and Anglia. Distant though these
places were, they were nonetheless geographical locations somewhere

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 163
on the same earth on which the sun rose and set every day as in the
Venice where Straparola and his 1550s readers lived, a world of real life

and real people. Thus when Straparola places a story in relatively nearby
Verona, lying halfway between Venice and his hometown Caravaggio,
he presents magic as a con game. In a tale that rewrites Ortodosio and
Isabella’s black magic-based restoration of conjugal relations, its appar-
ent witch Finetta was in truth a wily beggar tricking her victim into
standing naked in a circle for hours while she steals precious jewels and
escapes (X.1). The mystic signs Finetta makes are not magic but decep-
tion. Even closer to home, a story sited in the village of Salmazza near
Venice’s neighboring town Padua, is home to an outlandishly and comi-
cally orchestrated incantation got up solely for the lusty peasant Thia
to allow her lover to escape her cuckolded husband Cechato (V.4). Both
instances are consistent with Straparola’s characterization of magic as
“a knavish game,” part and parcel of the “tricks and deceptions which
men nowadays practice upon one another” (VI.1, 1898: 2: 285). To pay
back a friend who has taken sexual advantage of his wife’s credulity,
Messer Artilao “pretend[s] the while to be conversing with a multitud
of spirits,” who apparently direct him to search for missing jewels “in
a valley deep beneath a smiling hill” with his “fishing-rod,” a
he carries out through a series of copulations with his friend’s wife, each
appearing to result in finding one of her missing jewels (1898 2: 307–
Pure Boccaccian trickery, without an ounce of magic but with tons of
female credulity.
Against this backdrop of familiar or near-familiar landscapes, the
magic process in “Biancabella” (III.3) proves a countervailing truth in
real life, namely, that one believes what one sees with one’s own eyes.
Thus, when jewels fall from the hair of the haggard woman standing
before him, King Ferrandino recognizes her as Biancabella, his true wife
Her magically jewel-producing hair serves, paradoxically, as crucial evi-
dence in the here and now. Conversely, in The Pleasant Nights , the natural world occasionally
confirms the “truth” of magic, as far as readers of a tale are con
This process emerges from the details of the story of Isabella’s magical
quest to regain her husband (VII.1). A man of the hardnosed mercantile
world, Ortodosio naturally does not believe his wife’s account of trave-
ling to Flanders by supernatural means and of taking on the appearance
of his mistress to become pregnant by him. He is instead convinced that
Isabella has conceived a child out of wedlock that she now wishes to
fob off on him. Isabella proves the “truth” of her narrative of “
assistance by showing him the child’s foot, which lacks its little toe,

164 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
just as Ortodosio’s foot is “naturally wanting of a toe” (ibid.: 3: 30). To
her husband and her listeners within the tale, Isabella accounts for the

events in her narrative not by candidly recounting Gabrina Fureta’s
black magic, but by falsely crediting a Christian miracle. In the secula
world, Ortodosio finds her story of the child’s conception incontrovert-
ible because of the natural evidence before his eyes. At the same time,
however, readers of the story know that Isabella did, in fact, turn to
black magic after Christian prayer failed to bring her long-absent hus-
band home. Consequently, readers in the Renaissance as well as readers
today know that her religious narrative is untrue.
The story of Isabella and Ortodosio juxtaposes Gabrina Fureta’s magic
and God’s powers, and in so doing requires its heroine Isabella to pro-
duce two narratives. In response, she crafts a tale of a Christian mirac
within Straparola’s narrative of efficacious black magic. In the course
of unfolding in paradox and contradiction, Straparola’s story about
Isabella evinces a palpable and dangerous tension between effective
black magic and ineffectual Christian practice . The Florentine merchant
Ortodosio Simeoni, who seeks commercial gain in Flanders and finds
voluptuous pleasure in a courtesan’s arms, abandons his wife Isabella,
who prays for his return without success for five long years. Lacking
news of her husband and realizing that prayers, alms, and good works
produce no results, the sorrowing Isabella turns to Gabrina Fureta’s
expert incantations and witchcraft ( nell’arte maga piú che ogni atra isperi-
mentata [Straparola, 2000: 477]). Through these, Isabella locates her
husband and becomes pregnant by him. Ortodosio, aghast, incensed,
and believing that the legitimately though magically conceived child
has resulted from adultery, hurriedly returns to Florence. Isabella has achieved the first part of her goal, retrieving Ortodosio,
by participating in Gabrina Fureta’s black magic. But public knowledge
of her participation in black magic would expose her to heavy penal-
ties in a society that mutilated witches like the real Gabrina. And so
once Ortodosio sees the child’s telltale missing toe, Isabella – that is,
Straparola – constructs a patently false but officially acceptable “
“You must know, Ortodosio, my beloved, that the fastings, the
prayers, and the other good works that I performed in order that
I might have news of you, brought me fulfillment of my wishes, as
you will presently hear. For one morning, when I was kneeling in the
holy Church of Annunciata, and praying that I might have news of
you, my prayer was granted, and an angel carried me invisible into
Flanders and placed me by your side in bed, and so close and loving

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 165
were the caresses which you bestowed on me that night that I then
and there became with child. And on the following night I found
myself in my own house in Florence again, together with the things
I have just laid before your eyes.” (Straparola, 1898: 3: 20–1)
For Isabella’s story to persuade her husband and family members (the
fictive listeners within the tale), they have to believe in an efficaci
God. Straparola apparently held that such belief was an acceptable
narrative assumption, for he builds Isabella’s listeners’ acceptance of
an interventionist God into the story. Not only is this God said to be
capable of transporting Isabella to Flanders and back again, as well as
being able to change her appearance in the process, this God can also be

expected to wreak vengeance on criminal mischief, such as Ortodosio’s
kinsmen’s laying punitive hands on the pregnant Isabella, as they ear-
lier considered doing. It was their fear of God’s punitive powers that
restrained them from killing her when they perceived her pregnancy
during Ortodosio’s long absence. Their desire to preserve family honor
by killing her was counterbalanced by their fear that God would exact
retribution for their destroying the soul of the child she is carrying,
concerns that they repeat in the letter they write to Ortodosio: “The child and his brazen-faced mother would have been before now
deprived of life by us, had not the reverence which we bear to God
stayed our hands on their behalf, for it pleaseth not God that we
should stain our hands with our own blood.” (Straparola, 1898:3: 15)
An immediate belief in God, in God’s knowledge of individual acts, and
in God’s punishment for transgressions is very real in this tale. In con-
trast to this apparently real belief in an efficacious God are the purel
formulaic invocations to God familiar from medieval storytelling that
continue to exist in several of Straparola’s tales: Now after a time it came to pass (according to the good pleasure of Him

who rules the universe and tempers and modifies everything according
to His will) that Alchia became with child. . . . (III. 4 [ibid.: 1: 3
41]).In due time (by the good pleasure of Him who rules over all),
Chiaretta became with child, . . . (IV.3 [ibid.:2: 60]). “[ . . . ] even though you be not repaid by those in whose behalf yo
have wrought, God Himself, the rewarder of all, will assuredly never
leave your good deed unrecompensed; nay, on the contrary, He will
make you partakers with Him of His divine grace.” (V.1 [ibid.:2:139])

166 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
In the final magic tale in The Pleasant Nights, a mother and her son both
invoke God:
his mother rejoiced greatly, giving thanks to God that He had at last
endowed her son with intelligence and good sense, (XI.2, [ibid.: 4: 23]
to which the son replies: “Yesterday, my mother, I traded so well that I saved your soul and
mine own also; therefore, whenever our souls may take flight from
these our mortal bodies, they will go direct to Paradise.” (XI.2 [ib
These predominantly formulaic pious expressions give way to a gentle
humor in the last instance, but they still alert The Pleasant Nights read-
ers to evident tensions between the idea of magic and the concept of
God. Other statements in The Pleasant Nights make readers aware, as
Straparola’s readers were aware nearly 500 years ago, of other tensions
surrounding magic. Meldina (II.1) soberly cites a wise saying to the p
prince’s mother, the queen, namely “that we should believe nothing we
may hear, except those things which bear the marks of sense and rea-
son” (ibid.:1: 144–5). For his part, Lamberico the Marquis of Mo
is “of an unbelieving nature,” a man who has to “see for himsel
(ibid.:1: 312), and so he requires proof of his wife’s claim that jewels fall
from Biancabella’s hair and flowers from her hands (III.3). Straparola’s tales grew directly from Italy’s 200-year-old novella tra-
dition, whose central requirement for plots was the possibility that
events could have happened as described, no matter how improbable
that might be. Straparola introduced magic into many of his brief
narratives, an act that overturned long-established and generally accep-
ted literary rules for verisimilitude in novellas. Straparola clearly recog-
nized his divergence from the western novella tradition in creating plot
that slotted magic into brief narratives, because he used not the term
novella but favola for these tales.
10 I should like to draw attention here to Marga Cottino-Jones’s discussion of
Straparola’s innovation in “Princesses, Kings, and the Fantastic: A Re-Vision of
the Language of Representation in the Renaissance,” (2000: 145–6,
which she terms “fantastic” and which she understands as “propo
s[ing] alterna-
tives to the real world” (174) and as “focused on creating a mid
dle-class, popular
imaginary world inspired by the instinctual and the fantastic, rather than by the
rational or the logic (sic)” (183).

The Problematics of Magic in Straparola’s Tales 167
In a rare instance of depicting magic practices themselves in a brief
narrative, he situates magic within two belief systems, Christian and
satanic. In other tales he mocks the credulity of the simple, when they
encounter fakers of all stripes, including supposed workers of magic.
And in his newly composed fairy tales, he introduces a female fairy
population that serves an individual’s most pressing needs in a one-way
flow of supernatural powers, from fairy to human, without requiring
anything in return. Straparola’s magic bumped against centuries-old legal restrictions
on trafficking with the supernatural that Italy’s religious and secular
courts had worked out over the centuries. And just as Straparola began
composing The Pleasant Nights, attempts to control heretical thought
and social practice in printed books in Italy as a whole (Monter and
Tedeschi, 1986) and in Venice in particular (Grendler, 1977) were begin-
ning to emerge. In his collection, Straparola himself made few distinc-
tions about how far and in what direction an author could go with
magic. But that was about to change.

The Evolution of Fairy Tale
Magic from Straparola to Basile
and Perrault
Within the magic in Giovan Francesco Straparola’s tales in the Pleasant
Nights, it is principally satanic black magic as practiced in “Ortodosio
and Isabella” (VII.1) and “The Sorcerer’s Apprentice” (VIII.5) that
conflicted with canon law. The sorceress Gabriela in “Ortodosio and
Isabella,” whose historical namesake was condemned by church
authorities and executed 200 years earlier, demonstrates this clearly. But
neither church nor state had a position on Straparola’s fairy tale magic. The magic in Straparola’s fairy tales is newly this-worldly. His heroes
may travel magically to real geographical destinations like Flanders
or even further afield to England or Damascus, but they never jour-
ney to an island that only they can see, to a religious or mythic locus
like Hades, or to an alien realm of reality like that reached by Lanval
or Liom/nbruno. In Straparola’s magic tale “Ortodosio and Isabella,”
demons are conjured from their parallel world, but in his fairy tales
supernaturals are not accompanied by hints of or reference to a parallel

world. Instead they materialize among human kind in familiar places
without reference to another world. In “Peter the Fool” (III.1)
the wish-
granting tuna swims in the sea where Peter normally fishes and in “Th
Pig Prince” (II.1) three fairies fly into Queen Ersilia’s garden, where she’s
having an afternoon nap. Unencumbered by fairyland fiction backstories, Straparola’s supernatu-
rals focus solely on the condition of a tale’s hero or heroine, whom they
purposefully and routinely benefit. Only on rare occasions do their word
bring difficulties, as when the third fairy visiting Queen Ersilia wishes
that her future son “shall be born in the skin of a pig, with a pig’
s ways
and manners, and in this state he shall be constrained to abide till he
shall have three times taken a woman to wife” (Straparola, 1898: 1:
Although a fairy-brought difficulty like this may defer the titular hero’s

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 169
happy ending, it does not prevent it. In this case, the pig prince event
marries a deserving girl, and conversely, the poor girl he marries ascends
to royal estate and to the privileges and comforts that her rise confers
In the rise fairy tale that eventually became “Puss in Boots,” the
orphaned and impoverished Costantino marries a princess, gains a
castle, lands, and the benefits of ownership, so that in achieving mate-
rial happiness here on earth he leaves youthful suffering far behind, al
through the good offices of an enchanted cat. In a restoration fairy tale
with royal protagonists, Prince Livoretto, the son of the King of Tunis,
completes tasks and passes demanding tests and magic trials on the way
to the happy ending that unites him with Princess Bellisandra and raises

him to the Sultan of Egypt’s throne (III.2). In another restoration tale,
“Tebaldo” (I.4), the widower king,
having sworn to remarry only a woman whose finger fits his dead
wife’s ring, fixes on his daughter Doralice. Her old nurse helps her
by giving Doralice “a certain liquor which had such great virtue, tha
whosoever took a spoonful of it, or even less, could live for a long
time without further nourishment” (ibid.: 84). Thus Doralice escape
in a trunk that the unwitting father orders sold and removed. Bought
by a Genoese merchant, it goes to England, where King Genese buys
it and places it in his bedchamber. There Doralice emerges each day,
puts his chamber in order, and strews the bedcover with flowers and
spices. One day, the King hides in the room to solve the housekeep-
ing mystery, sees the beautiful maiden, falls in love, and with his
mother’s consent, marries her, and has two children.Her father, learning of her whereabouts, disguises himself as a
merchant, kills the queen’s children, and smears the sleeping queen
with their blood. Then, dressed as an astrologer, he casts suspicion on
Doralice, whom the king sentences to be buried “up to her chin in the

earth . . . [so that] the worms should devour her while she still lived”

(ibid.: 1: 98). Tebaldo returns to Salerno, where he boasts to Doralice’s
old nurse about the lingering death he brought about. She promptly
saddles up, rides to England, and tells all to King Genese, who assemble
a mighty host, attacks Salerno, and captures Tebaldo. Put to the rack, he
confesses and is tortured, quartered, and thrown to ravenous dogs, “a
King Genese and Doralice his queen lived many years happily together,
leaving at their death divers children in their place.” (Ibid.: 101)
The only possible magic in “Tebaldo” is a potion that provides long-term
nourishment; its happy ending comprises “many years” of domestic

170 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
harmony. Its royal heroine Doralice suffers both exile and mortification
of the flesh and the spirit before her restoration to the royal position

that she then enjoys for the rest of her life.
Straparola’s “Tebaldo” rests on centuries of tellings of paternal incest,
some thwarted and some carried out, with improbabilities built into
the stories, but with little or no magic in them. Straparola’s reworking
adds nominal magic and an interim punishing sentence for its queen
that was borrowed, ultimately, from the medieval Christian Dolopathos
tale collection. This potted history of a single tale shows how magic can
move into or out of a narrative over time and from place to place, and
can change its genre in the process, in this case from exemplary tale to
fairy tale. Straparola positioned both magic tales and fairy tales in a collec-
tion where they were far outweighed by novellas. With the Boccaccian
definition of novellas raising implausibility to a high art, that genre
utterly eschews the existential impossibilities that magic engenders.
Straparola’s insertion of magic tales into a novella collection thus vio-
lated novella requirements and conventions and aroused immediate
literary critical objections. Ordinary readers, however, didn’t seem to
object to magic, and educated Renaissance readers were thoroughly
familiar with it. From Latin-language reprints and translations into
Italian they knew the ancient world’s magic tales of transformations,
while contemporaneous Orlando romances by Boiardo and Ariosto
delighted both educated and simple readers with their magic, as numer-
ous sixteenth-century reprintings and extensions attest. The early sales
history of The Pleasant Nights also demonstrates that buyers welcomed
magic and didn’t avoid Straparola’s tales because he had inserted magic
tales and fairy tales into a novella collection: the first printing of the
first volume sold out quickly and was reprinted within months. The manuscript of Straparola’s Volume 1 of The Pleasant Nights eas-
ily passed the first hurdle in the publication process on 8 March 1550,
when the Venetian Senate Council responsible for assessing new books’
moral and political acceptability approved it (Pirovano, 2000:1: liii)
. But
considered within a larger frame of reference, the timing of the initial

publication was edgy. In 1550 book censorship was at the beginning
of a long process that led to its institutionalization, and Straparola’
collection just squeaked by. Once the strictures of the Catalogo of 1549
against books “containing things against good morals” (Grendler, 1977:
86) were articulated with reference to religiously heretical materials,

its wording permitted and encouraged the control, expurgation, and
suppression of leisure readings, such as novella collections. Massucio

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 171
Salernitano’s Novellae and Pietro Aretino’s Sette salmi were censored in
1551; Poggio Bracciolini’s Facetiae were censored from 1553 onward, as
were Matteo Bandello’s Novelle in 1554, and Agnolo Firenzuola’s Novelle
in 1562 (Coseriu, 1987: 68–9). These novella collections all contai
sordid episodes, as did Straparola’s Pleasant Nights, and in its second
printing (1555) Straparola’s collection was modified, as the scandalously
blasphemous “Priest and the Image-Carver’s Wife” (VIII.3) was replaced
by two clerically inoffensive tales (Pirovano, 2001: 63). In 1557 Straparola’s title page carries for the last time the words
all’instanza dall’autore, which indicated the author’s participation in
and fostering of publication. The subsequent disappearance of this
metatextual message suggests that Straparola died before, or soon after,
the 1557 publication. Despite the legal changes that Straparola’s death
must have occasioned, no further amendments to his collection were
made until 1565, when ecclesiastical and/or secular authorities took
offense at eight of the tales (ibid.: 66–7). Although deemed “in
by a twenty-first-century literary critic (Beecher, 2012:1: 78), the tales
were anything but innocuous in a period in which public morality and
clerical behavior were being closely scrutinized and zealously reformed.

In one tale, the election of a new abbess is deadlocked until a visiting

prelate bids the three contending nuns demonstrate a talent unique to
her (VI.4). The first pisses with amazing accuracy through the eye of
needle, the second farts so adroitly that one of five millet seeds remai
where it is as the other four scatter, while the third catches a peach pit
between her buttocks and crunches it to dust. Censors removed the piss-
ing feat. In “Polissena and the Priest” (I.5) censors changed an
priest into a minor clerk. And so it went with a gluttonous monk (XI.3)
a swindling monk (XI.5), a hermaphroditic nun (XII.9), and a novice
who spends the night in a barn (XIII.11). For the most part, the 1565
round of excisions deleted humorous depictions of disreputable or mis-
behaving priests, monks, and nuns. In contrast to the attention censors paid to indecencies in Straparola’
novellas, they paid no attention at all to the impregnation of a ten-yea
old girl in the fairy tale “Peter the Fool” (III.1). Let us therefore look
carefully at the story’s details, to lay out clearly the story elements that
the 1565 censors found acceptable:
Living opposite Peter’s cottage, a ten-year-old princess sees and laughs
at his “silly antics” each day as he returns from his often fruitl
fishing. When he hooks a magic tuna that can grant wishes, Peter
takes revenge by asking that “Luciana, that saucy minx, the daughter

172 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
of our king, should find herself with child at once” (Straparola, 18
1: 247). Time passes, the pregnancy shows, and by now, Luciana is a
pregnant “child of eleven.” (Ibid.)
There was no stumbling block in “Peter the Fool” for those from wh
Andrea Reuenoldo and Giorgio de’Zilij sought approval for publishing
this text in 1565, even though a ten-year-old girl becomes pregnant by
a malevolent wish and even though that girl is a princess and the medi-
ate impregnator a common fool. To twenty-first-century readers, the
tale would appear to need amending on both moral and socio-political
grounds, but it remained unchanged even as sexual allusions in other
tales were either removed or altered. By 1580 The Pleasant Nights had been put on Parma’s Index Librorum
Prohibitorum (Index of Prohibited Books). Pope Sixtus V followed suit in
1590, putting The Pleasant Nights on the Papal Index, a decision con-
firmed by Pope Clement VIII in 1596 and again in 1600. Nonetheless,
the Pleasant Nights continued to be published in Venice, which closely
guarded its independence vis-à-vis Rome’s intrusive regulatory efforts,
as far as it was practicable to do so. Despite the papal ban Daniel Zane
republished The Pleasant Nights in 1597, but suppressed five stories
(Pirovano, 2001: 71). One detailed the devil’s marriage to Silvia Ballastro
(II.4); a second was the entire story of the election of a new abbess
(VI.4); and another was the story of a monk who marries and then aban-
dons a wife (XI.5), perhaps because it mirrored all too closely the ma
cases of priestly solicitation of women in the confessional brought
before the Venetian and Friuli Inquisitions. The fourth and fifth tales to
be censored were the story of sons who disobeyed their father’s last will
and testament (XII.4) and an irreverent jest about a deacon, a rector,
a peasant and his wife, that leaves the peasant believing an evil spirit

flattened a fruit tart on his wife’s behind (XIII.8). Given the sensibilities
of the late sixteenth century, it was probably not only irreverence but
also reference to an efficacious evil spirit that resulted in the last t
banning. Other tales also suffered cuts in Daniel Zanetti’s 1597 printing:
Gabrina’s infernal conjuring disappeared (VII.1), a pedantic professor
replaced a priest and the bishop of Brescia disappeared (IX.4), as did
sacrilegious last will and testament (X.4) and ecclesiastical referenc
es in
nine other tales (Pirovano, 2001: 71–2). When Daniel Zanetti republished Le Tredici Piacevolissime Notti (The
Thirteen Pleasantest Possible Nights) in 1598, its extended title reas-
sured readers once again that it was expurgated of many errors ( espur-
gate nuouamente da molti errori), as indeed it was. Eight more tales were

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 173
“eliminated or condensed,” in Donato Pirovano’s words, and the censors
modified the fairytale “Adamantina’s Astonishing Doll” (V.2) by short-
ening its introductory paragraph (Pirovano, 2001: 72), although they
left untouched the magical doll that fills her diapers with gold for tho
she loves and on another occasion bites hard into a king’s nether parts.
Although the expurgating process continued, it didn’t affect Straparola’s
fairy tales in Alessandro de’ Vecchi’s 1599 printing.
In Daniel Zanetti’s 1601 reprint, censors returned to “Adamantina’s
Astonishing Doll,” changing the interpretation of its enigma, as they

also did to the enigma of another fairy tale, “Ancilotto.” The two tales’
magic content, however, remained untouched. Two other stories that
involved magic but weren’t fairy tales were expurgated of “errors” of
special interest to ecclesiastical authorities. One tells of the benefic
of the grateful dead, when the spirit of a dead man, in gratitude for hi
burial and the masses said on his behalf, helps the tale’s simple hero to
a wedding with a princess (XI.2). The other relates to the legally and

religiously forbidden necromancy, as Dionigi is apprenticed to master
Lattantio. Did Straparola know of, or had he read Alfonso Valdés’s Due
dialoghi. L’uno di Mercurio et Caronte, l’altro de Lattantio et di uno archi-
diaconio? That “Lattantio” is an archdeacon’s dialogic opponent in a
book put on the Siena Index in 1548 (Grendler, 1977: 79, 79 n 48, 83).
In Straparola’s tale, the young hero Dionigi puts his learning of the
dark arts to such good use that he eventually outwits the necroman-
cer and marries Princess Violante, a wedding that rescues him from
his poverty and makes him rich and happy, as the tale puts it (VIII.4).
With these tales now expurgated of error, Daniel Zanetti’s son Zanetto
Zanetti published Straparola’s Pleasant Nights two more times (Pirovano,
2001: 74–5). In 1601, Pope Clement VIII reaffirmed the book’s unsuit-
ability in the latest Index Librorum Prohibitorum, and after the 1604 and
1608 printings, The Pleasant Nights was printed no more in Italy until
Giuseppe Rua brought out a scholarly edition at the turn of the twenti-
eth century (2 volumes, 1899, 1908). Straparola did not himself differentiate between magic tales in which
pagan or satanic supernaturals work on behalf of a tale’s hero or heroine
on the one hand and fairy tales with beneficent fairies that appear from
nowhere and propel a tale toward a happy ending on the other hand.
The Venetian Inquisition, however, provided clear distinctions by ban-
ning efficacious spirits, whether they be grateful dead or an evil spiri
that a peasant believed had slapped a tart onto his wife’s bottom, but
by showing hardly any interest in Straparola’s fairy tales, except for a
single intrusion into Dionigi and Lattantio to erase its forbidden black

174 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
magic. Straparola’s other fairy tales, with their fairy-mediated magical
assistance that ultimately leads to happy endings, remained untouched
in Italy as long as the collection continued to be printed there.
Straparola’s magic tales and fairy tale magic went to France in 1560,
when Jean Louveau translated the first of Straparola’s two volumes as
Les facetieuses nuictz du Jean Seigneur François Straparole (The Facetious
Nights of John Lord Francis Straparole; Bottigheimer, 2005: 20). To my
knowledge no examination of censorship within the French editions
published between 1560 and 1615 has been yet carried out, and so it
is currently impossible to identify specific points of conflict between
individual tales and French ecclesiastical or secular authorities. In Spain, The Pleasant Nights became Honesto y agradable Entretenimiento
de Damas y Galanes (Respectable and Pleasant Amusement of Ladies and
Gallant Gentlemen), its title claiming a social innocence, the Spanish
definition of which emerges from the pattern of expurgations the book
experienced there. David González Ramírez (2011) postulates a 15
first printing of Francisco Truchado’s translation into Castilian from
an edition that Doris Senn (1993) identifies as the 1565 Italian editi
Although Truchado, and later Juan López de Hoyos, expunged obscene
stories and riddles, citing “la diferencia que hay entre la libertad
y la nuestra” (González Ramírez, 2011a: 1230), he kept the di
behaving monks, nuns, priests, and deacons of the early Italian editions
in contrast to Italian censors’ ongoing post-1565 expurgations of ecc
siastics’ misdeeds. Contrary to expectations, Truchado freely expanded
the book’s depictions of magic. In the case of the Italian edition’s
account of Messer Artilao’s briefly describing drawing a circle with char-
coal to begin his magic (VI.1), Truchado extended the description to
a lengthy paragraph (Senn, 1993: 62). Moreover, he introduced magic
into the frametale, so much so that Senn characterizes the Spanish
translation as a recipe book for producing magical effects without call-
ing on supernatural spirits or powers (ibid.: 63), a kind of manual fo
sixteenth-century parlor tricks. Straparola’s Piacevoli Notti was published in print centers all over
northern Italy from 1551 into the early years of the seventeenth cen-
tury. In France the book’s popular progress began in 1560 and contin-
ued equally as long, while in Spain Honesto y agradable Entretenimiento
was repeatedly published from the late 1570s onward (Senn; González
Ramírez 2011b). And yet, Piacevoli Notti, Facetieuses nuictz, and Honesto
y agradable Entretenimiento ceased publication within a few years of
each other, and after 1615 most of its stories lay unreprinted for nearly
eight decades.

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 175
Giambattista Basile’s fairy tale magic
Literary historians and folklorists have inventoried and identified
Basile’s magic according to motif and tale-type indexes (Schenda,
1977:1: 298–301; Penzer, 1979: 2: 305–21; Canepa, 1999; Zipes, 2001:
passim), and the Basile scholar Nancy Canepa characterizes Basile’s
magic, i.e. magic in Cunto de li Cunti (The Tale of Tales commonly known
as The Pentamerone) as a whole as “dissociated from any religious sys-
tem” (2007: 1). In Basile’s tales, as in Straparola’s, fairies are primarily
beneficent, but in an important distinction, Basile’s fairies often act in
response to a character’s demonstrated kindness and virtue. His gold
or silver automata (Magnanini, 2008: 30) are tiny, unlike the Alf Layla
wa-Layla’s gigantic guardian figures, but their ingenious performances
similarly amaze their beholders. When Basile’s automata are slightly
larger, they help the hapless, unlike the threat that large automata pose
in the earlier Arabic tales. In Basile’s tales, sexual congress is generally
absent in fact, but present in metaphor, with pregnancies often instan-
taneous and usually impersonal. In this respect, Basile’s descriptions of
sexual encounters differ substantially from the very personal penetra-
tions that invited sixteenth-century censorship in tale collections as a
whole and in some of Straparola’s tales in particular. Shapeshifting in
Basile’s tales happens to good and evil alike, whether peasant offspring
or royal child, with further transformations of the inanimate often
moving a plot forward. The plot of “Peruonto” (I.3), Basile’s version of
Straparola’s “Peter the Fool,” demonstrates several of these points:
The lazy Peruonto, sent to gather wood, comes upon three boys
asleep under the blazing sun. He shelters them with tree branches;
they awaken and reward him with the enchantment that he may
gain whatever he wishes for. He wishes to ride upon, instead of car-
rying, the wood he’s gathered, and as it carries him, it cavorts in
front of the king’s palace. The sight of it makes the long-melancholy
Princess Vastolla laugh. In a pique, Peruonto wishes her pregnant by
him, and she eventually delivers twin boys. When they are seven
years old, her father the king searches out the boys’ father by bring-
ing all the men of the realm before them, whereupon they firmly
and decisively attach themselves to Peruonto. The outraged king
commits Peruonto, Vastolla, and the boys to a barrel and has it
thrown into the sea. However, with his gift of making magic wishes,
Peruonto turns the barrel into a fine seagoing vessel, and then into a
palace, while he himself becomes handsome.

176 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
Some time later, Princess Vastolla’s father, out hunting, is overtaken
by darkness. He comes upon a palace, where two little boys inex-
plicably call him “Grandpa,” and where he and his entire court are

served richly and plentifully by invisible hands.
1 The next morning
Vastolla seeks his pardon; the king is charmed by Peruonto’s hand-
someness, and carrying them all home to his palace, he commissions
grand festivities.
In Straparola’s “Peruonto” precursor tale, Pietro angrily impregnates
a child of ten, and pragmatically grants life to the magical tuna he
hooks, because the tuna promises him “any favour he might demand”
and Pietro “fancied he might profit by sparing the fish” (Strapar
1898:1: 245). In contrast, Basile’s Peruonto impregnates a princess of
unspecified age, and his altruism toward three sleeping (fairy) boys sets
in place an important fairy tale modality, the hero or heroine’s intrin-
sic goodness as precipitator of magically good fortune. (Straparola’
Livoretto, as readers of Chapter 7 may remember, was instructed by
his magic horse to assist needful animals, rather than doing so as an
expression of indwelling compassion.) As such, Basile’s Peruonto repre-
sents a decided moral refinement of the characteristics that elicit fair
tale magic assistance. “Peruonto” also incorporates the venerable magic tale trope of tra
formation, even seeming to allude to animal-to-human transformations:
with the hero’s “shaggy head, . . . eyes of an owl, . . . nose of a parrot,
and . . . mouth of a grouper fish . . .” he resembles animal creature
s, and
“barefoot and . . . ragged” he is hardly beauteous at first glance
or later
when his sons recognize him (Basile, 2007: 66). But having wished him-
self improved, he becomes “as handsome as a fairy” (ibid.). Basile even
introduces additional automata into the story from another Italian tale
tradition when “tablecloths of Flanders linen” spread themselves a
heavily laden plates place themselves on the table, which – when eate
clean of their contents – remove themselves, while invisibly performe
lute and tambourine music accompanies the proceedings (ibid.). Basile’s “She-Bear” (I.6) is considerably simpler:
Queen Nardella, dying, tells her husband the King of Dry Rock to
remarry only a woman as beautiful as she. When he chooses his
1 Note this early instance of a trope made famous by Marie-Jeanne Leprince
Beaumont’s “Beauty and the Beast” in the mid-eighteenth century.

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 177
daughter Preziosa, she escapes by biting on a stick that turns her
into a bear. Taking refuge in a forest, she meets the King of Running
Water, who takes her home with him. One day he accidentally sees
her with the stick out of her mouth, falls desperately in love with her,
remaining so even when she returns to her bear form.
The king’s mother engineers the bear’s removal and the king loses
heart, appetite, and health. Relenting, his mother returns the bear,
who now cooks for the king and strews his bed with sweet flowers.
When he kisses her, the stick falls from her mouth; he proposes to
the beautiful girl before him; she accepts; his mother approves; and
wedding bells ring.
Straparola’s earlier “Tebaldo” tale of paternal incest and filial escape to
a royal marriage is of a different ethical order altogether. Its plot incorpo-
rates a father’s grisly revenge on his grandchildren, which the daughter’s
royal husband brutally avenges. In narrative terms, Basile slightly dena
tures paternal incest by placing greater emphasis on the therianthropic
stick that changed Princess Preziosa into and out of the shape of a bear
In so doing, Basile did not so much deal with incest as divert the tale
away from it, while substituting a conjure-less transformation-into-a-be
for Straparola’s escape-in-a-chest. Whereas Princess Preziosa’s ursine transformation comes from an
outside source, a stick, Basile’s Zezolla, in the prototypical European
“Cinderella” tale, puts her own powers into play, when
she asks her father to greet the dove of the fairies on her behalf and
to ask her to send something. “And if you forget, may you be unable
to go forward or backward” (Basile, 2007: 85). When the ship on
which her father is sailing comes to a halt, the captain explains that
a passenger’s forgotten promise to his daughter has caused it to stop
stock still.Zezolla murders one stepmother to gain – she hopes – a better
one, but is soon disappointed by the large family of girls the second
stepmother brings with her. However, the gifts sent to her by the
dove of the fairies produce a magic tree that clothes her regally, so
that she can attend royal balls, where a prince falls in love with and
marries her.
Zezolla’s opening speech to her father, with its retributory threat,
intimates that she herself possesses indwelling magic abilities. These,
together with the deadly directness with which she murders her first

178 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
stepmother, suggest a kinship between the Zezolla character and the
sorceress Medea as depicted in ancient Greek tragedy and in Ovid’s
Metamorphoses. Indeed, this apparent quotation from an ancient imagi-
nary is characteristic of the rich and varied content that the classically
schooled Basile introduced into his fairy tale repertoire. In this case,
Zezolla’s murdering her stepmother lay so far outside evolving fairy tale
norms that it was excised from its next seventeenth-century realization.
Sexual congress represents a second area of evolution within fairy tale
magic. Directly contravening the Catholic Reformation’s intentness on
raising moral standards from youth onward, Basile embeds sexual con-
gress in The Tale of Tales, but disguises it within a system of elaborate
metaphors. “Sun, Moon, and Talia” (V.5) shows the process neatly:
Princess Talia falls apparently dead when a flax splinter pricks her finger.
Her father places her on a chair in the palace and departs forever.
Some time later a king enters the palace and finds Talia sitting on the
canopied chair. Inflamed by her beauty, he carries her to a bed and
picks “the fruits of love.” Nine months later the still-sleeping p
bears twins, who – in their search for sustenance – suck on her finger
and draw out the splinter, so that she awakens. (Basile, 2007: 414)
Now begins a tale of bigamy (the king is already married), jealousy,
attempted murder, and intended cannibalism (all by the legitimate
wife), capped by a summary execution (of the same wife), forgiveness
(for the cook who saves the children’s lives), and a wedding (to the for-
merly sleeping Talia), followed by the heroine’s enjoyment of a long life
with her husband and children. The tale’s magical death-like sleep and
its happily-ever-after ending would enter the canon of fairy tale plots
when Charles Perrault reworked it in the 1690s, but the salacious parts
of the tale survived only in a few witty Perrauldian asides. To be published in Naples, Basile’s tales had to comply with censor-
ship requirements set by its Spanish governors, and those continued the
regulations of the 1596 Spanish Index, which remained in force until
the mid-1700s (Leathes et al., 1934:1: 607) and whose earlier incarna-
tions had determined what would be censored and what would be
permitted to remain in the Spanish translation of Straparola’s Pleasant
Nights. To be sold outside Naples in lands guided by the Roman Index,
Basile – or perhaps his sister Adriana who shepherded the tales throu
publication after his death – scrupulously avoided satanic figures an
substituted literary metaphors for narrative sex and sexuality (Canepa,
1999: 217–23; Bottigheimer, 2003).

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 179
Basile’s tales, like Straparola’s, are marked by sudden appearances of
marvelous, but not necessarily magic-working, creatures. This aspect
brings them close to “the marvelous” itself and thus implicates a differ-
ent, but closely related, discourse.
Marvels and fairy tale magic
Alongside fairy tales’ evolving magic were the prodigious marvels that
filled so much cheap print in the sixteenth and seventeenth centuries
(Schenda, 1961). Prodigies often consisted of an extraordinary event,
such as a precipitation of frogs and fishes that is presented as a true
account of something that happened in an actual (but always distant)
location. The hearsay aspect of prodigies makes them an early modern
form of contemporary urban legends, as does their distant geographical
sourcing; distancing in the chapbook or broadside narratives provides
the same doubled mediacy, which in the modern world is rendered by
introductory phrases such as “One night a friend of my aunt’s saw . . .”
or “My son’s roommate told him that . . .” Palpable marvels differ from hearsay ones, in that sixteenth- and
seventeenth-century viewers could actually see them with their own
eyes, as Suzanne Magnanini reports in Fairy Tale Science: Monstrous
Generation in the Tales of Straparola and Basile (2008: 131–40). Freaks of
nature resulting from birth defects were exhibited across Europe. Part o
a public discourse about monstrosity, naturally born deformed humans
and animals were often exhibited alongside fabricated monsters, such
as multi-headed hydras, and both kinds of aberrant creature were illus-
trated in learned books as well as in chapbooks and broadsides. Literary
likenesses of monsters made their way onto the pages of Straparola’s
Pleasant Nights and Basile’s Tale of Tales (Magnanini, 2008: 123–5,
130–5), where Magnanini understands their appearance as exemplifying

Straparola’s and Basile’s engagement with scientific theory and practice
(2008: 163).
Fairy tale magic for the modern world
From medieval romances Straparola chose beneficent magic for two
very different readerships among Venetian book-buyers. One consisted
of prosperous merchants and the nobly born, two legally distinct groups
who sometimes mixed at social or literary gatherings. Both might also
be inclined to read Straparola’s restoration fairy tales, in which princes
and princesses, kings and queens were in title roles, in which adversiti

180 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
and sufferings comprised narrative action, and in which magically
assisted recoverings of royal status provided a tale’s happy ending. For
an artisanal readership for whom a happy ending here on earth, if not a
real possibility, was at least a conceivable narrative outcome, Straparola’s
rise fairy tale plot was a new and potentially attractive genre, in which
poor boys and girls occupied the same positions that royalty did in his
restoration fairy tales. Rise fairy tales maintained the same kinds of suf-
fering and adversity with which royalty wrestled, but their poor heroes’

and heroines’ magically mediated marriage with a prince or princess,
king or queen was a heaven-on-earth happy ending that entailed a
dramatic social and economic rise from humble beginnings. For their
part, wealthy merchants and noble citizens who had been schooled
in the classics could have read the tales that expressed hope for poor
artisans from the point of view of Aristotelian literary expectations that
encouraged laughter at the comic idea of humbly born boys or girls
rising to royal status. Whatever the poor and the privileged readerships

actually thought, Straparola’s rise and restoration fairy tales survived in
luxuriously bound sixteenth- and early seventeenth-century volumes in
Italian, Spanish, and French.
In the history of fairy tale magic, Straparola’s rise and restoration fairy
tale plots were the first of their kind, and thus his was a formal contr
tion. Basile, on the other hand, with his classically schooled and wide-
ranging imagination and his keenly observant eye for Neapolitan detail,
provided content drawn from the ancient, medieval, and early modern
literary worlds to fill the structure that Straparola had created. The
particular forms that magic took in Straparola’s and Basile’s fairy tales,
however, were to be further refined before fairy tale magic triumphed in
the early modern and modern world. Fairy tale magic’s final transformation evolved in the course of
the seventeenth-century Catholic Reformation. The principal aspect
of the thoroughgoing social engineering undertaken by the Church
involved delineating differences between ignorance and innocence
(Bottigheimer, 1994a) and then implementing practices to foster social
and sexual innocence. One such practice encouraged becoming like a
child, returning to a state of spiritual childhood by contemplating and
imitating the Infant Jesus. Labeled repuerescantia, the spiritual discipline
of an adult’s losing one’s Self in the contemplation of Jesus’s infancy
was meant to lead to spiritual, social, and sexual innocence. This argu-
ment, put forward by Yvan Loskoutoff in La Sainte et la Fée (1987), goes
a long way toward accounting for the childlike aspects of fairy tales and
fairy tale magic created in 1690s France.

The Evolution of Fairy Tale Magic 181
The 1690s produced two kinds of magic narrative. The first to appear
in print was Mme d’Aulnoy’s fairyland fiction, “L’Île de la Félicité”
(The Island of Happiness, 1690), with its parallel world into which it
fairy queen disappeared with her human beloved, and from which he
emerged only to be killed as he performed a good deed. (See Chapter 1
for discussion of fairyland fictions.) The second was Charles Perrault’s
first fairy tale, plot in “Peau d’Asne” (Donkeyskin, 1694), with all of its
action in the earthly world (Bottigheimer, 2012: 101–11). Perrault composed and published “Donkeyskin” in verse, a form he
had successfully employed in the past, but that does not obscure the
textual fact that “Donkeyskin” amalgamates two prior tales, Strapa
“Tebaldo” (I.4) and Basile’s “She-Bear” (II.6; both discussed above). His
rewriting nudges the resulting plot toward narrative innocence and
reconciliation, by ignoring the lengthy coda of Straparola’s “Tebaldo”
(vicious paternal revenge) and excising the framing tales from Basile’
“She-Bear” and Straparola’s “Tebaldo” (Bottigheimer, 2008:182–6).
Perrault introduces other changes that demonstrate his sensitivity to
reigning social and literary conventions in 1690s Paris, like a princely
menagerie and details of its heroine’s wardrobe; his concluding redemp-
tion of an incestuously motivated father shows his deference to the
morally reformist zeal of Mme de Maintenon, Louis XIV’s morganatic
wife (ibid.: 187) and to the widely influential Catholic Reformation
concept of repuerescantia. Perrault adapted many tales from Straparola’s Pleasant Nights and
Basile’s Tale of Tales, and his rewriting of each bears witness to his
Rococo canonization of Straparola’s Renaissance vision of magic.
Each rewriting also demonstrates Perrault’s de facto acceptance of
church-driven editorial excisions of demonic magic and the equally
church-driven redirection of magic tales toward childlike innocence.
Above all, Perrault seizes upon Basile’s introduction of magic assis-
tance as a reward for goodness and virtue, making it central to his
vision of fairy tale magic’s deployment. Others who write in the fairy
tale and the fairyland fiction genres at the end of the seventeenth cen-
tury, like Marie-Jeanne Lhéritier, Marie-Catherine d’Aulnoy, Catherine
Bernard, and Charlotte Rose de La Force, make many of the same
adaptations, refining and canonizing the magic of Straparola’s fairy
tales and the content of Basile’s fairy tales for future writers. These
women, however, do not incorporate into their fairyland fictions
the tenet of repuerescantia although they do for the most part subscribe
to the notion that pre-existing virtue is necessary for a fairy’s magical

182 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
1690s fairy tale magic provided the template for fairy tales and
fairyland fictions composed for children 2 for nearly three centuries.
Exotic variations entered from Antoine Galland’s translation of the
Arabian Nights, especially from a group of tales contributed by a Syrian
Christian in 1709 that included “Aladdin” and “Ali Baba and the
Thieves” (Bottigheimer, 2014). But the expectation that fairies were
female and that they selflessly brought good fortune to those who were
themselves good would dominate fairy tale magic until the late twentieth
century and beyond.
2 Erotic and exotic fairy tales composed for adults took root at the beginning
of the eighteenth century and thrived for decades. But that is another subject

For millennia the gods and demons in brief narratives wielded magic
mainly in their own interest. Changing that paradigm required a
changed vision of the human condition vis-à-vis the world of demons
and divinities. It also required a new belief in the importance, desirab
and legitimacy of earthly well-being, rather than postponing well-being
until a heavenly afterlife. These changes occurred at a time when the
technology of print could confirm and spread them, resulting in the
phenomenon of fairy tale magic as it has come down to us.I am not a specialist historian of most of the eras whose magic tales
I have analyzed, nor am I a specialist in the history of magic as it has
been studied by adepts and practiced by them over the millennia. If
I have made mistakes in correlating tale content with historical condi-
tions, I welcome corrections to and amplifications of my conclusions.
On the other hand, I am confident of the validity of my observations
and conclusions about individual tales, the tales of an era, and groups
of those tales in comparison with one another. The mood of fairy tale studies is currently contentious, but I hope
for dialogue that will refine the results of my efforts to understand th
varieties in perceptions of narrative magic, its overall position, and
the way in which magic seems to have been understood in relation
to human beings, that is, the human protagonists of magic tales, over
millennia. Magic that helps the suffering recurs sporadically in this
account. Magic that brings about an earthly happiness that is valorized
as such constitutes fairy tale magic and is different. The very concep-
tion of fairy tale magic emerges gradually at the end of the Middle
Ages. Its birth as an enduring tradition is marked by the fairy tales that
Straparola inserted into The Pleasant Nights in sixteenth-century Italy.
The idea of a magically-mediated happy ending has grown steadily in

184 Magic Tales and Fairy Tale Magic
imaginative power, paradigmatic strength, and literary influence for
500 years.
Two or three medieval tales, widely separated in time and geography,
predate the post-1550 early modern and modern model of magic as
mediator of a happy ending, but the overall plot of each of these tales
is conditioned by the stated centrality of divine power. It is only in
Renaissance Italy that a narrative form develops that unites the prin-
cipal markers of the modern fairy tale: magic that a protagonist can
rely on for help, magic whose deliverer has a narrative life only among
humans, and not in a separate parallel fairyland realm, Olympic com-
munity, or heavenly home. That magic valorizes a happy ending here
on earth consisting of the joys of material plenty, marriage, and family. These markers, along with the establishment of a body of stories
embodying these characteristics, separate the modern fairy tale from
earlier instances of magically mediated happy endings, such as that
in the ancient Egyptian story of the shipwrecked sailor or in that of
the medieval Jewish Solomon’s daughter in a tower. In the European
context, Liom/nbruno begins the process that Straparola catalyzes, Basile
completes, and Perrault refines. Fairy tales, with their magically mediated worldly happy endings,
have common denominators far different from magic tales. Their char-
acters behave in ways that express expectations that arise from urban
life and a background money economy. They seek not a heavenly
reward but heaven on earth, and fairy tale magic gives it to them.

Abbott, Nabia. 1949. “A Ninth Century Fragment of the ‘Thousand Nights.’”
Journal of Near Eastern Studies 8.3: 129–61.
Abegg, Jr, Peter Flint, and Eugene Ulrich. 1999. The Dead Sea Scrolls Bible: The
Oldest Known Bible Translated for the First Time into English. New York: Harper
[Adenet le Roi]. Histoire Plaisante et recreative dv noble et excellent Cheualier Clamades, & de la belle Clermonde ensemble leurs estranges aduentures. Avec les
faits & gestes des Roys, Princes & grands Seigneurs qui sont contenuz en
la presente
histoire. Troyes: Chez Nicolas Ovdot, Imprimeur demeurant en la ruë nostre
Dame, à l’Enseigne Chapon d’Or. [Oxford Bodleian 1529 Douce R.365].
Adenet le Roi. 2010. Le Cheval volant en bois. Édition des deux mises en prose du Cleomadès d’après le manuscrit Paris, BnF fr. 12561 et l’imprimé de Guillaume
Leroy (Lyon, ca. 1480). Eds Fanny Maillet and Richard Trachsler. Paris: Éditions
Classiques Garnier.
Adler, Albert. 1950. “The Structural Meaning of Berta da li pe grandi.”
Italica: 101–8.
al-Nadîm, Ibn Ishâq. See Dodge.
Anderson, Graham. 2000. Fairytale in the Ancient World. New York: Routledge.
Apocrypha. See Old Testament Epigrapha.
Apuleius, Lucius. 1965. Apuleius. The Golden Ass Being the Metamorphoses of Lucius Apuleius. Trans. W. Adlington, rev. S. Gaselee. (=Loeb Classical Library 44).
Cambridge: Harvard University Press/London: William Heinemann.
———. 1951. Apuleius, The Transformations of Lucius otherwise known as The Golden Ass. Trans. Robert Graves. New York: Farrar, Straus and Giroux.
———. 1997. Apuleius of Madauros Pro se de magia: apologia. Trans. and ed.,Vincent
Hunink. Amsterdam: J.C. Gieben.
Arabian Nights. See also Thousand and One Nights; Tausendundeine Nacht.
Arabian Nights, Tales of 1001 Nights. 2008. 3 vols. Trans. Malcolm C. Lyons. London: Penguin.
Arabian Nights, The. Based on the Text of the Fourteenth-Century Syrian Manuscript Edited by Muhsin Mahdi. 1990. Trans. Husain Haddawy. New York: W.W. Norton.
Arabian Nights Encyclopedia. See Marzolph and van Leeuwen.
Arbolí y Faraudo, Servando and Simon de la Rosa y Lopez et al. 1888–1948. Biblioteca Colombina, Catálogo de sus libros impresos . Seville: E. Rasco.
Asinarius. 1983. ed. and trans. Simond Rizzardi. In: Commedie latine del XII e XIII secolo. Ed. F. Bertini et al. 6 vols. Genoa: Istituto di filologia classica e medi-
evale. 4: 137–251.
Axon, William E.A. 1904. “Some Twentieth-century Italian Chapbooks. ”
Transactions of the Bibliographical Society 19: 239–55.
Barbiellini Amidei, Beatrice. 2000. Ponzela gaia: Galvono e la donna serpent . Rome:
Carocci Editore.
Barillari, Sonia Maura. 2007. “Il Liombruno: modelli mitici e modelli
letterari.” In: Il cantare italiano fra folklore e letteratura. Eds Luisa Rubini Messerli and
Michelangelo Picone. Florence: Leo Olschki. 183–93.
Works Cited and Referenced

186 Works Cited
Bartra, Roger. 1994. Wild Men in the Looking Glass. The Mythic Origins of European
Otherness. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press.
Basford, Kathleen. 2004. The Green Man. Cambridge UK: D.S. Brewer.
Basile, Giambattista. 1634. Lo cunto de li cunti overo La Trattenemiento de’’Peccerille. De Gian Alessio Abbatutis. Day 1. Naples: Ottavio Beltrano.
———. Day 2. Naples: Ottavio Beltrano.
———. Day 3. Naples: Lazzaro Scoriggio.
———. 1635. Day 4. Naples: Lazzaro Scoriggio.
———. 1636. Naples: Ottavio Beltrano.
———. 1985. Lo cunto de li cunti. Ed. and trans. Michele Rak. Milan: Garzanti.
———. 2000. Giambattista Basile. Das Märchen der Märchen. Das Pentamerone. Trans.
Hanno Helbling, Rudolf Schenda, Luisa Rubini, Alfred Messerli, Doris Sen
Johann Pögl, Dieter Richter. Munich: C.H. Beck.
———. 2007. Giambattista Basile’s Tale of the Tales, or Entertainment for Little Ones .
Trans., ed., and intro. Nancy Canepa. Detroit: Wayne State University Press.
Beecher, Donald. 2012. See Straparola.
Beit-Arié, Malachi. 1985. “Ms Oxford, Bodleian Library, Bodl. Or. 135” Tarbiz 54.4: 631–4.
Ben-Amos, Dan. 2010. “Straparola: The Revolution That Was Not.” Journal of
American Folklore 123.490: 426–46.
Bendinelli Predelli, Maria. 1984. “Il caso del ‘Cantare Fiabesco’
Italiano.” 127–41. I Cantari: Struttura e Tradizione. Eds Michelangelo Picone and Maria Bendinelli
Predelli. Florence: Olschki.
———. 2004. “Monstrous Children of Lancval: The Cantare of Ponzela Gaia.” In: Courtly Arts and the Art of Courtliness. Eds Keith Busby and Christopher
Kleinhenz. Woodbridge UK: D.S. Brewer. 543–52.
Benucci, Elisabetta, Roberta Manetti and Franco Zabagli, eds. 2002. Cantari
Novellistici dal Tre al Cinquecento. 2 vols. Rome: Salerno. (=I Novellieri Italiani 17.)
Berdichevsky, Micah Joseph. See Bin-Gorion, Mischa Joseph.
Berechiah ben Natronai, ha-Nakdan. 1967. Fables of a Jewish Aesop. Trans. Moses
Hadas and Fritz Kredel. New York: Columbia University Press.
Berlioz, Jacques, Claude Brémond, Catherine Velay-Vallantin, eds. 1989. Formes
Médiévales du conte merveilleux. Paris: Stock.
Bernheimer, Richard. 1979. Wild Men in the Middle Ages. New York: Octagon Books.
Bertetti, P. 2004. “Lo spazio e l’essere. Figure dell’accesso nei Cantari di Liombruno.” L’immagine riflessa. Testi, Società, Culture. NS 13.2: 45–64.
Bin-Gorion, Micha Joseph (=Micah Joseph Berdyczewski/Berdichevsky).191
6; rpt 31924 Der Born Judas: Legenden, Märchen und Erzählungen. 6 vols. Leipzig: Insel
———. 1976. Mimekor Yisrael: Classical Jewish Folktales . Trans. I.M. Lask, intro.
Dan Ben-Amos. Bloomington: Indiana University Press. (Translation of Der
Born Judas: Legenden, Märchen, und Erzählungen)
———. 1990. Mimekor Yisrael: Classical Jewish Folktales Abridged and Annotated Edition. Annotated by Dan Ben-Amos. Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
Binkley, Peter, ed. 1997. Pre-Modern Encyclopaedic Texts. Leiden: Brill.
Blécourt, Willem de. 1999. “The Witch, her victim, the unwitcher and the researcher. The continued existence of traditional witchcraft.” In: Witchcraft
and Magic in Europe. The Twentieth Century, Bengt Ankarloo, Stuart Clark, and

Works Cited 187
Willem de Blécourt. Philadelphia; University of Pennsylvania Press and
Athlone. 141–219.
Boccaccio, Giovanni. 1955. The Decameron of Giovanni Boccaccio. Trans. Frances Winwar. New York: Random House.
———. 2012. “The Genealogy of the Pagan Gods (begun circa 1350).” Ed. and trans. Suzanne Magnanini. In: Fairy Tales Framed: Early Forewords, Afterwards, and
Critical Words. Ed. Ruth B. Bottigheimer. Albany: State University of New York
Press. 13–21.
Bohak, Gideon. 2008. Ancient Jewish Magic. A History. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Bonafin, Massimo. 1993. “Impegni presei per gioco. Vanti du cavaliere nei l’antic letteratura italiana.” In: Passare el tiempo: La letteratura del gioco e
dell’intrattenimento dal XII al XVI secolo. Rome: Salerno Editrice. 575–608.
Bonomo, Giuseppe. 1958. “Motivi magico-stregonici in una novella dell
o Straparola.” La Rassegna della letteratura italiana series 7 vol. 62.3: 365–9.
Bottigheimer, Ruth B. 1989a. “Beauty and the Beast: Marriage and Disenchantment –
Motif and Motivation.” Midwestern Folklore 15.2: 79–88.
——— 1989b. “Cupid and Psyche vs. Beauty and the Beast: The M
ilesian and the Modern.”Marvels and Tales 3.1: 4–14.
———. 1990. “Motif, Meaning, and Editorial Change in Grimms’ Tales: One plot,
three tales, and three different stories.” D’un conte ... à l’autre. Eds Veronika
Görög-Karady and Michèle Chiche. Paris: Centre National des Rec
Scientifiques. 541–53.
———. 1994a. “The Child-Reader of Children’s Bibles 1656–1753.” In: Infant Tongues: The Voice of the Child in Literature. Eds Elizabeth Goodenough, Mark
Heberle, and Naomi Sokoloff, Detroit: Wayne State University Press. 44–56.
———. 1994b. “Sacred Stories, Eternal Words, and Holy Pictures.” Exhibit Catalog (typescript). Houghton Library, Harvard University.
———. 1996. The Bible for Children: From the Age of Gutenberg to the Present. New Haven/London: Yale University Press.
———. 2000. “Fertility Control and the Birth of the Modern Fairy Tale Heroine.” Marvels and Tales 14.1: 64–79.
———. 2002. Fairy Godfather. Straparola, Venice, and the Fairy Tale Tradition.
Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania Press.
———. 2003. “Geschlecht und Gefahr bei Basile im historischen
-narrativen Kontext: Märchenhafte Sexualität oder gefährdete Märchenheld innen?” In:
Gian Battista Basile e l’invenzione della fiaba . Ed. Alfred Messerli. Ravenna:
Longo Editore. 241–357.
———. 2005. “France’s First Fairy Tales: The Rise and Restoration Narratives of ‘Les Facetieuses Nuictz du Seigneur François Straparole’.” Marvels & Tales 19.1:
———. 2008. “Before Contes du temps passé (1697): Charles Perrault’s ‘Grisélidis’ (1691), ‘Souhaits ridicules’ (1693), and ‘Peau d’asne’
(1694).” Romanic Review
———. 2009. Fairy Tales: A New History. Albany: State University of New York Press.
———. 2010. “Fairy Godfather, Fairy-Tale History, and Fairy-Tale Scholarship: A Response to Dan Ben-Amos, Jan M. Ziolkowski, and Francisco Vaz da Silva.”
Journal of American Folklore. 123.490: 447–96.

188 Works Cited
———. 2012a. “Fairy Tales and Fairyland Fictions.” In: Fairy Tales Framed. Early Forewords, Afterwords, and Critical Words. Albany NY: State University of
New York Press.
———. 2014. “East Meets West in Thousand and One Nights.” Marvels and Tales
27.1: forthcoming.
Briggs, Katherine. 1976. An Encyclopedia of Fairies. Hobgoblins, Brownies, Bogies, and Other Supernatural Creatures. New York: Pantheon.
———. 1978. The Vanishing People: Fairy Lore and Legends. New York: Pantheon.
Briggs, Robin. 2006. Witches and Neighbors. The Social and Cultural Context of European Witchcraft. New York: Viking.
Brown, Patricia Fortini. 1997. Art and Life in Renaissance Venice . New York: Abrams.
Brucker, Charles. 2011. “The Fables of Marie de France and the Mirror of Pri
nces.” In: A Companion to Marie de France. Ed. Logan Whalen. Leiden: Brill. 209–36.
Das Buch der wundersamen Geschichten. Erzählungen aus der Welt von 1001 Nacht. 1999. Ed. Ulrich Marzolph. Munich: C.H. Beck.
Burgess, Glyn S. 1987. The Lais of Marie de France: Text and Context . Athens GA:
University of Georgia Press.
Brunner-Traut, Emma. 1974. Altägyptische Tiergeschichte und Fabel. 4th edition. Darmstadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft.
Canepa, Nancy L. 1999. From Court to Forest: Giambattista Basile’s Lo cunto de li cunti and the Birth of the Literary Fairy Tale . Detroit: Wayne State University Press.
———. 2007. “Introduction.” In: Giambattista Basile’s The Tale of Tales, or Entertainment for Little Ones. Ed. and trans. Nancy L. Canepa. Detroit MI:
Wayne State University Press. 1–31.
———. See also Basile.
Chernick, Michael. 2007. “Marie de France in the Synagogue.” Exemplaria 19.1: 183–205.
Chraïbi, Aboubakr. 2008. Les Mille et une Nuits. Histoire du texte et classification. Paris: L’Harmattan.
Cirino d’Ancona. 1914. Storia di Liombruno. In Fiore di leggende: Cantari antichi. Ed. Ezio Levi. Bari: G. Laterza & figli. 59–87.
———. 1962. [Liombruno]. In Poeti minori del Trecento. Ed. Natalino Sapegno (=Letteratura Italiana – Storia e Testi 10). Milano–Napoli: Riccardo Ricciardi. 10:
———. 2002. Liombruno. Ed. Roberta Manetti. In: Cantari Novellistici dal Tre al Cinquecento. 2 vols. Eds Elisabetta Benucci, Roberta Manetti, and Franco
Zabagli. Intro. Domenico De Robertis. Rome: Salerno Editrici. (= I Novellieri
Italiani 17.1) 1: 303–39.
———. 1976. The Story of Lionbruno. Ed. Beatrice Corrigan. Toronto: Toronto Public Library.
Clamades. See Adenet le Roi.
Clausen-Stolzenburg, Maren. 1995. Märchen und mittelalterliche Literaturtradition. Heidelberg: C. Winter.
Cleomades. See Adenet le Roi
Cornazzano, Antonio. 1967. Sprichwortnovellen. Hanau: Müller und Krapenheuer.
Coseriu, Annemaria. 1987. “Zensur und Literatur in der italienschen R
enaissance des XVI. Jahrhunderts: Baldassare Castigliones Libro del Cor

tegiano als Paradigma.”
In: Literatur zwischen immanenter Bedingtheit und äusseren Zwang: Zwei Studien
zum Cinquecento . Ed. Alfred Noyer-Weidner (= Romanica Moacensia 26).
Tübingen: Gunter Narr. 1–121.

Works Cited 189
Cottino-Jones, Marga. 2000. “Princesses, Kings, and the Fantastic: A
Re-Vision of the Language of Representation in the Renaissance.” Italian Quarterly 37.145–6:
Courtès, Noémie. 2004. L’écriture de l’enchantement. Magie et magiciens dans la literature française du XVIIe siècle. Paris: Champion.
Dane, Joseph A. 2003. The Myth of Print Culture: Essays on Evidence, Textuality, and Bibliographical Method. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
Daxelmüller, Christoph. 2006. Review of Ursula Brunold-Bigler, Teufelsmacht und Hexenwerk. Lehrmeinungen und Exempel in der Magiologia des Bartholomäus
Anhorn (1616–1700). Chur: Kommissionsverlag Desertina, 2003 (= Quellen und
Forschungen zur Bündner Geschichte 12). Fabula 47.3/4: 324–7.
Dead Sea Scrolls Bible, The. See Abegg.
Defrance, Anne and Jean-François Perrin, eds. 2007. Le conte en ses paroles: La figuration de l’oralité dans le conte merveilleux du Classicisme aux Lumières. Paris:
Delcorno Branca, Daniela. 1984. “Il Cavaliere dalle Armi Incantate: C
ircolazione di un Modella Narrativo Arturiano.” In: I Cantari struttura e Tradizione. Atti
del Convegno Internazionale di Montreal: 10–20 marzo 1981. Eds Michelangelo
Picone and M. Bendinelle Predelli. Florence: Leo S. Olschki. 103–26.
Denecke, Ludwig. 1977. “Apollonius von Tyrus.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 1: cols 667–74.
Dodge, Bayard. 1970. The Fihrist of al-Nadim.A Tenth-Cdentury Survey of Muslim Culture. New York: Columbia University Press.
Donghi, Beatrice Solinas. 1993. La fiaba come racconto. Milano: Mondadori.
Duni, Matteo. 1999. Tra religion e magia. Storia del prete modenese Guglielmo Campana (1460?–1541). Florence: Olschki (=Studi e texti per la storia religiosa
del Cinquecento 9).
———. 2007. Under the Devil’s Spell: Witches, Sorcerers, and the Inquisition in Renaissance Italy. Syracuse: Syracuse University Press.
Eichel-Lojkine, Patricia. 2013. Contes en Réseaux. L’émergence du conte sur la scène littéraire europénne. Geneva: Droz.
Einbinder, Susan. 2000. “Signs of Romance: Hebrew Prose and the Twelfth- Century Renaissnce.” In: Jews and Christians in Twelfth-Century Europe.
Eds Michael A. Signer, and John Van Engen. Notre Dame IN: Notre Dame
University Press. 221–34.
Eisenstein, Elizabeth L. 1979. The Printing Press as an Agent of Change:
Communications and Cultural Transformation in Early Modern Europe . Cambridge:
Cambridge University Press.
———. 1983. The Printing Revolution in Early Modern Europe. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Elisséeff, Nikita. 1949. Thèmes et Motifs des Mille et Une Nuits. Essai de Classification .
Beirut: Institut Français de Damas.
El-Shamy, Hasan. 1990. “Oral Traditional Tales and ‘Thousand Nights and One Night’: The Demographic Factor.” The Telling of Stories. Approaches to a
Traditional Craft. Eds Morten Nojgaard et al. Odense: Odense University Press.
Elstein, Yoav. 2006. The Theme of ‘The King D[a]ughter Locked-Up in a Tower’: The Unfolding of the Versions from Midrash Tanhuma to Bialik’s ‘Legend of the
Three and the Four.’ In: Encyclopedia of the Jewish Story . Eds Yoav Elstein, Avidov
Lipsker, and Rella Kushelevsky. Ramat-Gan Israel: Bar-Ilan University Press.

190 Works Cited
——— and Avidov Lipsker. 2004. An Outline of the Thematology of the Jewish People. In: Encyclopedia of Jewish Story. Ramat-Gan Israel: Bar-Ilan University
Press. Trans. Ruth Bar-Ilan as The Homogeneous Series in the Literature of the
Jewish People: A Thematological Methodology.
tology/essay.html 26 pp.
Euripides. 1974. Medea. In: Three Plays of Euripides. Alceetis, Medea, The Bacchae. Trans. Paul Roche. New York: Norton. 33–77.
Everson, Jane E. 2001. The Italian Romance Epic in the Age of Humanism: The Matter of Italy and the World of Rome. Oxford / New York: Oxford University Press.
Faroqhî, Suraîya. 1987. “The Venetian presence in the Ottoman Empire, 1600– 30.” In: The Ottoman Empire and the World Economy. Ed. Huri Islamog ˘lu-Iˉ
Cambridge: Cambridge University Press. 311–44.
Fehling, Detlev. 1989. Herodotus and his Sources: Citation, Invention, and Narrative Art. Trans. J.G. Howie. Leeds: Francis Cairns.
Ferrand, Gabriel. 1911. “Sur le livre des 101 Nuits.” Journal Asiatique. 10th series, 17: 309–18.
Fischer, Henry G. 1987. “The Ancient Egyptian Attitude Towards the Monstrous.” In: Anne E. Farkas, Prudence O. Harper, and Evelyn B. Harrison. Monsters and
Demons in the Ancient and Medieval Worlds. Papers Presented in Honor of Edith
Porada. Mainz: Philipp von Zabern. 13–26 + plates.
Five Books of Moses, The. A New Translation with Introductions, Commentary, and
Notes. 1995. Trans. Everett Fox. New York: Schocken.
Fleith, Barbara and Alexander Wenzel. 1996. “Legenda aurea.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 8: cols. 846–55.
Frenzel, Elisabeth. 1984. “Floire et Blancheflor.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 4: cols.
Fussel, Stephan. 2005. Gutenberg and the Impact of Printing. Trans. Douglas Martin. Aldershot and Burlington VT: Ashgate.
Garçín, Jean-Claude. 2013. Pour Une Lecture Historique des Mille et Une Nuits: Essai sur l’édition de Bulaq (1835). Arles: Sindbad Actes Sud.
Gärtner, Hans. 1981. “Claudius Aelianus.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 3: cols 66–74.
Gaster, Moses. 1924. Exempla of the rabbis; being a collection of exempla, apologues, and tales culled from Hebrew manuscripts and rare Hebrew books. London /
Leipzig: Asia Publishing House.
Gatti, Paolo. 1991. “Elementi favolistici nell’Asinarius e nel Rap
ularius.” In: La Favolistica Latina in distici elegiaci: Atti del convegno internazionale, Assisi 1990.
Eds Giuseppe Catanzaro and Francesco Santucci. Assisi: Accademia Properz
del Subasio Dentro Studi Poesia Latina in Distici Elegiaci. 149–60.
Gaudefroy-Demombynes, Maurice. 1909. “Les Mille et Une Nuits (1) XI
I Le Cadre des Cent-et-une Nuits.” Revue des Traditions Populaires 24.7: 209–18.
Gobi Junior, Johannes. c1323–30; 1991. La Scala coeli de Johannes Gobi. Ed. Marie-Anne Polo de Beaulieu. Paris: Édition du Centre National de la Recherche Scientifique.
Goitein, S.D. 1958. “The Oldest Documentary Evidence for the Title Alf-Laila wa- Laila.” Journal of the American Oriental Society 78.4: 301–2.
González Ramírez, David. 2011. “La ‘princeps’ del Honesto y Agradable
Entretenimiento de Damas y Galanes (Zaragoza, 1578) de Straparola: Hallazgo de
una Editión perdida.” AnMal 34.2: 517–28.
———. 2011a. “En el origen de la novela corta del Siglo d’
Oro: los novellieri en España.” ARBOR Cienzia, Pensamiento y Cultura 187.752: 1221–43.

Works Cited 191
———. 2011b. ““En el origen de la novela corta del Siglo d
’Oro: los novellieri desde sus paratextos.” ARBOR Cienzia, Pensamiento y Cultura 188.756: 813–28.
Grendler, Paul F. 1977. The Roman Inquisition and the Venetian Press, 1540–1605. Princeton: Princeton University Press.
Grimm, Wilhelm and Jacob Grimm. 1823, 1826; 1969. German Popular Stories. Trans. Edgar Taylor. London: John Camden Hotten.
———. 1856;1980. Brüder Grimm. Kinder- und Hausmärchen. Stuttgart: Reclam. 3 vols.
———. c.1868. Grimm’s (sic) Fairy Tales. London: Frederick Warne.
Grotzfeld, Heinz. 1984. Die Erzählungen aus Tausendeiner Nacht. Darmstsadt: Wissenschaftliche Buchgesellschaft.
———. 1996–1997. “The Age of the Galland Manuscript of the
Numismatic Evidence for Dating a Manuscript?” Journal of Arabic and Islamic
Studies 1: 50–64.
———. 2006. “The Age of the Galland Manuscript of the Nights: Numismatic Evidence for Dating a Manuscript?” In: The Arabian Nights Reader. Ed. Ulrich
Marzolph. Detroit: Wayne State University Press. 105–22.
22012. Die Erzählungen aus Tausendeiner Nacht. Dortmund: Verlag für
Orientkunde (=Kulturgeschichte des islamischen Orients 41).
Gruen, Erich. 2002. Diaspora: Jews amid Greeks and Romans. Cambridge MA: Harvard University Press.
Grunebaum, Gustav E. von. 1963. “Schöpferische Entlehn ung. Griechen land in Tau sendeiner Nacht.” In: Der Islam im Mittel alter. Zürich / Stuttgart: Artemis.
Haarmann, Ulrich. 1980. “Regional Sentiment in Medieval Islamic Egypt
.” Bulletin of the School of Oriental and African Studies University of Lon
don 43.1:
Haddawy, Husain. 1990. See Sindbad and Other Tales from the Arabian Nights and The Arabian Nights Based on the Text of the Fourteenth-Century Syrian Manuscript
Edited by Muhsin Mahdi.
Hansen, William. 2002. Ariadne’s Thread: A Guide to International Tales Found in Classical Literature. Ithaca: Cornell University Press.
Harf-Lancner, Laurence. 1984. Les Fées au Moyen Âge. Morgane et Mélusine: La nais- sance des fées. Paris: Champion.
Harries, Elizabeth Wanning. 2001. Twice Upon a Time. Women Writers and the History of the Fairy Tale. Princeton: Princeton University Press.
Hawwas, Hameed. 2007. “A Prologue Tale as Manifesto Tale: Establishing a Narrative Literary Form and the Formation of Arabian Nights.” Marvels and
Tales 21.1: 65–77.
Helwig, Christoph. 1612;
21617. Jüdischer (sic) Historien, oder thalmudischer, rab-
binischer, wunderbarlicher Legenden, so von den Juden als warhafftige und heylige

Geschicht an ihren Sabbathen und Feyertagen gelesen werden; darauss dieses ver-
stockten Volks Aberglauben und Fabelwerck zu ersehen. Giessen: Chemlein.
Hennard Dutheil de la Rochère, Martine and Véronique Dasen. 2011. “Des Fata
aux fées: regards croisés de l’Antiquité à nos jours.”
In: Des Fata aux fées: regards
croisés de l’Antiquité à nos jours. Eds Martine Hennard Dutheil de la Rochère and
Véronique Dasen. Lausanne: Revue Etudes de lettres. 15–34.
Henry of Huntington. 1991. The Chronicle of Henry of Huntington. Comprising the
history of England, from the invasion of Juluis Cæsar to the accession of Henry II .
Trans. and ed. Thomas Forester. Dyfed Wales: Llanerch Press.

192 Works Cited
Heyberger, Bernard. 1994. Les Chrétiens du Proche-Orient au Temps de la réforme catholique. Rome: École française de Rome, Palais Farnese.
H . ikayat. See Buch der wundersamen Geschichten, Das.
Hilka, Alfons. 1913. Compilatio singularis exemplorum. (=Neue Beiträge zur Erzählungsliteratur des Mittelal ters (die Compilatio singularis Exemplorum der Hs.
Tours 468, ergänzt durch eine Schwesterhandschrift Bern 679 15 [=Special issue of
the Jahresbericht der schlesischen Geschichte der vaterlän dischen Kultur 90]).
Homer. 1996. Odyssey. Trans. Robert Fagels. New York: Viking.
Huet, G. 1920. “Les Rédactions de la Scala coeli.” Bibliothèque de l’École des Chartes
81: 305–19.
Hunink, Vincent, ed. 1997. Apuleius of Madauros Pro Se De Magia (Apologia). 2 vols. Amsterdam: J.C. Gieben, 1997.
Irwin, Robert. 1994. The Arabian Nights. A Companion. London: Penguin.
———. 2014. “Introduction.” See Tales of the Marvellous. Penguin.
Jack and the Beanstalk. 1708?; 1711. Newcastle: J. White.
“Jack the Giant Killer.” 1734. In: Round about our Coal-Fire. London: J. Roberts.
Janowitz, Naomi. 2002. Icons of Power: Ritual Practice in Late Antiquity . University
Park PA: Pennsylvania State University Press.
Johnson, Diane Ostrom. 1997. An English Translation of Claudius Aelianus’ Varia Historia. Lewiston, ME: Edward Mellen Press.
Johnson, Richard. 1621. The History of Tom Thumb. London: For Tho: Longley.
Kieckhefer, Richard W. 2000. Magic in the Middle Ages. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Kisacky, Julia M. 2000. Magic in Boiardo and Ariosto. Frankfurt/New York: Peter Lang (=Studies in Italian Culture 25).
Kooi, Jurjen van der. 2002. “Niederlande.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 10: cols 24–34.
Loskoutoff, Yvan. 1987. La Sainte et la Fée. Dévotion à l’Enfant Jésus et mode de
s contes merveilleux à la fin du règne de Louis XIV. Geneva: Droz.
Lacarra, Maria Jesus. 1979. Cuentistica medieval en España: Los origenes. Zaragoza: Departamento de litteratura Española.
———. 1986. Cuentos de la edad media. Madrid: Editorial Castalia “Odres nuevos.”
Landau, L. 1916. “A German-Italian Satire on The Ages of Man.” Modern Language
Notes 1: 465–71.
Leathes, Stanley, G.W. Prothero, and A.W. Ward. 1934. The Cambridge Modern History. Vol. 1. The Renaissance. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press.
Lecouteux, Claude. 1999. “Magnetbe rg.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 9: cols. 24–7.
Levi, Ezio. 1914. “Nota.” In: Fiore di leggende: Cantari antichi. Bari: G. Laterza & figli. 333–81.
Lichtheim, Miriam, ed. 1973. Ancient Egyptian Literature: The Old and Middle Kingdoms. Berkeley/Los Angeles: University of California Press.
———. See also “Shipwrecked Sailor.”
Lindahl, Carl. 1981. “Dankbare (hilfreiche) T

iere.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 3:
cols 287–99.
———. 1995. “The Oral Undertones of Late Medieval Romance.”
In: Oral Tradition in the Middle Ages (=Medieval and Renaissance Texts and Studies 112).
Ed. W.F.H. Nicolaisen. Binghamton NY: Medieval and Renaissance Texts and
Studies. 59–75.
Liombruno. See Cirino d’Ancona.

Works Cited 193
“Lionbruno.” 1990. In: Italo Calvino. Fiabe Italiene. 3 vols. Milan: Einaudi Scuola
(=Lettura per la scuola media). 3:35–45.
Lommatzsch, Erhard. 1950–1951. Beiträge zur älteren italienischen Volksdichtung: Untersuchungenund Texte. 4 vols. Berlin: Akademieverlag.
Loprieno, Antonio, ed. 1996. Ancient Egyptian Literature: History and Forms
(=Probleme der Ägyptologie 10). Leiden: Brill.
Loskoutoff, Yvan. 1987. La Saint et la Fée. Dévotion à l’Enfant Jésus et mode des
contes merveilleux à la fin du règne de Louis XIV. Geneva: Droz.
Lucía Megías, Jose Manuel. 1999. Libros de caballerías castellanos en las Bibliotecas Públicas de París: Catálogo descriptivo. (=Biblioteca di studi Ispanici 2.)
———. 2000. Imprenta y libros caballerías. Madrid: Ollero y Ramos Editores.
Lüthi, Max. 1986. The European Folktale: Form and Nature. Trans. John D. Niles. Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
Maaz, Wolfgang. 1993. “Johannes de Alta Silva.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 7: cols 570–5.
Macdonald, D.B. 1924. “The Early History of the Arabian Nights.” Journal of the Royal Asiatic Society of Great Britain and Ireland NS 56.3: 353–97.
Magnanini, Suzanne. 2008. Fairy-Tale Science: Monstrous Generation in the Tales of Straparola and Basile. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
———. 2012. “Giovanni Boccaccio, The Genealogy of the Pagan Gods (begun circa 1350).” In: Fairy Tales Framed. Early Forewords, Afterwords, and Critical Words .
Ed. Ruth B. Bottigheimer. Albany NY: State University of New York Press.
Mahdi, Muhsin, ed. 1984. Kita ˉb Alf laylah wa-laylah (The Thousand and One
Nights). 2 vols. Leiden: Brill.
———. 2009. The Islamic Context of The Thousand and One Nights. New York: Columbia University Press.
Marie de France. 1170s; 1990. Lais de Marie de France. Trans. and annotated by Laurence Harf-Lancner, text edited by Karl Warnke. Paris: Livre de Poche.
———. See also Warnke.
Marsan, Rameline E. 1974. Itineraire espagnol du conte medieval VIIIe–XVe siècles .
Paris: Klingsieck.
Martin, Ruth. 1989. Witchcraft and the Inquisition in Venice 1550–1650 . Oxford:
Basil Blackwell.
Marzolph, Ulrich. 1999a. “Einführung.” In Das Buch der wundersamen Geschichten.
Erzählungen aus der Welt von Tausendundeine Nacht. Trans. Hans Wehr, Otto
Spies, Max Weisweiler, and Sophia Grotzfeld. Munich. C.H. Beck. 9–12.
———. 1999b. “Messingstadt.” In: Enzyklopädie des Märchens. Berlin: de Gruyter. 9: cols 599–602.
———. 2006. “Re-locating the Arabian Nights.” Ex Oriente Fabula: Exploring the
Narrative Culture of the Islamic Near and Middle East. Dortmund: Verlag für
Orientkunde. 175–84.
——— and Aboubakr Chraïbi. 2012. “The Hundred and One Nights: A Recently Discovered Old Manuscript.” Zeitschrift der Deutschen Morgenländischen
Gesellschaft 162.2: 299–316.
——— and Richard van Leeuwen. 1994. The Arabian Nights Encyclopedia. 2 vols. Santa Barbara: Clio.
Maspero, Gaston, ed. 1915; 2002. Popular Stories of Ancient Egypt. ed. Hasan El-Shamy. Santa Barbara CA: ABC-Clio.

194 Works Cited
Messerli, Alfred. 2000. Il Cantare italiano fra Folklore da Letteratura . Landesmuseum
Zurich, Conference 23–25 June.
Mi’at Laylah wa-laylah. 1979. Mahmûd Tarshûnah, ed. Tunis: al-Dâr al-’arabîyah lil-kitâb.
Milchsack, Gustav, and Alessandro D’Ancona. 1882. Due Farse del Secolo XVI
riprodotte sulle antiche stampe con la descrizione ragionata del volume misc
della Biblioteca di Wolfenbüttel contenente Poemetti popolari italiani . Bologna:
Monafin, M. 1993. “Impegni presei per gioco. Vanti du cavaliere nei l’antic let- teratura italiana.” In: La letteratura del gioco e dell’intrattenimento dal XII al XVI
secolo. Rome: Salerno Editrice. 575–608.
Monnier, Marc. 1880. Les contes populaires en Italie. Paris: G. Charpentier.
Monter, E. William and John Tedeschi. 1986. “Toward a Statistical Profile of the Italian Inquisitions, Sixteenth to Eighteenth Centuries.” In: The Inquisition in
Early Modern Europe: Studies on Sources and Methods . Eds Gustav Hennensen and
John Tedeschi, with Charles Amiel. Dekalb: Northern Illinois University Press.

Morey, James H. 1993. “Peter Comestor, Biblical Paraphrase, and the Medieval Popular Bible.” Speculum 68.1: 6–35.
Morlini, Girolamo. 1520. Novellae. Naples: Joan. Pasquet de Sallo.
Mortimer, Ruth. 1974. Italian Sixteenth-Century Books . Cambridge: Harvard
University Press.
Mudhoon, Loay. 2010. “A New Chapter in the History of Arab Literature.” Trans. Ron Walker.
Müller, Lothar. 2010. “Scheherazades kleine Schwester.” Süddeutsche Zeitung, 14.
September: 11.
Nadim, Ibn al-. 1970. The Fihrist of Ibn al-Nadim. Ed. and trans. Bayard Dodge. New York: Columbia University Press.
Nâg ˇî, Hilâl, ed. 1973. “Kitâb al-kuttâb wa-sifat ad-dawât
wa-l-qalam wa tafsîri-
himâ” (The Secretaries and the description of the inkwell, the qu
ill, and their
use). Al-Mawrid 2.2: 43–78.
Neusner, J. 1962;
21970. A Life of Yohanan Ben Zakkai, Ca. 1–80 CE. Leiden: Brill.
New English Bible with Apocrypha, The . 1970. Oxford/Cambridge: University Press.
Novati, Francesco. 1913. “La raccolta di stampe popolari italiene del
la biblio- teca di Francesco Reina.” Lares: Bollettino della Società di Etnografia italiana 2:
Old Testament Pseudepigrapha. 1993. Trans. and ed. James Charlesworth. 2 vols. Garden City NY: Doubleday.
Opie, Iona and Peter Opie.1974.The Classic Fairy Tales. London/New York: Oxford University Press.
Ott, Claudia, trans. 2004. “Anhang” 639–[687] in Tausendundeine Nacht. Munich:
C.H. Beck.
———. 2012. “Nachwort.” In: Hundert und Eine Nacht. Zurich: Manesse. 241–63.
Ovid [Publius Ovidius Naso]. 1955. Metamorphoses, trans. Mary Innes. New York: Penguin.
Passano, Giambattista. 1868. I Novellieri Italiani in verso. Bologna: G. Romagnoli ;
rpt Leipzig: Zentralantiquariat der Deutschen Demokratischen Republik, 1
Pentamerone. See Basile.

Works Cited 195
Penzer, N.M. 1979. “Folklore Addenda.” In: The Pentamerone of Giambattista Basile. 2 vols. Westport CT: Greenwood Press. 2: 273–321.
Petrie, W.M. Flinders, ed.1999. Eqyptian Tales. Mineola NY: Dover.
———. See also “Shipwrecked Sailor.”
Petrini, M. 1983. La fiaba di magia nella letterature italiana. Udine: Del Bianco Editore.
Philippart, G. and Brenda Dunn-Lardeau. 1993. “Les miracles de Jean H
erolt (1434) et la Légende dorée.” Moyen age français 32: 533–67.
Picone, Michelangelo. 1984. “La Matière de Bretagne nei Cantari.” In: I Cantari struttura e Tradizione. Atti del Convegno Internazionale di Montreal: 10–20 marzo
1981. Eds Michelangelo Picone and Maria Bendinelle Predelli. Florence:
Leo S. Olschki. 87–102.
Picot, Emilio. 1894. “La Raccolta di Poemmetti italiani de la Bibliot
eca di Chantilly.” Rassegna bibliografica della letteratura italiana 2:114–23; 154–67.
Pinault, David.1992. Story-Telling Techniques in the Arabian Nights. Leiden: Brill. (Studies in Arabic Literature 15.)
Pirovano, Donato. 2000. “Introduzione,” “Nota biographica,”
“Nota biblio- graphica” ix–lxix in Straparola. Giovan Francesco Straparola. Le Piacevoli Notti.
2 vols. Rome: Salerno Editrice.
———. 2000a. “Una Storia Editoriale Cinquecentesca: Le Piacevoli Notti di Giovan
Francesco Straparola.” Giornale storico della letteratura italiana 177: 540–69.
———. 2001. “Per l’edizione de Le Piacevoli Notti di Giovan Francesco Straparola.”
Filologia Critica 26.1: 60–93.
Pleasant Nights. See Straparola.
Polo de Beaulieu, Marie Anne. 1991. See Gobi Junior.
———. 1993. “Johannes Gobi Junior.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 7: cols 596–602.
Pseudepigrapha. See Old Testament Pseudepigrapha.
Rodriguez Adrados, Francisco. 1991. “De la Fabula Griega a la Fabula
Latina en Disticos Elegiacos.” In: La Favolistica Latina in distici elegiaci: Atti del convegno
internazionale, Assisi 1990, ed. Giuseppe Catanzaro and Francesco Santucci.
Assisi: Accademia Properziana del Subasio Dentro Studi Poesia Latina in
Elegiaci. 27–43.
Röhrich, Lutz. 1981. “Dankbarer Toter.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 3: cols 306–22.
Rose, Carol. 1996. Spirits, Fairies, Gnomes, and Goblins. Santa Barbara CA: ABC-Clio.
Rua, Giovanni. 1893. Antique novelle in versi di tradizione popolare. Palermo (=Curiosità pop. trad. ed. G. Pitré vol. 12.)
Rubini, Luisa. 2003. “Fortunatus in Italy: A History between Translation, Chapbooks and Fairy Tales.” Fabula 44.1–2: 25–54.
Ruggiero, Guido. 1993. Binding Passions: Tales of Magic, Marriage and Power at the
End of the Renaissance. New York: Oxford University Press.
Rumpf, Marianne. 1979. “Berta.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 2: cols 155–62.
Schaeffer, Jean-Marie. 2007. La fin de l’exception humaine. Paris: Gallimard.
Schäfer, Peter. 1990. “Jewish Magic Literature in Late Antiquity and the Early Middle Ages.” Journal of Jewish Studies 41.1: 75–91.
Schenda, Rudolf. 1961. Die französische Prodigienliteratur in der zweiten Hälfte des sechzehnten Jahrhunderts. Munich: M. Hueber.
———. 1977. “Basile, Giambattista.” Enzyklopä die des Märchens. Berlin: de Gruyter. 1: cols 1296–308.
———. 1986. “Telling Tales – Spreading Tales: Change in the Communicative Forms of a Popular Genre.” In: Fairy T
ales and Society: Illusion, Allusion, and

196 Works Cited
Paradigm. Ed. Ruth B. Bottigheimer. Philadelphia: University of Pennsylvania
Press. 75–94.
———. 1993. Von Mund zu Ohr. Göttingen: Vandenhoeck & Ruprecht.
———. 2000. “Anmerkungen.” In: Giambattista Basile. Das Märchen der Märchen. Das Pentamerone. Munich: C.H. Beck. 513–72.
———, Hanno Helbling, Luisa Rubini, Alfred Messerli, Doris Senn,
Johann Pögl, Dieter Richter. 2000. “Kommentare.” In: Giambattista Basile. Das Märchen der
Märchen. Das Pentamerone. Munich: C.H. Beck. 73–617.
Schiavo, G. 2009. “Fede e Superstizone nella antica poesia francese.”
Zeitschrift fuer romanische Forschung 17.2: 55–112.
Scot, Reginald. 1584. The discouerie of witchcraft, Wherein the lewde dealing of witches, and witch mongers is notablie detected, the knauerie of coniurors, the
impietie of inchantors, the follies of soothsaiers, the impudent falshoo
d of couse-
nors, the infidelitie of atheists, the petilent practice of Pythonists,
the curiosities of
figure casters, the vanitie of dreamers, the beggerlie art of Alcumystrie, the abhomi-
nation of idolatrie, the horrible art of poisoning, the vertue and power of naturall
magike, and all the conueniences of Legerdemaine and iuggling are deciphered,
and many other things opened, which have long lien hidden, howbeit verie
sarie to be knowne. Heerevnto is added a treatise vpon the nature and substance
of spirits and diuills, Ec.: all latelie written by Reginald Scot Esquir
e . London:
William Brome.
Seabourne, Gwen. 2011. Imprisoning Medieval Women. The Non-Judicial Confinement
and Abduction of Women in England, c.1170–1509. Burlington VT: Ashgate.
Segarizzi, Arnoldo. 1913. Bibliografia delle stampe popolari italiene della R. Biblioteca nazionale di S. Marco di Venezia. Bergamo: Istituto italiano d’arti grafiche.
Senn, Doris. 1993. “Le piacevoli Notti (1550/53) von Giovan Francesco Straparola, ihre italienischen Editionen und die spanische Übersetzung Honesto y agradable
Entretenimiento de Damas y Galanes (1569/81) von Francisco Truchado.” Fabula
34.1: 45–65.
Sercambi, Giovanni. 1995. Novelle. Ed. Giovanni Sinicropi. Filologia: Testi e studi 5.
“Shipwrecked Sailor, The.” 1895. In: Egyptian Tales Translated from the Papyri. First Series IVth to XIIth Dynasty. Ed. and trans., W.M. Flinders Petrie. London:
Methuen. 81–96.
“Story of the Shipwrecked Sailor, The.” 1973. In: Ancient Egyptian Literature. A Book of Readings. Ed. Miriam Lichtheim. 3 vols. Berkeley: University of
California Press. 1:211–15.
———. 1999. In: Egyptian Tales. Trans. and ed. W.M. Flinders Petrie. Mineola NY: Dover. 38–45.
Simpson, W.K. 1958. “Allusions to the Shipwrecked Sailor and the Eloquent Peasant in a Ramesside Text.” Journal of the American Oriental Society 78: 50–1.
———. 1972. The Literature of Ancient Egypt: An Anthology of Stories, Instructions, and Poetry. Ed. W.K. Simpson, trans. R.O. Faulkner, E.F. Wente, Jr, and
W.K. Simpson. New Haven/London: Yale University Press.
Sindbad And Other Stories from the Arabian Nights. 1995. Trans. Husain Haddawy. New York: W.W. Norton.
Stanzel, Frank K. 2000. “Telegony: Procreation from a Distance: An Ignored or Suppressed Motif in Literature.” Anglistik 11.1: 69–81.
Stern, David and Mark J. Mirsky, eds. 1990. Rabbinic Fantasies. Imaginative
Narratives from Classical Hebrew Literature. New Haven: Yale University Press.

Works Cited 197
Straparola, Giovan Francesco. 1898. The Facetious Nights of Straparola. Ed. W.G. Waters. 4 vols. London: Society of Bibliophiles.
———. 2000. Le Piacevoli Notti. Ed. Donato Pirovano. 2 vols. Rome: Salerno Editrice.
———. 2012. The Pleasant Nights By Giovan Francesco Straparola. Ed. and intro. Donald Beecher. 2 vols. Toronto: University of Toronto Press.
Tales of the Marvellous and News of the Strange. 2014. Trans. Malcolm C. Lyons. Intro. Robert Irwin. London: Penguin.
Tanakh: A New Translation of the Holy Scriptures according to the traditional Hebrew Text. 1985. Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society.
Tarshûnah, Mahmûd. See Mi’at Laylah wa-laylah.
Tausenundeine Nacht. Nach der ältesten Handschrift in der Ausgabe von
Muhsin Mahdi erstmals ins Deutsche übertragen von Claudia Ott. 2004. Trans. Claudia
Ott. Munich: C.H. Beck.
Thomas, Henry. 1920; rpt 1969. Spanish and Portuguese romances of chivalry: The revival of the romance of chivalry in the Spanish Peninsula, and its extension and influence
abroad. Cambridge: Cambridge University Press; 1969. New York: Kraus Reprint.
Thompson, Stith. 1946; 1977. The Folktale. Berkeley/London: University of California Press.
———. 1955–58. Motif-index of folk-literature: A classification of narrative elements in folktales, ballads, myths, fables, mediaeval romances, exempla, fabliaux, jest-
books, and local legends. 6 vols. Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
Ting, Nai-Tung. 1974. The Cinderella Cycle in China and Indo-China (=Folklore Fellows Communications 213). Helsinki: Suomalainen Tiedeakatemia.
Todorov, Tzvetan. 1973. The Fantastic: A Structural Approach to a Literary Genre. Trans. Richard Howard. Cleveland OH: Case Western Reserve University Press.
Tohar, Vered. 2009. “The Story of Johanan and the Scorpion. A Thirteenth-Century Hebrew Romance.” Fabula 50.1/2: 54–66.
Torah. See Five Books of Moses, The.
Trachtenberg, Joshua. 1939; rpt 1961. Jewish Magic and Superstition: A Study in Folk
Religion. Philadelphia: Jewish Publication Society of America.
Tuczay, Christa A. 2005. “Motifs in The Arabian Nights and in Ancient and Medieval European Literature: A Comparison.” Folklore 116: 272–91.
Uther, Hans-Jörg. 1990. Märchen vor Grimm. Munich: Diederichs.
Varanini, Giorgio. 1954. “Sul testo, sull’attribuzioine e su una in
edita redazione della “Storia di Liombruno.” Studi mediolatini e volgari 2: 250–81.
———. 1989. “Cantari e novella.” In: La novella italiana. Rome: Salerno Editrice. 407–30.
Varnhagen, Hermann. 1892. “Über eine Sammlung alter italienischer D
rucke der Erlanger Universitätsbibliothek: Ein Beitrag zur Kenntnis der ita
Literatur des 14. und 15. Jahrhunderts.” Diss. Erlangen University.
Wagner, Fritz. 1977. “Asinarius.” Enzyklopädie des Märchens 1: cols 865–7.
Waley, Arthur. 1947. “The Chinese Cinderella Story.” Folklore 58: 226–38.
Warner, Marina. 2012. Stranger Magic. Charmed States and the Arabian Nights. Cambridge: Harvard University Press.
Warnke, Karl, ed. 1898. Die Fabeln der Marie de France. Halle: M. Niemeyer.
Waters, W.G. See Straparola. 1898.
Wesselring, Elisabeth. 1991. Writing History as a Prophet: Postmodern Innovations of the Historical Novel. Amsterdam / Philadelphia: John Benjamins.
Wesselski, Albert. 1906. Die Facezien des Poggio Bracciolini. München, G. Müller.

198 Works Cited
———. 1907. Heinrich Bebels Schwänke. Munich/Leipzig: Müller.
———. 1908. Die Novellen Girolamo Morlinis. Munich: Müller.
———. 1909. Mönchslatein: Erzählungen aus geistlichen Schriften des XIII. Jahrhunderts. Leipzig: W. Heims.
———. 1910. Novellen und Gespräche des Agnolo Firenzuola. Munich: Müller.
———. 1910. Die Schwänke und Schnurren des Pfarrers Arlotto. Berlin: Duncker.
———. 1911. Der Hodscha Nasreddin: Türkische, arabische, berberische, malte- sische, sizilianische, kalabrische, kroatische, serbische, und griechische Märlein und
Schwänke. Weimar: Duncker.
———. 1912. Italienische Volks- und Herrenwitz: Fazetien und Schwänke aus drei Jahrhunderten. Munich: Müller.
———. 1913. Deutsche Schwänke. Weimar: Duncker.
———. 1914. Somadewas Katharasitsagara; Oder, Ozean der Märchenströme. Berlin: Morawe & Scheffelt.
———, ed. 1925. Märchen des Mittelalters . Berlin: Herbert Stubenrauch
———. 1929. Angelo Polizianos Tagebuch (1477–1479) mit vier hundert Schwänke und Schnurren aus den Tagen Lorenzos des Grossmächtigen und seiner Vorfahren.
Jena: Diederichs.
———. 1931. Versuch einer Theorie des Märchens. Reichenberg: Sudetendeutscher Verlag Franz Kraus (= Prager Deutsche Studien 45).
———. 1936. Klaret und sein Glossator: Böhmische Volks- und Mönchsmärlein im Mittelalter. Brünn: Rohrer.
———. 1938. Deutsche Märchen vor Grimm. Brünn: Rohrer.
West, Stephanie. 2003. “KEPKIΔΣΠAPAMYΘIA? For whom did Chariton Write?” Zeitschrift für Papyrologie und Epigraphik 143: 63–9.
Wettengel, Wolfgang. 2006. “Die ägyptische Erzählung von den zwei Brüder
n.” Fabula 27:1–2:1–16.
Wiese, Berthold. 1907. “Eine Sammlung alter italienischer Drucke auf d
er Ratsschulbibliothek in Zwickau.” Zeitschrift für romanische Philologie 31: 310–31.
Yassif, Eli. 1999. The Hebrew Folktale: History, Genre, Meaning. Trans. Jacqueline S. Teitelbaum. Bloomington: Indiana University Press.
———. 2009. “‘Virgil in the Basket’: narrative as hermeneutics in Hebrew lit- erature of the Middle Ages.” In: Scriptural Exegesis: The Shapes of Culture and
the Religious Imagination. Essays in Honour of Michael Fishbane. Eds Deborah
A. Green and Laura S. Lieber. Oxford: Oxford University Press. 245–67.
Yee, Vivian. 2012. “Would-Be Witness on Curses is Ruled No Expert,” New York Times 10 October, A24.
Ziolkowski, Jan. 2006. Fairy Tales from Before Fairy Tales. Ann Arbor: University of Michigan Press.
Zipes, Jack. 2001. The Great Fairy Tale Tradition from Straparola and Basile to the Brothers Grimm. New York: Norton.
Zumthor, Paul. 1975. “De la chanson au récit: La Châtelaine de Vergil.” 219–36. Langue, texte, enigme. Paris: Seuil.
Websites for early popular Italian imprints

See Aharon
abasement. See prostration
accusation, false, 13, 95, 123
Adenet le Roi, 115, 117 See also Cleomades
Aharon, 17, 35–9
“Aladdin,” 87, 94, 98–9
Alf Layla wa-Layla, 6, 84–6, 96–114, 122
dating, 85, 87, 97
“Envious and the Envied, The Tale of the,” 107, 112
“First Lady, The Tale of the,” 100, 109
“First Old Man’s Tale, The,” 109, 110
“Fisherman and the Demon, The Story of the,” 109n10
frametale, 86, 96
“Husband and the Parrot, The Tale of the,” 101
“Jullanar of the Sea, The Story of,” 104–7, 109, 110, 112, 113
“King’s Son and the She-Ghoul, The Tale of the,” 99
“Merchant and the Demon, The Story of the,” 101, 107, 109
“Merchant and His Wife, The Tale of the,” 101
“Nur al-Din Ali ibn-Bakkar and the Slave Girl, The Story of,” 100
“Ox and the Donkey, The Tale of the,” 101
“Prologue,” 101
“Second Dervish, The Tale of the,” 99, 110–11
“Second Lady, The Tale of the,” 112
“Third Dervish, The Tale of the,” 113
“Three Apples, The,” 102
translation, 86. See also Galland, Haddawy, Mahdi
‘Two Viziers, The Story of the,” 100–4, 107, 109 See also Arabian Nights,
Mille et Une
Nuit(s), Thousand and One Nights
“Ali Baba and the Forty Thieves,” 98–9
amulet, 16, 45, 49
Andalusia, 114–19
angel(s), 40–2, 44, 51, 57, 65, 107, 130, 132
animals, magic, 149–50, 151–2 See also ant, ape, bear, cat, cow, dove, eagle, falcon, fish, hornet, horse,
lion, raven, rooster, scorpion,
serpent/snake, tuna, wolf
ant, 152
anthropocentricity, 1, 3, 8, 9, 63, 145
antiquity in later magic literatures, 17, 70, 72, 88–9, 123n1, 125,
154n8, 178, 180
See also Metamorphoses, “Cupid and
Psyche,” Medea
ape, 90
apparition. See illusion, illusionism
apple, 149, 150, 161 See also magic objects
Apuleius, Lucius, 28–31 See also Golden Ass
Arabian Nights, 4, 6, 84, 98, 182 “Aladdin,” 182
“Ali Baba and the Forty Thieves,” 182
dating, 96
See also Alf Layla wa-Layla, Mille et Une Nuit(s), Thousand and One
Arthurian court, 123–6, 131–2 romances, 65–6
ashrafi dinar, 85n2, 97, 98
Asinarius, 69–72, 129, 143
Asmodeus, 40–3, 48, 49, 50n20
ass, 17, 28, 69–72
astrology, 51, 91–2
audience, 71, 130, 133, 137, 140, 143

200 Index
Aulnoy, Mme Marie-Catherine d’, 7, 29, 138, 181
“Island of Happiness, The,” 7, 181
“Ram, The,” 7
“Yellow Dwarf, The,” 7
automaton, 8, 92, 113, 116, 116n13, 175
Bar Themalyon, 49–50 See also demon(s)
Basile, Adrianna, 178
Basile, Giambattista, 184. See Pentamerone
bear, 22, 37, 152, 176, 177, 181
beautification / uglification, 17
beauty female, 4, 25, 41–2, 54, 65, 70n3, 80, 90, 102, 104, 123, 126, 127,
129, 131, 132, 135, 138, 142, 147,
169, 176, 177
ideal, 4, 105, 131–2
male, 20, 30, 56, 61n39, 62, 80, 91, 95, 101, 105, 106, 153, 160, 176
“Beauty and the Beast,” 29n9, 30, 135, 176n1
Bendinelli Predelli, Maria, 142n9
beneficent magic, 179
Berlioz, Jacques, 64–5
Bernard, Catherine, 181
Bible stories, 81 See also Historia Scholastica
birds, 10, 22, 25, 54, 55–6, 58, 99, 104, 105, 109, 110, 113, 118, 127,
142, 149
See also magic animals
birth defect(s). See monstrous birth(s)
black magic, 149–50, 154, 156–8, 164
blindness, 40–1
blood recognition, 68, 103, 176
Boccaccio, Giovanni, 27, 29, 99, 135 See also Decameron; Genealogy of the
Pagan Gods
Bohak, Gideon, 34, 35n3, 45, 46n16, 51
book, magic/sacred, 6, 16, 35, 82, 91, 156
boots (of speedy travel), 126, 127, 131, 142, 145, 150
Brémond, Claude, 64–5, 72
Brunner-Traut, 12n3 bull, 14, 21, 25, 72, 109, 110, 111, 113
burial, living, 67–9, 170
See monarch
cat, 103, 110, 152, 162 See also Pentamerone: “Peruonto”; Pleasant Nights: “Costantino
censorship, 170–5, 178 See also Pentamerone, Perrault, Pleasant Nights
charlatanry, 163, 167
cheap print. See popular print
Chernick, Michael, 55, 56
childlessness, 17, 59, 69–70, 80, 138
Chraïbi, Aboubakr, 119
“Cinderella,” Chinese, 10
circle, 112, 156, 157, 163, 174
Cirino d’Ancona, 123, 126 See also Liombruno
cities, 121–2, 123, 127 vs country, 125
See also urban culture
Clamades, 66
Clavicula Salomonis, 156
Clausen-Stolzenburg, Maren, 159
Cleomades, 66, 117 See also Adenet
cloak of invisibility, 126, 127, 128, 130–1, 142, 145
Colon, Hernando, 137
conjuration, 106, 113, 150, 156–7
conte merveilleux, 64–5
conteuses. See Aulnoy, Bernard, La
Force, Lhéritier, Murat
Cottino-Jones, Marga, 166n19
counterreformation. See Catholic
courtly culture, 123–6, 127, 129, 130, 131
courtly romance. See romance
cow, 13
Cunto de li Cunti, Lo. See Pentamerone
“Cupid and Psyche,” 29–31, 72, 135, 159–60
curse, 9, 70, 162, 168
Dane, Joseph A., 134n2
Daniel, 42–4, 45

Index 201
Decameron, 29, 148, 160
demon(s), 6, 34, 35, 39, 40, 41, 42, 47, 47n17, 48, 49–50, 51, 52–3,
56, 68, 82, 87, 99–115, 127, 130,
132, 133, 145, 156, 168, 172, 177,
181, 183
See also Adsmodeus, Bar Themalyon, devil, ifrit, jinn
De Rege et septem sapientibus, 66
devil, 64, 65, 79, 81, 118, 132, 145, 156, 172, 189
See also demon, ifrit, jinn
dinar. See ashrafi dinar
Dinarzad, 4, 84
disguise, 169
dismemberment, 25, 61
dissemination (tale). See transmission, intercultural
Diyâb, Hannâ, 98
dog, 59–60, 109–69
doll, 150
Dolopathos, , 66–9, 170
donkey, 31, 47, 48, 69–72, 129 See also ass
dove, 151, 177
dragon(s), 11, 24, 26, 49, 117, 128, 130, 159
dragon-killer, 76, 82
eagle, 110, 124, 126, 127, 152, 159
economy caravan, 116
exchange, 124–5, 133–4
Egyptian magic tales, 11–18. “Birth of the Royal Children, The,” 12
“Boating Party, The,” 12
and Old Testament, 17
Setne Khamwas stories, 15–16
“Shipwrecked Sailor, The,” 9, 11–12, 13, 14, 31
“Two Brothers, The,” 13–14, 15, 17, 59n34
Eichel-Lojkine, Patricia, 4–5
Einbinder, Susan, 53n23, 54
Eisenstein, Elizabeth, 134n2
Elijah, 37n7, 47–8, 57
Elisha, 37n7, 47–8, 82
elixir, 157–8, 169
enchantress, 104, 105 See also magician(s), sorceress, witch
epic romance. See romance
eternal reward (in heaven), 2, 64, 65, 189
evil spirit. See demon
exemplary tales, 73–80, 83
exemplum collection(s). See exemplary tales, Scala coeli
exorcism, 41–2, 50
Facetious Nights. See Pleasant Nights
fairies, 1, 8, 13, 124–6, 152n4, 153, 161–2, 168, 173, 159, 175, 177
fairyland fiction(s), 2, 7, 13, 29, 30, 126 See also Aulnoy
fairy tale(s), 2, 7, 123, 142, 146 absence of, 21
and novellas, 166
in Pleasant Nights, 180
plot, 180, 181
See also genre, restoration fairy tale, rise fairy tale
falcon, 152, 159
Fihrist, 86, 96, 107n9 See also Nadim
fire, 11, 21, 36, 37, 43, 53, 79, 81, 82, 95, 106, 110, 111, 117
fire worshiper, 105, 107, 108, 110, 111
See also Magian
fish, 40, 59, 60, 110, 152, 161, 168, 176, 179
flight, magic, 109
forest, 52, 59, 82, 127, 160, 177
frametale, 5, 9, 12, 28, 31, 58, 66, 84, 86, 88, 92, 96, 158, 174
free will/predestination, 6, 51, 54, 57, 94, 101, 103
Galland, Antoine, 84, 86, 98, 182
Garcín, Jean-Claude, 97–8
Gatti, Paolo, 70n2
Gaudefroy-Demombynes, Maurice, 115
See also translation, from Arabic
gender, 25–6, 29, 62–3, 83, 120, 122, 125, 131, 146–7, 155
Genealogy of the Pagan Gods, 148, 149, 150

202 Index
genre, 96, 99, 122, 126 exemplary tale, 170
fairy tale, 2, 3, 99, 126, 170
novella, 3, 99, 170
giant, 10, 26, 35, 66, 118 See also monster
Gobi Junior, Johannes 74–8, 117
God belief in, 165
and demons, 39, 108
and magic, 2, 7, 35–9, 41, 68–9, 87, 94, 100, 108, 113, 144–5, 164, 166
and miracles, 65, 79
portrayal, 118
trust in, 79–80
See also Allah, Yahweh
Goitein, S.D., 32
gold, and human body, 67–9
Golden Ass, The, 28–31, 140 See also “Cupid and Psyche,” Lucius, or The Ass
Golden Legend. See Legenda aurea
González Ramírez, David, 174
grateful animal(s), 60, 61, 149, 152, 153n6
See also animals, magic
grateful dead in Pleasant Nights, 162, 17
Greek tales, 17, 18–21 of Artemis, 19
of Circe, 20
Homeric Hymns, 18
of Medea, 20–1
of origins, 18–19
of Phoebus Apollo, 18–19
of Selene, 19
Grotzfeld, Heinz, 85n2, 97
Grotzfeld, Sophie, 88
Gruen, Erich, 46
Haddawy, Husain, 86, 97, 98, 107
hair, single, 13–14, 59–60, 61
happy ending and alleviation of suffering, 52
on earth, 2, 3, 7–9, 14, 20–2, 24, 26, 27, 30, 57, 61, 63, 65, 79, 88, 90,
99, 103–4, 106, 116, 119, 138, 142,
169–70, 173, 178, 180, 183, 184
in heaven, 2, 30, 31 and monarch, 88, 89, 9, 109n10,
114, 118–19
See also eternal reward (in heaven)
Harf-Lancner, Laurence, 131, 141n7, 159
Harries, Elizabeth, 7
Hawwas, Hameed, 97
Hazâr Afsân, 96
healing, 40–1, 53, 61, 78, 117, 150, 153, 154, 158, 160–1
See also water-of-life
Hennard Dutheil de la Rochère, Martine, 159
Hikayat, al-, 84, 88.
See also Tales of the Marvellous
Historia Scholastica, 74n5, 81–2
homicide. See murder
homosexuality, 123
Horace, 154
Horálek, Jan, 14
hornet 152
horse, 18, 19, 45, 55–6, 66, 115, 117, 124, 149, 151, 152, 156, 161, 176
See also animals, magic
Hundred and One Nights, 114–20 “Ebony Horse, The,” 115
“Young Egyptian and the Girl Gharîbat, The Story of the,” 119
Ibn ‘Abdal’aziz, ‘Abdallâh, 96
ifrit, 108, 118
See also demon, devil, jinn
“Île de la Félicité, L’.” See Aulnoy, “Island of Happiness, The”
illusion, illusionism, 30, 45, 50n21, 52–3, 55, 56, 62, 65, 174
impossibility. See magic, perception of
impregnation, 13, 14, 16, 81, 154, 157, 159, 171, 172, 176
improbability, 7, 90, 99, 101–2, 156, 160, 162, 166, 170. See also
magic, perception of
inaudibility, 126
incest, 23, 80–1, 157, 170, 177, 181
inquisition, 83, 149, 154, 172, 173, 189
See also censorship
inscription, 106, 112–13
instructions, 40, 57, 58, 78, 151, 152

Index 203
invisibility, 44, 123, 126, 127, 128, 130, 131, 142, 150, 164, 176
See also cloak of invisibility
invocation, 69, 83, 92, 108, 132, 139, 146, 165
Irwin, Robert, 4, 93
Jahshiyârî, Muhammed ibn Abdûs al-, 86
Jean de Haute-Seille. See Johannes
de Alta Silva
Jerusalem, 41, 44
Jewish magic tales. See Jewish medieval tales, Rabbinic period
Second Temple period, Torah,
Jewish medieval tales, 51–63 “Bride and the Angel of Death, The,” 57–8
“Merchant’s Wife Goes to Gehenna, The” 52–3
“Rabbi Judah the Pious and the Bishop of Salzburg,” 52
“Rabbi Yohanan and the Scorpion,” 59–62
“Solomon’s Daughter in the Tower,” 54–6, 57
“Sorcerer, The,” 62
“Virgil in the Basket,” 62–3
jinn, 108
See also demon, devil, ifrit
Johannes de Alta Silva, 67
Johannes Gobi Junior. See Gobi Junior, Johannes
Joshua, 47
Kabbalistic tale(s), 61n41
khurâfa, 107n9
Kieckhefer, Richard, 6, 82
killing. See murder
Kooi, Jurjen van der, 145n9
La Force, Charlotte Rose de, 181
language use connotative, 125, 134
denotative, 125, 131, 134
naming, 131–2
Lanval, Lai of, 117, 123–6, 129, 146, 168
lapis lazuli, 11, 12, 23
Latin, 27, 70, 73, 127, 132
laziness, 90–1, 175 Legenda aurea, 76
Leprince de Beaumont, Marie-Jean,
Lhéritier, Marie-Jeanne, 29, 181
Liombruno, 3, 4, 122, 123, 126–34, 146, 168, 184
lion, 26, 92, 107, 110, 112, 152, 159
Lionbruno, 3, 4, 122, 136, 141–7, 168, 184
Loskoutoff, Yvan, 180
love, 13, 123, 125, 128, 129, 143 See also sexuality
Lucius, or The Ass, 28–9
Lüthi, Max, 4, 66
luxury, 100, 118, 119, 124
Lyons, Malcolm C., 85, 86, 88
Maccabees, First Book of, 44
Maccabees, Second Book of, 44–6
MacDonald, D.B., 119
Magian(s), 92, 105, 106–7, 110, 111 See also fire worshiper
magic, 92, 96, 114n11, 130–1 by ingestion, 6, 16, 31
dystopic, 1, 7, 20–1, 24, 26
learned, 6, 21, 31, 111
and location, 82–3
and miracles, 74, 76, 78
and monotheism, 38
perception of, 1, 34, 99–104
practice of, 34–5, 41, 66, 82–3
as truth, 163–4
words as, 47
See also beneficent magic, black magic, charlatanry, popular
magic, white magic
magic animals. See animals, magic
magic objects. See objects, magic
magician(s), 35, 104–7, 106 See also enchantress, sorceress, witch
Magnanini, Suzanne, 155, 179
Mahdi, Muhsin, 86, 97, 114, 114n11
Maintenon, Mme de, 181
Malleus maleficarum, 156
Mamluk(s), 85–7, 97, 105
Manetti, Roberta, 141n7
manuscript vs print, 32–3, 55, 65, 74, 76, 77, 131, 134–5, 143, 145–7
See also Liombruno, Lionbruno

204 Index
Marian legend(s), 80–2, 83
Marie de France, 56, 123–6 “Yonec,” 56
“Ysopet,” 56
marvel(s), 179
Mary. See Virgin Mary
Marzolph, Ulrich, 88, 119
Mas’ûdî, 96
Medea, 6, 20, 21, 26, 29, 31, 61n39, 135, 153, 178
See also Greek magic tales, Metamorphoses
Melusine, 65, 131
Metamorphoses (Ovid), 21–8, 29, 140, 154, 154n7, 155n9, 178
butchery in, 25
Medea in, 24, 31
sexuality, 25
translation of, 27
See also Roman tales
metamorphosis. See transformation
Mi’at Layla wa-Layla. See Hundred and One Nights
Mille et Une Nuit(s), 84, 86, 98
See also Alf Layla wa-Layla, Arabian Nights, Thousand and One Nights
miracle(s), 3, 38, 58, 65, 78, 164
miracle books/tales, 2, 72–5
monarch, perception of, 1–7, 14, 17, 116, 117
money, 54, 57, 83, 89, 115, 119, 122, 124, 127, 139, 142, 145, 151, 146, 184
See also ashrafi dinar
monotheism, 2, 34, 38, 49, 66, 94, 95, 161
monster, 11–12, 13, 17, 19, 118, 179
monstrous birth(s), 159
Morgante (Luigi Pulgi), 156
Morlini, Girolamo, 150
Moses, 12n4, 17, 32, 39, 46, 47, 81 See also Moshe
Moshe, 35–9
mother-in-law, 67–8, 159–60
motif (s), fairy tale, 7, 10, 12, 13, 14, 17, 21, 26–7, 31, 42, 47n19, 53,
54, 55, 59, 61, 63, 67, 68, 77, 78,
109, 123, 126, 129, 150n3
murder, 14, 21, 22, 25, 41, 52, 61, 79, 81, 92, 95, 107, 111, 169, 181 Nadim, Ibn Ishâq al-, 86, 96
narrator, 12, 132, 133, 158
necromancy, 153, 173
obeisance, 89, 95
See also prostration
objects, magic, 83, 111, 112, 127, 149–50, 150–1
ocean. See sea
oral performance, 4, 121, 122–3, 125, 129–30, 132–5, 136–41, 142, 146
Orlando romances, 140, 141, 144, 157, 170
Orlando furioso, 157
Ott, Claudia, 84n1, 115, 119
Ottoman(s), 86–7
Ovidius Naso, Publius, 21–2, 24, 27 See also Metamorphoses
paganism, 47, 64, 82, 83, 92–3, 110, 113, 125, 173
parallel world(s), 1, 7, 8, 13, 23, 30, 52, 104, 106, 117, 123–4, 126,
128, 142, 168, 181, 184
“Peau d’Asne.” See Perrault, “Donkeyskin”
Pentamerone censorship, 178
publishing history, 178
“Cat Cinderella, The” (I.6), 177–8
“Peruonto” (I.3), 175
“She-Bear” (I.6), 176–7
“Sun, Moon, and Talia” (V.5), 9, 178
Perrault, Charles, 178, 181, 184 and censorship, 181
“Cinderella,” 10
“Donkeyskin,” 181
and Pentamerone, 181
and Pleasant Nights, 181
“Riquet à la Houppe,” 70n2
“Sleeping Beauty, The,” 9
See also Basile, “She-Bear”; Straparola, “Tebaldo”
persecuted heroine, 169
Petrie, Flinders, 15
Petrus Alphonsus, 73
Piacevoli Notti. See Pleasant Nights
Picone, Michelangelo, 66, 140n5
Pirovano, Donato, 148n1, 149, 173

Index 205
Pleasant Nights, The, 148–67
“Abbess Competition, The” (VI.4), 171, 172
“Adamantina’s Astonishing Doll” (V.2), 150, 173
“Ancilotto” (IV.3), 151, 155, 158–9, 162, 165, 173
“Bertuccio” (XI.2), 162, 166, 173
“Biancabella and Samaritana” (III.3), 9, 155, 157, 158, 159, 160,
163, 166
censorship, 170–3, 178, 181
“Cesarino” (X.3), 152
“Costantino Fortunato” (XI.1), 9, 152, 162, 169
“Costanza/Costanzo” (IV.1), 155, 162
“Devil and Silvia Ballastro, The” (II.4), 172
“Flamminio” (IV.5), 158
“Fortunio” (III.4), 153, 155, 162, 165
“Frate Bigoccio” (XI.5), 172
“Gasparo’s Feast” (XIII.8), 172
“Guerrino” (V.1), 152, 153, 155, 160, 161–2, 165
license, 170, 172
“Livoretto” (III.2), 8–9, 59n35, 61n39–40, 151, 159–60, 169, 176
“Madonna Veronica” (X.1), 163
“Ortodosio and Isabella” (VII.1), 155, 156–7, 163–5, 167, 168, 172
“Papiro Schizza’s Pedantry” (IX.4), 172
“Peter the Fool” (III.1), 8, 151–2, 154n7, 159, 168, 171, 175–6
“Polisena and the Priest” (I.5), 171
“Priest and the Image Carner’s Wife, The” (VIII.3), 171
“Prince Pig” (II.1), 8, 9, 153, 155, 159, 166, 168–9
publication history, 171, 172, 174
readership, 179–80
sales history, 170
“Sons Disobey Their Father’s Will” (XII.4), 172
“Sorcerer’s Apprentice, The” (VIII.4 or 5, depending on edition), 153,
155–6, 168, 173 “Tebaldo and Doralice” (I.4), 157–8,
169–70, 177
“Tia Rabboso” (V.4), 163
translation(s), 174
“Two Friends Who Shared Their Wives,” 174, 163
polytheism, 2, 46
poor protagonist, 9, 54, 57–8, 78, 91, 98, 122, 127, 128, 133, 141–7,
150, 169, 173, 180
and magic, 98–9, 109n10
popular magic, 148–50 See also black magic, white magic, learned magic
popular print, 33, 134–6, 137, 138, 139, 140, 141, 144, 145, 178
possession, demonic, 41, 50, 112
potion, magic, 6, 20, 24, 149, 158, 160, 169, 157
poverty, 133 See also poor protagonist, rise fairy
powerlessness, individual, 89, 94–5
prayer, 49, 89, 93, 128
pregnancy, 54, 159
print vs manuscript. See manuscript vs print
print and tale dissemination, 75–6, 135
prodigies. See marvels
prohibition, 30, 51, 52, 123, 125, 127, 131, 142, 155
prostration, 12, 17, 42–3, 44, 89, 116
proverb, 72
purse (ever-full), 126, 139
Qur’an, 93, 107, 112
Rabbinic period, 33, 46–51 “Avishay ben Zeruya and Yishbi,” 47
“Bar Themalyon Thwarts the Roman Emperor,” 50
“Rabbi Akiva’s Daughter,” 51
“Rabbi Pinhas and the Pearl,” 48
“Rabbi ben Yair Splits the River,” 47–8
“Rabbi Yohanan and the Scorpion,” 152

206 Index
raven, 59
readership/reading, 5, 71–2, 115–16, 137, 143–4
Reformation, Catholic, 178, 180, 181 Protestant, 82, 94
See also repuerescantia
reincarnation, 13
rejuvenation, 24, 61, 77, 153
religious usage, 112, 127, 130, 132, 145–61, 50, 153
See also invocation, prayer, Qur’an
repuerescantia, 180, 181
restoration fairy tale(s), 29, 142, 143, 144–5, 179–80
revival, 13, 24, 31, 34, 61, 65, 153
“Rhodopis,” 10
ring, magic, 106, 112–13 127, 128, 129, 130, 142, 145
rise fairy tale, 56n29, 57, 123, 142, 143, 144–5, 154n8, 169, 180
river, 13, 22, 37n7, 47, 48, 117, 126
Roman tales, 2, 17, 21–31 and Egyptian tradition, 22–3
and Greek tradition, 23–8
of origins, 22
See also Metamorphoses
romance, 9, 53, 65–6, 96, 123–6, 135, 138–41, 142, 143, 149, 150, 179
vs tale, 9, 66, 82–3
sack, magic, 139 See also purse
saint(s), 65, 94, 100, 134, 150
Satan(ic), 48–9, 52, 100, 149, 154, 156, 157, 167, 168, 173, 178
See also demon(s), devil(s), paganism
Scala coeli, 74–9
Schäfer, Peter, 34
Schenda, Rudolf, 75
Schwarzbaum, Haim, 56
scorpion, 16, 58–9, 61n40, 110
Seabourne, Gwen, 56
Second Temple period, 33, 39–46, 63 “Daniel,” 42–4
“Maccabees,” 44–5
“Tobit,” 39–42
Seljuk, 86
Sendebar. See Dolopathos Senn, Doris, 174
Sercambi, Giovan, 115n12
sermon tale(s), 5–6, 74, 76, 121
serpent/snake, 9, 11, 12, 16, 21, 30,
35, 48, 51, 77, 78, 110, 112, 151,
152, 155, 157, 159
sexuality, 71, 80, 123, 125, 128, 129, 142, 157, 163, 175, 178
in Greek mythology, 154n8, 155
Shahrazad, 4, 5, 84, 86, 92, 96
shapeshifting, 19, 26, 110, 154, 175 See also transformation
Simpson, W.K., 12n3
Sindibad, 66. See also Dolopathos
Solomon, 48, 53n23, 54–7, 107, 112, 144, 184
sorcerer/sorceress, 7, 15, 17, 20, 21, 31, 50–2, 62, 80, 82, 100, 104,
105, 109, 110, 153, 168, 178. See
also enchantress, magician(s),
Medea, witch
speaking animals, 13, 17, 58, 101, 149, 150
spell(s), 8, 16, 24, 26, 48, 49, 52, 109, 111, 113, 153
Spies, Otto, 88
stepmother, 26, 66, 177–8
storysinging, 137, 139–41, 142
storytelling, 33, 86, 121, 122, 136, 139–41, 142. See also oral
Straparola, Giovan Francesco, 7, 8, 143, 171, 184. See also Pleasant
tale change, 18–19, 33, 51, 63
dating, 32–3
definition, 4–5, 84
Tale of (the) Tales, The, 31 See also Pentamerone.
Tales of the Marvellous, 84–96, 122 “Abu Dîsa, Nicknamed the Bird, The Story of” (No. 9), 91–2
“Abu Muhammad the Idle, The Story of” (No. 11), 90–1, 93
“‘Arûs al-Arâis and her Deceit, The Story of” (No.7), 93, 95
dating, 84–7

Index 207
“Four Treasure Troves, The Story of the” (No. 4), 92, 93, 95
“Julanar of the Sea, The Story of” (No. 6), 95
“King of the Two Rivers, The Story of the” (No. 1), 93–4, 95
“Miqdad and Maiyasa, The Story of,” (No.12), 93
“Sa’îd Son of Hâtim al-Bâhilî, The Story of” (No. 14), 93
“Sul and Shumul, The Story of,” (No.10), 93
“Talisman Mountain, The Story of the” (No. 17), 93
and Thousand and One Nights,
Tanakh, 33, 63
Tarshûna, Mahmûd, 115
tasks and trials, 29, 43, 77, 78, 89, 142, 155, 169
See task(s), impossible.
task(s), impossible, 22, 24, 26, 31, 60, 61, 159, 160, 161, 162
theocentricity, 1, 2, 3, 26, 94, 132, 145–6.
See also anthropocentricity
therianthropy. See transformation
Thousand and One Nights, 4, 84–8,
94, 98
dating, 86
“Ebony Horse, The,” 10
editions (Calcutta I & II, Bulaq, Breslau), 84–5
sources, 86
See also Alf Layla wa-Layla, Arabian Nights, Mille et Une Nuit(s)
Tobit, Book of, 39–42, 45
Todorov, Tzvetan, 114n11
Tohar, Vered, 58n32, 62n42
Torah, 32, 35–9, 46, 49, 50, 51, 57, 63. See also Moshe
tower (woman in), 47, 55–6, 62, 154, 184
town(s). See urban culture
Trachtenberg, Joshua, 33–4
transformation(s), 6, 10, 24, 26, 34, 35, 68, 80, 99, 101, 103, 104, 110,
154, 170, 175 transformation(s), of a person
into ape, 90–1, 99, 110, 111
into ass, 28, 72, 103
into bear, 177
beautification/uglification, 175, 176
into beaver, 31
into bird, 104, 105, 109, 110, 113, 142
into blood, 35
into buffalo, 103, 109
into bull, 109, 110, 111
into deer, 109
into dog, 109
into eagle, 110, 127, 142
into fish, 110
into flame, 110
into frog, 31
into horse, 156
into palace, 175
into pig, 20, 153, 155
into pomegranate, 110
into ram, 31
into rock, 154
into rooster, 110
into scorpion, 110
into serpent, 35, 110
into she-mule, 10–9, 105,
into ship, 175
into stone, 99,
into swan, 68–9, 155
synechdotal, 110, 112
into tomcat, 109, 110
into vulture, 110
into wild man, 160
of wine, 15–16
into wolf, 110, 154
into worm, 110
translations, 27, 51, 62, 135 Latin to vernacular, 135–6, 138
from Arabic, 108
See also Grotzfeld, Haddawy, Lyons, Ott, Spies, Wehr, Weisweiler,
transmission (tale), 135, 138 intercultural, 10, 18–19, 51–2, 53, 55n28, 56–7, 58, 59n36, 62, 64,
65, 67, 72–82, 85, 115, 117
oral–written, 97
transvesticism, 155

208 Index
trial(s). See task(s)
Trimberg, Hugo von, 72
tuna, 151–2, 159, 161
ugliness, 69–72, 70n2, 105, 109
urban culture, 40, 65, 71–2, 83, 89, 98, 121–3, 129, 133–4, 184
and stories, 32–3, 72, 121, 126–47
Velay-Vallantin, Catherine, 64–5
verisimilitude, 149, 162, 166
Virgin Mary, 2, 58, 65, 80–1, 94, 132, 146, 147
volition, human, 94–6
Vries, Jan de, 14
wand, magic, 17, 20
Warner, Marina, 87
Warnke, Karl, 56n30
water, magic, 18, 59, 111, 113, 149, 150, 151, 161
See also magic objects, water of life
water of death, 60, 61
water of life, 61, 77–9, 117, 159–60
“Water of Life,” 77–9 wealth, 124, 126, 127
See also money
wedding, 3, 41, 54, 57, 62, 69, 71, 72, 77, 78, 130, 178, 144
Wehr, Hans, 88
Weisweiler, Max, 88
Wesselski, Albert, 21n6, 69n1
West, Stephani, 21, 136n3
Wettengel, Wolfgang, 14
white magic, 149–50, 154, 158–9
wish, magic, 8, 9, 20, 70, 144, 152, 161, 168, 171, 172, 175, 176
witch/witchcraft, 31, 100, 107–9, 111, 148, 154–8, 163–4
See also enchantress, magician(s), sorceress
wolf, 110, 152, 154
woods. See forest
Yassif, Eli, 33, 37n7, 46n16, 47n19, 57n31, 61n41, 63, 82
Yishbi, 48–9
“Yohanan.” See “Rabbi Yohanan and
the Scorpion”
Ziolkowski, Jan, 71n4